JOURNAL FOR THE STUDY OF THE OLD TESTAMENT SUPPLEMENT SERIES
145
Editors David J.A. Clines Philip R. Davies
Editoria...
73 downloads
648 Views
11MB Size
Report
This content was uploaded by our users and we assume good faith they have the permission to share this book. If you own the copyright to this book and it is wrongfully on our website, we offer a simple DMCA procedure to remove your content from our site. Start by pressing the button below!
Report copyright / DMCA form
JOURNAL FOR THE STUDY OF THE OLD TESTAMENT SUPPLEMENT SERIES
145
Editors David J.A. Clines Philip R. Davies
Editorial Board Richard J. Coggins, Alan Cooper, Tamara C. Eskenazi, J. Cheryl Exum, Robert P. Gordon, Norman K. Gottwald, Andrew D.H. Mayes, Carol Meyers, Patrick D. Miller
JSOT Press Sheffield
This page intentionally left blank
The Speeches of Micah A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
Charles S. Shaw
Journal for thé Study of thé Old Testament Supplément Séries 145
Copyright © 1993 Sheffield Academic Press Published by JSOT Press JSOT Press is an imprint of Sheffield Academic Press Ltd 343 Fulwood Road Sheffield S10 3BP England
Typeset by Sheffield Academic Press and Printed on acid-free paper in Great Britain by Biddies Ltd Guildford
British Library Cataloguing in Publication Data Shaw, Charles S. Speeches of Micah: Rhetorical-Historical Analysis.—(JSOT Supplement Series, ISSN 0309-0787; No. 145) I. Title II. Series 221.7 ISBN 1-85075-362-8
CONTENTS
Abbreviations
INTRODUCTION Approaches to the Book of Micah Purposes and Assumptions of the Present Study Method History and Chronology
7
11 11 19 22 28
Chapter 1
'SURELY HER ILLNESSES ARE INCURABLE': MICAH 1.2-16 Text and Translation Unity and Date The Rhetorical Situation Goals and Strategy Historical Possibilities
32 32 36 39 51 56
Chapter 2
'MY PEOPLE HAVE BECOME AN ENEMY' : MICAH 2.1-13 Text and Translation Unity and Date The Rhetorical Situation Goals and Strategy Historical Possibilities
68 68 71 78 87 91
Chapter 3
'Is IT NOT FOR You TO ACKNOWLEDGE THE DECISION?': MICAH 3.1-4.8 Text and Translation Unity and Date The Rhetorical Situation Goals and Strategy Historical Possibilities
97 97 100 109 117 123
6
The Speeches of Micah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
Chapter 4
'THERE WILL You BE DELIVERED?': MICAH 4.9-5.14 Text and Translation Unity and Date The Rhetorical Situation Goals and Strategy Historical Possibilities
128 128 131 139 149 156
Chapter 5
'A ROD—AND WHO HAS APPOINTED IT AGAIN?' : MICAH 6.1-7.7 Text and Translation Unity and Date The Rhetorical Situation Goals and Strategy Historical Possibilities
161 161 165 172 181 188
Chapter 6
'THAT DAY THE DECREE WILL BE RESCINDED!': MICAH 7.8-20
193
Text and Translation Unity and Date The Rhetorical Situation Goals and Strategy Historical Possibilities
193 196 200 209 215
SUMMARY AND CONCLUSIONS
221
Bibliography Index of Biblical References Index of Authors
226 238 243
ABBREVIATIONS
AASOR AB ABC A JSL AnBib ANET ARAB AID ATR AUSS BA BASOR BDB BHS Bib BJPES BJRL BK BKAT BO BTB BZ BZAW CBQ EBib EncJud ExpTim FRLANT FThL FzB HAR HAT HKAT HS HSM
Annual of the American Schools of Oriental Research Anchor Bible A.K. Grayson, Assyrian and Babylonian Chronicles American Journal of Semitic Languages and Literatures Analecta biblica J.B. Pritchard (ed.), Ancient Near Eastern Texts D.D. Luckenbill, Ancient Records of Assyria and Babylonia Das Alte Testament Deutsch Anglican Theological Review Andrews University Seminary Studies Biblical Archaeologist Bulletin of the American Schools of Oriental Research F. Brown, S.R. Driver, and C.A. Briggs, A Hebrew and English Lexicon of the Old Testament Biblia hebraica stuttgartensia Biblica Bulletin of the Jewish Palestine Exploration Society Bulletin of the John Rylands University Library of Manchester Bibel und Kirche Biblischer Kommentar: Altes Testament Bibliotheca orientalis Biblical Theology Bulletin Biblische Zeitschrift Beihefte zur ZAW Catholic Biblical Quarterly Etudes bibliques Encyclopaedia Judaica Expository Times Forschungen zur Religion und Literatur des Alten und Neuen Testaments Forum Theologicae Linguisticae Forschung zur Bibel Hebrew Annual Review Handbuch zum Alten Testament Handkommentar zum Alten Testament Hebrew Studies Harvard Semitic Monographs
8
The Speeches of Micah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
HSS HTR HUCA IB ICC IDB IDBSup IEJ Int JAOS JBL JCS JNES JPOS JQR JSOT JSOTSup JTS KAI KAT KD KHC NEB NICOT NorTT OLZ OTL OTS OTWSA PEFQS PEQ PJ RB ResQ RHR SBLDS SBLSP SBT SEA SH SJT ST
Harvard Semitic Series Harvard Theological Review Hebrew Union College Annual Interpreter's Bible International Critical Commentary G.A. Buttrick (ed.), Interpreter's Dictionary of the Bible IDB, Supplementary Volume Israel Exploration Journal Interpretation Journal of the American Oriental Society Journal of Biblical Literature Journal of Cuneiform Studies Journal of Near Eastern Studies Journal of the Palestine Oriental Society Jewish Quarterly Review Journal for the Study of the Old Testament Journal for the Study of the Old Testament, Supplement Scries Journal of Theological Studies H. Conner and W. Rollig, Kanaanaische und aramaische Inschriften Kommentar zum Alten Testament Kerygma und Dogma Kurzer Handkommentar zum Alten Testament New English Bible New International Commentary on the Old Testament Norsk Teologisk Tidsskrift Orientalistische Literaturzeitung Old Testament Library Oudtestamentische Studien Die Ou Testamentiese Werkgemeenskap in Suid-Afrika Palestine Exploration Fund, Quarterly Statement Palestine Exploration Quarterly Palastina-Jahrbuch Revue biblique Restoration Quarterly Revue de I'histoire des religions SBL Dissertation Series SBL Seminar Papers Studies in Biblical Theology Svensk exegetisk arsbok Scripta Hierosilymitana Scottish Journal of Theology Studia theologica
Abbreviations TDNT TDOT TSBA TTZ VT VTSup WBC ZAW ZDMG ZDPV ZS ZTK
G. Kittel and G. Friedrich (eds.), Theological Dictionary of the New Testament G.J. Botterweck and H. Ringgren (eds.), Theological Dictionary of the Old Testament Transactions of the Society of Biblical Archaeology Trierer theologische Zeitschrift Vetus Testamentum Vetus Testamentum, Supplements Word Bible Commentary Zeitschrift fur die alttestamentliche Wissenschaft Zeitschrift der deutschen morganlandischen Gesellschaft Zeitschrift des deutschen Palastina- Vereins Zeitschrift fur Semitistik Zeitschrift fur Theologie und Kirche
9
This page intentionally left blank
INTRODUCTION Approaches to the Book of Micah The history of the interpretation of the book of Micah has been reviewed by various scholars and need not be repeated in detail here.1 To a large extent, the interpretation of the material in this prophetic book has focused on attempts to find suitable historical settings against which the material can be interpreted. At the risk of oversimplification it can be said that since the time of Bernhard Stade's first article on the book of Micah (1881) there have been two basic approaches to understanding the historical background of the book and thus to interpreting its content. One approach was set forth by Stade himself who, building upon the work of Ewald and Wellhausen, argued that only material in Micah 13 could be from the eighth-century prophet.2 Following Ewald's lead, Stade suggested that Mic. 6.1-7.6 reflects the time of Manasseh rather
1. One of the best surveys is that of K. Jeppesen, 'How the Book of Micah Lost its Integrity', 5733 (1979), pp. 101-31. An even more comprehensive survey is given by K.H. Cuffey, The Coherence of the Book of Micah: A Review of the Proposals and a New Interpretation (dissertation, Drew University, 1979). A briefer but important review is presented by L.M. Luker, Doom and Hope in Micah: The Redaction of the Oracles Attributed to an Eighth-century Prophet (dissertation, Vanderbilt University, 1985). Also see B.S. Childs, Introduction to the Old Testament as Scripture (Philadelphia: Fortress Press, 1979), pp. 429-36. More recent scholarship is surveyed in J.T. Willis, 'Fundamental Issues in Contemporary Micah Studies', ResQ 13 (1970, pp. 77-90; and K. Jeppesen, 'New Aspects of Micah Research', JSOTZ (1978), pp. 3-32. 2. Stade's initial investigation was 'Bemerkungen tiber das Buch Micha', ZAW 1 (1881), pp. 161-72. He defended and refined his proposals in subsequent articles including 'Weitere Bemerkungen zu Micha 4.5', ZAW 3 (1883), pp. 1-16; 'Bemerkungen zu vorstehendem Aufsatze', ZAW 4 (1884), pp. 291-97; 'Micha ii, 4', ZAW 6 (1886), pp. 122-23.
12
The Speeches of Micah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
than the time of Micah.1 This date is suggested by the dismal situation presupposed by the material and by the reference to child sacrifice. Further, Stade agreed with Wellhausen that 7.7-20 presupposes the historical circumstances of the exilic period and contains themes and theological interests similar to those of Deutero-Isaiah.2 Stade focused his own analysis on Micah 4-5 which, he argued, for a number of reasons could not be from the same prophet responsible for the material in Micah 1-3. First, the message of Micah 4-5 is hopeful in nature and thus seems to contradict the message of the preceding chapters. Indeed, the opening words concerning the ideal Jerusalem in chapter 4 are nothing less than a total contradiction (reinen Gegentheil) of the judgment of destruction announced on Jerusalem in Mic. 3.12. Stade argued that it was unlikely that the same prophet would have proclaimed both doom and hope. Further, the information in Jer. 26.18 shows the nature of Micah's message. The fact that he was remembered as a prophet of doom suggests that he would not have weakened the impact of his proclamation of judgment by proclaiming a hopeful message such as is found in Mic. 4.1-5.14.3 The reference in Jeremiah also conforms to the message of Micah 1-3 (minus 2.12-13), which Stade believed to be a unity: chapter 1 announced judgment and Micah 2 and 3 gave the reasons for that judgment.4 Stade undergirded his argument that Micah 4-5 could not be from the eighth century by arguing that the style and theological interests of these chapters are similar to those of Joel, Zechariah 12-14 and Ezekiel. Moreover, the chapters presuppose a historical setting in the exile (4.6-8, 9-10) and assume an understanding of the Messiah and a concept of idolatry which Stade believed were later religious developments. Thus Stade concluded that only Micah 1-3 could be from Micah and that the book assumed its present form only after the exile. In his 1881 article and in the course of subsequent work Stade suggested a process by which the book assumed its final form. Mic. 1.51. H. Ewald, Die Propheten des Alten Bundes, I (Gottingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 2nd edn, 1867), pp. 501-27. 2. J. Wellhausen, in F. Bleek, Einleitung in das Alte Testament (ed. J. Bleek and A. Kamphausen; 4th edn, ed. J. Wellhausen; Berlin: G. Reimer, 1878), p. 425. 3. Stade, 'Bemerkungen iiber das Buch Micha', pp. 163-66. 4. Stade, 'Bemerkungen iiber das Buch Micha', pp. 163, 166-68, 168-70.
Introduction
13
3.12 (minus 2.12-13) contains the prophet's original message. To this core of authentic material an editor added 6.1-7.6 during the time of Manasseh. In post-exilic times a 'first Epigone' sought to soften the impact of Micah's message of doom by adding 2.12-13; 4.1-4, 11-14; 5.1-3, 6-14. A 'second Epigone' added 4.5-10 and 5.4-5 to promote the view that Israel's enemies would be defeated and to bring the work into line with the course of historical events. Finally, 1.2-4 and 7.7-20 were added to round off the book. It would be fair to say that for one group of scholars much of the research on Micah has been a process of refining, revising and modifying the theories of Stade.1 Like Stade, those in this group conclude that changes in style and tone within the book of Micah are a reflection of changes in historical circumstances after the time of Micah. Later dates for the material in Micah 4-7 are suggested by the possibility that the historical settings presupposed by this material cannot be found in the eighth century and also by possible similarities of interest and viewpoints with later works. The two criteria of historical setting and similarity of language are stated explicitly by Wolff in his suggestion that Mic. 4.9-5.1 dates to 587: What at first suggests that time around 587 is that the portrayals of the troubled situation fit no other phase in Judah's history so well... Moreover, the language employed in the saying is strongly reminiscent of Jeremiah... 2 1. Among others, those who follow Stade's basic approach include K. Marti, Das Dodekapropheten (KHAT 13: Tubingen: Mohr, 1904); P. Haupt, 'Critical Note on Micah', AJSL 26 (1910), pp. 201-52, and The Book of Micah', AJSL 27 (1911), pp. 1-63; T.H.Robinson, Die Zwolf kleinen Propheten (HAT 14; Tubingen: Mohr, 1938); J.L. Mays, Micah (OTL; Philadelphia: Westminster, Press 1976); B. Renaud, La Formation de Livre de Michee: Tradition et actualisation (EBib; Paris: Gabalda, 1977), I. Willi-Plein, Vorformen der Schriftezegese innerhalb des Alten Testament (BZAW 123; New York: de Gruyter, 1971); H.W. Wolff, Micah: A Commentary (Minneapolis: Augsburg, 1990), originally published as Micha (BK 14; Neukirchen-Vluyn: Neukirchener Verlag, 1980). 2. Wolff, Micah, p. 20. The methods employed by Mays (Micah) and Renaud (Formation) also focus on both the historical setting as well as similarity of theme and vocabulary with later works. Haupt focuses less on matters of vocabulary and theme, but seeks an appropriate historical setting for Micah 4-7 in the Maccabcan period ('Critical Notes', pp. 201-52). Similarly, Marti explains differences in style
14
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
Thus the differences of style and message found within the book of Micah are to be accounted for by the possibility that much of the material comes from a number of historical settings later than the time of Micah. A number of redactional schemes have been proposed to explain how such a variety of material from various times has been united and joined to Micah's original prophecies. The proposals vary widely in details and conclusions. In general, however, the various redactional histories which have been proposed posit the existence of different schools or circles of prophetic disciples with clearly defined political or theological interests which preserved and edited the words of Micah. These groups also collected, arranged, composed and added later prophetic oracles to the message of Micah either to make the material applicable to later situations and/or to give the material a liturgical function.1 An apparent reason that this group of scholars concluded that changes of style and message reflect historical settings after the time of Micah is the belief that the prophet of Micah's message was characterized by and restricted to the proclamation of judgment. In particular, it is pointed out that in the time of Jeremiah the eighth-century prophet was remembered as a prophet of doom. The observations of Mays is representative: This remarkable instance of the quotation of a prophet's words in an ad hoc situation a century after they had been spoken shows what an impression Micah's oracle had made on some men in his time and identified the distinctive message for which he was remembered.2
Mays concludes that the elders knew of no traditions in which Micah and content by finding various settings from the late exilic period to the second century BCE (Das Dodekapropheten, pp. 258-64). 1. See Wolff, Micah, pp. 17-27; Mays, Micah, pp. 21-33; Renaud, Formation, pp. 383-421. T. Lescow emphasized both liturgical needs and political factors in shaping the book ('Redaktionsgeschichtliche Analyse von Micha 1-5', ZAW 84 (1972), pp. 46-85; 'Redaktionsgeschichtliche Analyse von Micha 6-7), ZAW 84 (1972), pp. 181-212. Willi-Plein saw the redaction history as one of reinterpretation and extension of the prophet's words (Vorformen, pp. 60-109). Jorg Jeremias focused on the idea of Nachinterprelation and attempted to isolate a theological updating of the words of Micah during the early exilic period ('Die Deutung der Gerichtsworte Michas in der Exilzeit', ZAW 83 (1971), pp. 330-54). 2. Mays, Micah, p. 13.
Introduction
15
had was a prophet of hope. The quotation in Jer. 26.18 is thus to be understood as representative of the entire message of Micah.1 If a unified message is assumed, then it follows that any deviations from a proclamation of judgment cannot be from Micah. If only Micah 1-3 are authentic it also follows that such a small amount of material must derive from a short span of time. Wolff states this conclusion concisely: 'Given the small number of texts that have come down to us, it [Micah's activity] was more likely a limited period of time'.2 Wolff is led to the conclusion that Micah carried out his prophetic mission for only a few months or years between 733 and 722.3 Some have allowed for more time, suggesting a span no greater than the period of 725-711,4 while others have limited all of Micah's ministry to 701.5 Standing in contrast to the approach of Stade is another group of scholars who tend to view most of the material in the book of Micah as the authentic sayings of the eighth-century prophet.6 This group
1. In a comment similar to the one of Mays, G. Fohrer notes, 'Later Micah was known only for his threat' (Introduction to the Old Testament [Nashville: Abingdon Press, 1968], p. 445). Although Wolff does not state the matter as concisely as Mays, he does draw a number of conclusions from the reference in Jeremiah. In particular he infers that Micah was an 'elder' of the land whose message in Micah 13 embodied themes, motifs and ideas one might expect from a person in such a position (Micah, pp. 1-9). Marti also cites the passage in support of his interpretation of Micah (Das Dodekapropheten, pp. 258-64). 2. Wolff, Micah, p. 8. A strikingly similar statement is made by Mays, Micah, p. 15. 3. Wolff, Micah, p. 8. 4. Fohrer, Introduction, p. 444; Robinson (Kleinen Propheten) suggests the time between 724 and 711 or 701. 5. Mays (Micah, p. 16) concludes, Thus the probable period for Micah's activity was 701 and the months immediately before Sennacherib's invasion'. Haupt also limits Micah's activity to 701 ('Critical Notes', p. 201), but Marti places the time between 705-701 (Das Dodekapropheten, p. 260). 6. Those who can be placed in this group include E.B. Pusey, The Minor Prophets with Commentary II (New York: Funk and Wagnalls, 1895); R.F. Horton, The Minor Prophets: Hosea, Joel, Amos, Obadiah, Jonah, and Micah (Century Bible; Edinburgh; T.C. and E.G. Jack, 1904); M. Margolis, The Holy Scriptures with Commentary: Micah (Philadelphia: Jewish Publication Society of America, 1908); A. van Hoonacker, Les douze petits prophetes (Paris: Gabalda, 1908); E. Sellin, Das Zwolfprophetenbuch (KAT 12; Leipzig: Deichertsche, 2nd edn, 1929); A. Weiser, Das Buch der zwolf Kleinen Propheten (ATD 24; Gottingen:
16
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
recognizes that within the book of Micah there are some dramatic differences in styles and themes. These differences, however, are not to be explained as an indication of a later time or the work of a distinct school. Rather, differences in theme and style are thought to reflect changes in historical circumstances which occurred during the ministry of Micah. For example, Albin van Hoonacker suggests that Micah 1-3 contain warnings to Judah delivered by Micah at the time of the Assyrian siege of Samaria (725-22 BCE) while Micah 4-5 reflect the rejoicing in Judah after the Assyrian withdrawal in 722 as well as the optimism instilled by Hezekiah's reforms.1 Micah 6-7 also reflect the time after 722, but the message in these chapters is addressed not to Jerusalem, but to Samaria. Thus, for van Hoonacker and others, changes in circumstances and audience during the time of Micah adequately account for the differences encountered in the book of Micah.2 In general, scholars who attribute most of the material in the book to Micah have drawn a limited number of conclusions from the reference to Mic. 3.12 in Jer. 26.18. First it is argued that the quotation
Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 2nd edn, 1956); W. Rudolph, Micha—Nahum— Habakuk—Zephania (KAT 13; Gutersloh: Gerd Mohn, 1975); L.A. Allen, The Books of Joel, Obadiah, Jonah, and Micah (NICOT; Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1976); D.Hillers, Micah (Hermeneia; Philadelphia: Fortress Press, 1984). Another scholar whose method is similar to those in this group is A.S. van der Woude (Micah [Nijkerk: Callenbach, 1976]). Van der Woude sees two explanations for the variety of styles in the book of Micah: (1) Much of Micah 25 is a debate between Micah and the 'pseudo-prophets' ('Micah in Dispute with the Pseudo-prophets', VT 19 (1969), pp. 244-60); (2) Micah 6-7 is derived from a northern prophet of the eighth century ('Deutero-Micha: ein Prophet aus NordIsrael?', NorTT 25 (1971), pp. 365-78). 1. Van Hoonacker, Le douze petits prophetes, pp. 339-53. 2. Also noteworthy is the similar comment by Allen regarding the change between Mic. 4.10 and 4.11: 'Obviously a change in the circumstances or the attitude of the prophet's hearers lies like a chasm between the end of v. 10 and the beginning of v. 11' (Micah, p. 248). Sellin also argued that to resort to dating a section to a later time was often a facile solution and that the change in tone in chapters 6.1-7.7, while undeniable, is not to be attributed to a later prophet: 'Der Ton, die Stimmung, die ganze Anklage is hier offenbar eine etwas endere als in c. 2 und 3, aber gewiss ist deswegen nicht gleich an einen anderen Verg. zu denken, die Annahme einer anderen Entstehungsperiode im Leben des Micha wiirder sicher zur Erklarung auch ausreichen' (Das Zwolfprophetenbuch, p. 308; cf. viii).
Introduction
17
from Mic. 3.12 is not to be taken as representative of the prophet's entire message.1 In other words, because this one quotation is one of judgment, it does not follow that every utterance of Micah was a proclamation of doom. Second it is maintained that the information in Jer. 26.18 does not allow one to draw conclusions about the chronological scope of Micah's ministry. 2 The most that can be inferred from Jer. 26.18 is that some of the prophet's ministry took place during the reign of Hezekiah. The report in Jeremiah does not rule out the possibility that the prophet may have proclaimed the destruction of Jerusalem during the reigns of the preceding kings.3 Finally, Millers points out that the words of Micah in Jer. 26.18 are part of a prophetic narrative and are not really a direct quotation of Mic. 3.12: 'Thus, though often described as a direct quotation of Micah, Jeremiah 26 offers us something different, namely evidence for the persistence of prophetic legend concerning Micah, about a century after his time'.4 It cannot be known, therefore, how accurate the details of this prophetic legend are. In any case, no scholar among this second group sees the information in Jer. 26.18 as limiting Micah to one message and/or to one particular historical setting. Although this group of scholars is aware of the arguments for a late date for material based on similarities of theme and vocabulary with later works, they generally find these arguments to be unconvincing. Two comments from Leslie Allen are representative of this second group's response to the question of the date of material in Micah. 'Certainly to conclude that vocabulary typical of later times does not have its roots in an earlier period is unwarranted if on other grounds this passage can be credited with an earlier date'.5 The 'other grounds' to which Allen refers usually include the historical circumstances of Micah's time and an understanding of the development of Israelite religion different from that of Stade and his followers. Secondly, Allen admits that his 'guiding principle' has been articulated by E. Hammershaimb, who argued that one should 'accept the tradition for those parts of the book where no compelling reasons can
1. 2. 3. 4. 5.
Allen, Micah, p. 251; Hillers, Micah, p. 9. Hillers, Micah, p. 9. Pusey, The Minor Prophets, p. 9. Hillers, Micah, p. 9. Allen, Micah, p. 247.
18
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
be urged against their authenticity'.1 These 'compelling reasons' usually involve historical considerations: if the historical setting presupposed by a particular section is clearly different from the time of Micah then that section cannot be from the eighth-century prophet. It should be noted that various members of this second group of scholars do find conclusive evidence for a later dating for a limited amount of material in Micah. Most often Mic. 2.12-13, 4.10 and 7.820 are thought to presuppose a historical setting other than the eighth century.2 Few scholars find no material in the book of Micah from a time later than the eighth century BCE.3 In general, those in this second group of exegetes believe that the material in Micah, though mostly authentic, has been arranged and redacted by editors after the time of Micah. Some conclude that the material has been arranged intentionally according to a particular pattern 4 while others doubt that any one scheme guided the later arrangement and editing of the material.5
1. Allen, Micah, p. 251. The quote is from E. Hammershaimb, 'Some Leading Ideas in the Book of Micah', in Some Aspects of Old Testament Prophecy from Isaiah to Malachi (Teologiske Skriften 4; Copenhagen: Rosenkelde og Baggen, 1966), p. 29. This sentiment was earlier expressed by Horton: 'We shall do well to assume that these very diverse utterances were delivered by Micah the Morashite... except where clauses or passages are conclusively shown to come from a later date or another hand' (The Minor Prophets, p. 219). A similar statement is made by Margolis, Micah, p. 8. 2. Weiser identifies as later additions 2.12-13; 4.1-8; 5.6-8; and 7.8-20 (Das Buch der zwolf kleinen Propheten I, pp. 230-31). Rudolph denies to Mic. 4.1-4; 5.6-8; and 7.8-20 (Micha, pp. 24-5) and Allen sees 4.1-4, 6-8; and 7.8-20 as nonMican (Micah, p. 251). Sellin sees 4.10 as a gloss and 7.8-20 as a post-exilic addition (Das Zwolfprophetenbuch, pp. 306-8, 332-33). Van Hoonacker identifies only minor glosses including 4.10 (Le douze petits prophetes, pp. 385-86) and Horton is convinced that only 4.10 is a later gloss (The Minor Prophets, p. 222). 3. A notable exception is Margolis, Micah, pp. 8-14. 4. Allen finds a concentric structure with an alternation of passages of doom and hope, Micah, pp. 257-60). Rudolph concludes the material is arranged in three sections each of which moves from doom to hope (Micha, pp. 23-24). Van Hoonacker believes the material has been arranged chronologically (Le douze petits prophetes, pp. 339-53). Detailed summaries of proposed redactional patterns can be found in Cuffey, The Coherence of the Book ofMicah and Luker, Doom and Hope. A summary is also included in J.T. Willis, 'The Structure of the Book of Micah', SEA 34 (1969), pp. 5-42. 5. Sellin apparently believes that later editors have arranged the material, but he
Introduction
19
Purposes and Assumptions of the Present Study This survey of the approaches to the book of Micah makes it clear that a major factor in interpreting the material and, more specifically, in judging its authenticity is the historical setting presupposed by each unit. Unfortunately, on the question of the possible historical background for the contents of the book of Micah there is wide disagreement not only between the two approaches, but among scholars within each group. The purposes of the present study are to determine the literary units in the book, to analyze these in terms of rhetoricalcritical considerations, and to an attempt to discover the possible historical setting presupposed by each unit. Thus, the following investigation will focus on two, interdependent goals. On the one hand, the material in the book of Micah will be submitted to a rhetorical investigation to determine its purpose and general background. On the other hand, the results of the rhetorical investigation will be applied in an attempt to find the historical setting presupposed by the material. One's interpretation of prophetic literature is, of course, dependent upon one's assumptions and conclusions about the role of the prophets and the nature of prophetic speech.1 The present study is rooted in two basic assumptions. First, it is assumed that the prophets did not speak in short, self-contained sayings, but delivered discourses which attempted to persuade the hearers of a particular conviction or to take a specific course of action. This understanding of prophetic speech stands in obvious contrast to that of most commentators who assume that the prophets spoke in short sayings which were only secondarily connected.2 is generally uninterested in their goals and method (Das Zwolfprophetenbuch, pp. 307-8). Hillers insists that no plan or structure for the book can be found (Micah, pp. 3-4). 1. E.L. Greenstein (Theory and Argument in Biblical Criticism', HAR 10 [1986], pp. 77-93) points out that the presuppositions and theory one uses to interpret the material will inevitably determine one's conclusions: 'Our very observations, and not only our interpretations, are necessarily shaped by whatever presuppositions hypothesis, and bodies of knowledge we possess. Our theories guide our selection of evidence, and even our construction of evidence' (p. 78). 2. This approach is perhaps best illustrated by Mays, who finds 29 originally independent sayings or units in the book of Micah (Micah, pp. 23-33). These originally independent units are defined by changes in genre, style, person, meter, or
20
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
In contrast, the present study assumes that those units which most scholars identify as independent sayings are the building blocks which the speaker has used in constructing his discourse. As Gitay observes '.. .these assumed independent units may be explained from the standpoint of speech analysis and reader-response criticism as intentional components of a larger whole'.1 The 'larger whole' is a persuasive discourse which utilizes various components, styles and forms in order to be effective. In this sense prophetic speech conforms to the observations of classical rhetoric which recognized that a persuasive speech consists of several distinct parts with varying functions, and employs various types of proofs (pathos, logos, ethos), styles (e.g. metaphor, hyperbole, figures, questions) and topics (common, material, strategical).2 A second assumption guiding the present investigation is that the
theme. Wolff thinks in terms of larger 'sketches' composed of a number of sayings which in some cases may have been delivered on the same occasion (Micah, pp. 1213). Nevertheless, using the same criteria employed by Mays he is able to discern within the sketches the shorter, independent sayings. Such an approach to prophetic speech is undoubtedly based on GunkePs belief that the prophets spoke in short, enigmatic sayings. A summary of Gunkel's understanding of prophetic speech is given by W.E. March, 'Prophecy', in J.H. Hayes (ed.), Old Testament Form Criticism (San Antonio, TX: Trinity University Press, 1977), p. 144; and J.H. Hayes The History of the Form Critical Study of Prophecy', SBLSP (1973), pp. 60-99, esp. pp. 60-70. Also, consult G.M. Tucker, Form Criticism of the Old Testament (Philadelphia: Fortress Press, 1971), pp. 55-57. Gunkel's understanding of prophetic speech is presented in his Die Propheten (Gottingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 1917) and 'The Israelite Prophecy from the Time of Amos', in J. Pelikan (ed.), Twentieth Century Theology in the Making (New York: Harper & Row, 1969), pp. 48-75. 1. Y. Gitay, 'Reflections on the Study of Prophetic Discourse: The Question of Isaiah I 2-20', VT 33 (1983), p. 212. A helpful discussion of the units of prophetic speech is given by M. Buss, The Prophetic Word of Hose a (BZAW 111; Berlin: Topelmann, 1969), pp. 28-37. In particular, Buss finds that larger units may be composed of smaller 'sense units', and points out the problems associated with using such criteria as catchwords, repetition and changes of grammatical forms to determine the limitation of original units. 2. A description of the system of classical rhetoric is given by G.A. Kennedy, New Testament Interpretation through Rhetorical Criticism (Chapel Hill: University of North Carolina Press, 1984), pp. 12-30; Y. Gitay, Prophecy and Persuasion: A Study of Isaiah 40-48 (FThL 14; Bonn: Linguistica Biblica, 1981), pp. 34-49.
Introduction
21
prophets of Israel played a role similar to that of the political orator of ancient Greece. In particular, Demosthenes' description of the role of the political orator appears to be applicable to Israel's prophets in general and to Micah in particular: But for what is he [the orator] responsible? To discern events in their beginnings, to foresee what is coming, and to forewarn others. These things I have done. Again it is his duty to reduce to the smallest possible compass, wherever he finds them, the slowness, the hesitation, the ignorance, the contentiousness, which are the errors inseparably connected with the constitution of all city-states; while on the other hand, he must stimulate men to unity, friendship, and eagerness to perform their duty.1 Similarly, prophetic discourse can be understood as based on an analysis of the contemporary situation in order to determine the consequences of the present course of action. The prophetic discourse then sought to warn others of those consequences.2 As an expression of the attempt to discern the trend of events, the prophetic discourse is firmly rooted in historical circumstances and events. The discourses of the prophets arose as a response to a matrix of events, persons, traditions and institutions. This set of circumstances which calls forth discourse has been designated the 'rhetorical situation'. Bitzer has offered the following definition of a rhetorical situation: ... a complex of persons, events, objects and relations presenting an actual or potential exigency which can be completely or partially removed
1. De Corona, para. 246. It should be noted here that others have compared the prophetic role to that of the political orators of ancient Greece. Especially noteworthy is Edward Strachey (Jewish History and Politics (London: W. Isbister, 1874), pp. 3-4) who utilized this same quote from Demosthenes to describe the work of Isaiah. Strachey's understanding of the prophets as political orators was accepted by Bernhard Duhm (at least in principle): 'Mir scheint, dass die beste Parallele Strachey durch ein einfaches Citat aus dem Demosthenes gezogen hat. Es bedarf keines ausdriicklichen Hinweises aus den Unterschied zwischen den hebraischen und griechischen Volksrednern, dass erste mehr die Religion, letztere mehr die Nation im Auge haben... (Die Theologie der Propheten (Bonn: Verlag von Adolph Marcus, 1875), p. 23). 2. The prophetic role of determining the trend or consequences of events is also emphasized by Buss: 'At any rate, it is the prophet's pre-eminent task to see ahead so that a catastrophe can be avoided and good fortune maximized' (The Prophetic Word, p. 116). Buss also notes the observations of Demosthenes and Strachey (p. 125).
22
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis if discourse, introduced into the situation can so constrain human decision or action as to bring about the significant modification of the exigence.1
Bitzer further notes that the rhetorical situation invites and controls the discourse in much the way that a question invites and controls an answer. Thus every discourse comes into being as a response to a specific situation. Prophetic discourse responds to the situation by showing the consequences of the present course of action. Quite possibly, prophetic discourse was meant to remove or alter the 'actual or potential exigency' by persuading others to modify circumstances and thus avert or minimize the catastrophic consequences foreseen as a result of the trend of events.2 In any case, what is important for the present study is the recognition that prophetic discourse arose primarily as a response to events, persons and objects firmly rooted in history. Each prophetic discourse thus presupposes a complex matrix of factors to which it is responding and which must, to some extent, be reflected in the discourse itself. Method Through the use of rhetorical criticism the present study will attempt to gain insight into the historical setting presupposed by each discourse in the book of Micah. The understanding of rhetorical criticism to be employed has been defined succinctly by Michael V. Fox: Rhetoric is persuasive discourse (persuasive in intent if not in accomplishment). Rhetorical criticism may be defined first of all as the examination and evaluation of such discourse for the nature and quality of its persuasive force.3
This understanding of rhetorical criticism stands in contrast to that set
1. L. Bitzer, The Rhetorical Situation', in W.R. Fisher (ed.), Rhetoric: A Tradition in Transition (Ann Arbor: University of Michigan Press, 1974), p. 251. 2. It is a matter of some debate whether the prophets understood the judgment they proclaimed to be irreversible. If, however, prophetic speech seeks to discern the trend of events, Buss is probably correct in suggesting that the judgment (or consequences) resulting from present events is not unavoidable since adjustments could be made to prevent disaster from coming (The Prophetic Word, p. 116). 3. M.V. Fox, The Rhetoric of Ezekiel's Vision of the Valley of the Bones', HUCA 51 (1980), p. 1.
Introduction
23
forth by James Muilenburg whose 'rhetorical criticism' attempts to understand the composition of larger units by identifying the various devices used in them.1 Rhetorical criticism as defined by Muilenburg does not focus on the question of whether or how the discourse is persuasive. The present investigation, however, will focus on what the author intends to convey and how he achieves his goal: 'The ultimate goal of rhetorical analysis, briefly put, is the discovery of the author's intent and of how that is transmitted through a text to an audience'.2 George Kennedy has defined three distinct steps in a rhetorical analysis.3 First, there must be a preliminary determination of the unit. Second, the rhetorical situation should be investigated in some detail. Finally, the arrangement of the material is to be explored to determine 'what subdivisions it falls into, what the persuasive effect of the parts seems to be, and how they work together—or fail to do so—to some unified purpose in meeting the rhetorical situation'.4 The present investigation of the historical background of the discourses of Micah will follow these three steps in an attempt to understand the matrix of events to which each discourse responds. A preliminary, but important, step will be to offer a translation of the unit under consideration. As far as is possible, the Masoretic Text of BHS will be followed. At many points, however, the text of Micah is extremely difficult or corrupt and emendation is unavoidable. Such emendations are either noted or discussed more fully in the analysis of
1. J. Muilenburg, 'Form Criticism and Beyond', JBL (1969), pp. 1-18. A recent review of the various applications of the term 'rhetorical criticism' in biblical studies is given by C.C. Black, 'Keeping Up with Recent Studies XVI. Rhetorical Criticism and Biblical Interpretation', ExpTim 100 (1988-89), pp. 252-58. Black's contrast between the approach of Muilenburg and that of Kennedy is helpful: 'For Muilenburg "rhetoric" is virtually synonymous with "literary analysis"; for Kennedy, the term refers to the disciplined art of persuasion, as conceptualized and practised by Greeks and Romans of the classical and Hellenistic periods' (p. 254). 2. Kennedy, New Testament Interpretation, p. 12. It should be noted that a study of the means of persuasion employed in Micah has been offered by R.L. Lewis, The Persuasive Style of the Minor Prophets Amos, Hosea, and Micah (dissertation; University of Michigan, 1959). Lewis, however, does not make a serious attempt to discern the limits of the discourses, and, on the whole, does not take into account the questions raised by critical biblical scholarship. 3. Kennedy, New Testament Interpretation, pp. 33-38. 4. Kennedy, New Testament Interpretation, p. 37.
24
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
the rhetorical situation. Once a translation has been established it will be possible to proceed with the three-part analysis proposed by Kennedy. First, it is necessary to make a preliminary determination of the limits of the discourse. This task attempts to define which material belongs together and how the various parts form a unity. To make such a determination the criteria suggested by Gitay will be employed. 'The prophetic address must be defined on the basis of its rhetorical situation and its global theme'.1 Thus thematic unity and a common rhetorical situation are the elements which unify material into a selfcontained discourse. In his study of the coherence of the book of Micah K.H. Cuffey paid special attention to the nature of thematic unity which he considered to be the most important aspect of coherence.2 He observed that thematic unity is indicated by such factors as the presence of a dominant motif throughout the work, the continuous or recurrent presence of an item, or the progression or development of thought. The theme or thought must, of course, be a significant one rather than a minor one. Cuffey further notes that thematic unity can be loose if the work deals with similar themes which are not developed and related to one another in a clearly defined, systematic order. On the other hand, thematic unity 'may also be expressed tightly, when the work develops and defines the theme in a clear way through structure or plot as one progresses through the whole'.3 Thus, a common theme reflected in each section of a work unites the sections into a whole, even though the unity created by the theme may be either clearly obvious or more difficult to discern. Cuffey's observations regarding thematic unity are helpful in two ways. First, the fact that thematic unity can be either weak or strong is a reminder that there are degrees of unity. Some works or discourses simply display a clearer unity than others and, in some cases, unity may be difficult to detect. Determining the unity of a work or a unit is thus by the nature of the task a subjective undertaking. Determining thematic unity involves judgments regarding which themes are significant and how well the theme is expressed, developed, modified or even present in each section of the work. 1. 2. 3.
Gitay, The Study of Prophetic Discourse', p. 220. Cuffey, The Coherence of the Book ofMicah, pp. 144-47. Cuffey, The Coherence of the Book ofMicah, p. 145.
Introduction
25
Second, Cuffey's observations regarding the development of a theme throughout the structure of a work is a reminder that while the organization of a work is not unimportant, structure alone does not create the unity of a discourse although it may enhance the unity. The structure or arrangement shows how the various parts relate to one another and how the speaker's thoughts develop and progress, but more important indicators of unity are the global theme and a common rhetorical situation. As noted above the rhetorical situation is that set of circumstances which has invited the discourse and which may be modified through discourse. Unfortunately, in the book of Micah we have no account of the situation which has given rise to each discourse. We are not told when the words were spoken, to whom they were spoken, or why the prophet speaks. Nevertheless, the close connection between the rhetorical situation and the discourse makes it inevitable that the major elements of the rhetorical situation are reflected in the discourse itself. It is therefore possible to reconstruct from the discourse those factors to which the speaker is responding and addressing. In the preliminary determination of the unit a general description of the rhetorical situation will be given. Like the global theme, the rhetorical situation helps to determine the limits of a discourse. Each part of the discourse must in some way reflect one or more of the major aspects of the circumstances which have prompted the prophet to speak. When there is a dramatic change in the circumstances presupposed by the material, it is a fairly certain indication that a new unit has begun. As part of the consideration of the unity of the discourse it will be necessary to consider questions regarding the date of the material. As noted above, a number of scholars have concluded that most of the material in the book of Micah reflects a time later than the eighth century. Obviously if it can be demonstrated with reasonable certainty that material within a proposed unit is derived from a time later than the eighth century or from a number of different periods, the unity of a section must be redactional rather than original. At this point it must be admitted that the matter of dating the material is related to a host of assumptions about a number of factors including the nature of prophetic speech, the existence of prophetic 'schools', the development of Israelite religion, and the possibility that
26
The Speeches of Micah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
the same prophet could proclaim doom and hope.1 Unfortunately, these assumptions have often prevented a consideration of all possible historical settings for the material in Micah. Those who follow Stade's approach have given little serious consideration to arguments for dating the material to the time of Micah. On the other hand, those following the general approach of van Hoonacker have often failed to explore in detail those arguments for a later date. Therefore, the present investigation, while admittedly seeking appropriate settings in the time of Micah, will explore all possible historical settings for the material under consideration. In particular, arguments for a later dating of the material in the book of Micah will be investigated to determine if they are convincing or if other equally plausible explanations can account for elements which supposedly reflect a time later than Micah's.2 Based on theme, rhetorical situation and consideration of arguments for a setting later than the time of Micah, conclusions regarding the limits of the rhetorical unit can be set forth. Once the unit has been determined it is possible to investigate the rhetorical situation in greater detail. The purpose of this detailed analysis of the rhetorical situation will be not only to underscore the preliminary observations about the unity of the discourse, but also to show in some detail the 1. Since assumptions and hypothesis are essential in any interpretation of prophetic works, Hillers probably overstates the case when he concludes '...it would seem that redaction-criticism is hypothetical at too many points to be interesting' (Micah, p. 3). While one should probably substitute the word 'assumption' for 'prejudice', M. Greenberg gives a rather accurate description of some of the many assumptions of Stade and those who utilize his approach: 'A universal prejudice of modern biblical criticism is the assumption of original simplicity. A passage of complex structure, or one containing repetition, or skewing a previously used figure is, on these grounds, suspect of being inauthentic. Another widespread prejudice equates authenticity with topical or thematic uniformity. A temporal vista that progresses from present, to penultimate, to ultimate time is considered an artificial result of successive additions to a single-time oracle. Doom oracles that end with a glimpse of a better future are declared composites on the ground of psychological improbability' (Ezekiel 1-20 [AB 22; New York: Doubleday, 1983], p. 20). 2. At times special attention will be given to the work of Renaud (Formation) since this work is undoubtedly the most comprehensive and in many ways representative of the redactional histories proposed for the book of Micah. Renaud also takes into account other proposals and offers evaluations of them.
Introduction
27
matrix of circumstances that prompted and is addressed by the speech. The general outline of the rhetorical situation will ultimately be helpful in evaluating possible historical backgrounds of the discourse. A reconstruction of the rhetorical situation involves a close and careful reading of the text with particular attention to clues about the identity of those addressed, the attitude of the audience and speaker, and references to events, traditions and circumstances. Again it must be emphasized that a reconstruction of the rhetorical situation is, to a certain extent, a subjective undertaking. One must attempt to judge when the speaker is setting forth the facts of the case and when exaggerating and using hyperbole. Possible deliberate distortions of the deeds or views of one's opponents must also be taken into consideration. When such factors are weighed carefully, however, it is reasonable to assume that a fairly accurate reconstruction of the rhetorical situation can emerge. For the sake of convenience, the investigation of the rhetorical situation will be divided into a consideration of objective and subjective factors.1 Objective factors include those events, conditions and attitudes to which the discourse responds and is addressed. On the other hand, subjective factors focus on the speakers' views of the situation and their understanding and assessment of the consequences of the present course of events as these are reflected in each unit. Obviously, these two sets of factors are not mutually exclusive and there is a constant interaction between them. In addition, the prophet's own understanding of events influences how he presents them in his discourse. It is therefore not possible to speak of purely objective factors as if these were 'facts' divorced from all interpretation. Nevertheless, for the purpose of analysis, it is helpful to organize the elements of the rhetorical situation into the two interdependent categories of objective and subjective factors. The final step of a rhetorical analysis is an investigation of the arrangement and structure of the discourse. In the present investigation, this analysis will be subsumed under the heading 'Goals and Strategy'. This section will examine how the discourse is structured and how each part functions to set out the unit's arguments and to persuade in light of the speaker's goal. Special attention will be given to the kinds of proofs that are utilized and the style that the prophet employs in order to be persuasive. 1.
This approach is followed by Fox, 'Ezekiel's Vision', pp. 1-15.
28
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
It should be noted that the investigation of the strategy used in each discourse is not intended to be exhaustive. Every stylistic device, argument and proof found in a discourse cannot be explored in depth. Therefore, the investigation will be limited to those persuasive strategies which are judged to be the more important with special attention given to progression of thought and the manner in which the various sections form a united, persuasive discourse. In studying the goals and strategy of each discourse this investigation will to a limited extent utilize the system and terminology employed in classical rhetoric. The validity of applying the observations of classical rhetoric to biblical material has been defended by Kennedy: Though rhetoric is colored by the traditions and conventions of the society in which it is applied, it is also a universal phenomenon which is conditioned by basic workings of the human mind and by the nature of all human society. Aristotle's objective in writing his Rhetoric was not to describe Greek rhetoric, but to describe the universal facet of human communication.1
Since the Greeks systematized and defined the rhetorical techniques they observed and since these have a universal general applicability, any investigation of a persuasive discourse may utilize the system and terms of classical rhetoric while recognizing their limitations.2 History and Chronology If the rhetorical situation has been accurately reconstructed from the discourse, the factors reflected in that situation may be helpful in evaluating proposed historical backgrounds. The failure of a proposed 1. Kennedy, New Testament Interpretation, p. 10. 2. While the system of classical rhetoric can be legitimately used to analyze prophetic literature, a caution is sounded by Black: 'Accordingly, we should beware of rhetorical analyses that mask characteristics of Jewish or Christian discourse peculiar to their distinctive cultures' ('Rhetorical Criticism and Biblical Interpretation', p. 257). There is a need to determine not just how prophetic discourse conforms to the observations of classical rhetoric, but also to describe how prophetic discourse differs (perhaps in significant ways). Such a study would need to develop and classify in appropriate terminology the unique persuasive devices and strategies found in prophetic discourses. Unfortunately, the present study does not analyze enough material to allow the beginning of such a systematic description of Hebrew persuasive rhetoric.
Introduction
29
historical setting to account for all elements in the rhetorical situation means that such a proposed historical setting is not likely and makes it necessary to seek another, more suitable setting. Similarly, if the factors reflected in the rhetorical situation contradict what can be known about a proposed historical setting, that setting must be rejected. The investigation of the possible historical background of the prophetic units in Micah will thus begin with a review of the various settings proposed for all or part of each discourse and will offer an evaluation of those proposals in light of the factors reflected in the rhetorical situation. The second part of the investigation of the historical background will propose a historical setting which conforms to the observations about the rhetorical situation. Each proposal must be viewed as tentative since the discourses in the book of Micah generally lack absolutely clear references to events which can be correlated to known historical events and often employ metaphorical imagery. Nevertheless, since the rhetorical situation reflects historical circumstances, some attempt, however tentative, can be made to place the discourse in an appropriate historical setting. In the course of the historical investigation it will at times be necessary to explore the evidence for a proposed historical setting. In a similar manner, when a new historical background is proposed for a discourse, the evidence for the new setting will be presented and explored. Throughout this process it must be remembered that a historical setting is not simply a sequence of indisputable facts and events which can be objectively verified. Rather, a historical setting is reconstructed from the historian's interpretation of various pieces of evidence. The interpretation of evidence, and reconstruction, depend upon numerous factors including the nature and limitation of available sources as well as the limitations, experiences and assumptions of the historian. 1 It must be admitted in advance, therefore, that evidence is always open to more than one interpretation. A particularly complex problem facing the historian is that of the chronology of the latter half of the eighth century BCE. In this study the chronological framework proposed by John H. Hayes and Paul
1. See J.M. Miller, The Old Testament and the Historian (Philadelphia: Fortress Press, 1976), pp. 11-19.
30
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
K. Hooker will be followed.1 This chronology relies heavily upon the figures in the MT. It is further assumed that a king's reign was calculated from his enthronement at the new year festival (in the month of Tishri for Judah and Marheshvan for Israel). Consequently, a king who died before he could be enthroned at this festival was never assigned a year's rule. For the latter half of the eighth century the following conclusions and assumptions regarding chronology are significant. 1.
2.
3.
4. 5.
There was no co-regency of Azariah and Jotham. Rather, because of leprosy, Azariah abdicated in favor of Jotham who then assumed full responsibility as king. The enigmatic reference in 2 Kgs 15.1 that Azariah's reign began in the twenty-seventh year of Jeroboam II may have originally referred to the date when Azariah was forced to abdicate. The 52 years assigned to Azariah include the years from his coronation until his death. For contractual and legal purposes the years from the accession of Azariah continued to be counted after his abdication. A similar situation is encountered for Hoshea whose nine-year reign includes the years after his arrest when he no longer acted as king of Samaria. The year 747-46 was not assigned to any king in the northern kingdom since civil war prevented a king from ascending the throne at the new year festival. The 20 years assigned to Pekah include a 16-year reign as a rival king (possibly over Gilead) to the king of Samaria. The report in 2 Kgs 18.13 and Isa. 36.1 that Sennacherib laid siege to Jerusalem in the fourteenth year of Hezekiah is incorrect. The event originally referred to in the fourteenth year of Hezekiah was Hezekiah's illness which in popular tradition came to be associated with Sennarcherib's attack and the deliverance of the Judean king. Consequently, the promise that Hezekiah would receive 15 more years of life led to the erroneous conclusion that the fourteenth year of Hezekiah was the year of Sennacherib's invasion.
1. J.H. Hayes and P.K. Hooker, A New Chronology for the Kings of Israel and Judah (Atlanta: John Knox, 1988).
Introduction
31
In light of the preceding assumptions and conclusions, the following chronology will be followed in the present study. Israel
Judah
Jeroboam II (788/87-768/47)
Azariah (785/84-760/59) Jotham (759/58-744/43)
Zechariah (747) Shallum (747) Menahem (746/45-737/36) Ahaz (743/42-728/27) Pekahiah (736/35-735/34) Pekah (Gilead (750-735/34) (Samaria 734-731/30) Hoshea (730/29-722/21) Hezekiah (727/26-699/98)
Chapter 1 'SURELY HER ILLNESSES ARE INCURABLE'
MlCAHl.2-16
Text and Translation (2) Hear, O peoples, all of you1 listen, O earth, and all who fill it; and Yahweh the Lord2 will be a witness against you, the Lord from his holy temple. (3) For behold, Yahweh is going forth from his place, and he will come down and tread upon3 the heights of the earth. (4) The mountains will melt beneath him, and the valleys split open like wax before fire, like water flowing down the slope. (5) All of this is on account of the rebellion of Jacob and because of the sin of the house of Israel.4 1. Literally, 'all of them'. The third-person plural following the vocative is apparently not ungrammatical however (cf. 1 Kgs 22.28), as is noted by Killers, Micah, p. 16; Rudolph, Micha, p. 32; G. Stansell, Micah and Isaiah: A Form and Tradition Historical Comparison (SBLDS 85; Atlanta: Scholars Press, 1988), p. 10. 2. The unusual occurrence, 'adonay YHWH makes the MT the more difficult text which should therefore be retained. Allen also notes that the repetitious nature of the double 'Lord, Yahweh' is 'a feature of Micah's poetry' (Micah, p. 264, n.b.). 3. Some scholars have deleted either darak or yarad based on IQpMic or the LXX. As Hillers notes, however, there is 'no compelling ground for omitting either' (Micah, p. 17). A similar conclusion is reached by Rudolph, Micha, p. 32; Stansell, Isaiah and Micah, p. 10; and Renaud, Formation, p. 12. Indeed, the similarity of the two words suggests one may have dropped out in some manuscripts due to haplography. For the phrase see J.L. Crenshaw, 'Wedorek 'al-bamote 'ares', CBQ 34 (1970), pp. 39-53. 4. Some have proposed emending to 'house of Judah' based on parallelism with the following verse (e.g. G. Fohrer, 'Micha 1', in F. Maas [ed.], Das Feme und
1. 'Surely Her Illnesses Are Incurable': Micah 1.2-16
33
Who is responsible for1 the transgression of Jacob? Is it not Samaria? And who is responsible for the death2 of Judah? Is it not Jerusalem? (6) So I will make Samaria as a ruin in the field,3 as a planting place for a vineyard. And I will pour into the valley her stones, and her foundations I will expose. (7) And all her hewn stones will be cut off, and all her riches4 will be burned with fire, and all her carvings I will make into a ruin. Surely from a whore's wages she has gathered them,5 and to a whore's wages they will return. (8) Over this I will wail and howl;6 I will walk about barefoot and naked; I will make lament like the jackals and moum like the ostriches.7 (9) Surely her illnesses8 are incurable;
nahe Wort [BZAW 105; Berlin: Topelmann, 1967], p. 70). Such an emendation is based on a too strict parallelism and obscures the rhetorical function of these verses. See the further discussion below under 'Goals and Strategy'. 1. Literally, 'Who is the sin of Jacob?' In this personification, the prophet is evidently seeking to establish the fact that as the capitals of the kingdom, Jerusalem and Samaria, are to be held responsible for the condition of the whole nation. 2. The MT 'high places' is enigmatic and the LXX ('sins') can be explained as a simplification. Rudolph has proposed repointing the Hebrew to bemot with the initial beth being understood as a beth essentiae (Micha, p. 33). It is possible that later scribes understood the consonantal text as 'high places' since the word occurs earlier (v. 3). 3. This unusual expression in the MT does not need to be emended. 4. The word has been taken to refer to images bought or made from the payment to a prostitute. See especially, G.E. Watson, 'Allusion, Irony and Wordplay in Micah 1, 7', Bib 65 (1984), pp. 103-5. It is questionable that the word has this meaning when used alone. See also the discussion under The Rhetorical Situation', below. 5. Some prefer emending the verb to the passive plural. Since the meaning is clear, the MT may be retained as the more difficult reading. 6. The LXX reads third feminine singular verbs throughout vv. 8-9, but Mur 88 supports the MT. 7. Literally, 'daughter of greed', probably a reference to the ostrich. See Luker, Doom and Hope, pp. 108-9. 8. The noun is plural in the MT.
34
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis surely it1 has come to Judah; it has reached to the gate of my people, up to Jerusalem.2 (10) Tell it not in Gath3 weep there not at all.4 on account of Beth-leaphrah I roll in the dust.5
1. The antecedent is probably 'wounds' although the verb is the masculine singular. 2. There are numerous textual difficulties in vv. 8-16 leading many scholars to emend the text liberally and, at times, unnecessarily. The most influential treatment of the text of Mic. 1.8-16 was that by K. Elliger ('Die Heimet des Propheten Micha', ZDPV 57 [1934], pp. 81-152). In his work Elliger sets forth four criteria for the reconstruction of the Hebrew text. First, it must be assumed that the right hand of the manuscript has been damaged, making it necessary to restore the beginning of each line. Second, the text has the 3 + 2 meter of a lament. Third, each sentence contains only one place name which serves as the basis for a word play. Finally, there are always two verses to a strophe (pp. 81-3). Elliger then used these criteria to offer a reconstruction of the text of Mic. 1.10-16. His criteria have also been adopted completely or in part by a number of scholars. Nevertheless, most emendations based on Elliger's assumptions are simply speculation and not text criticism per se. In fact, the first two criteria employed by Elliger have been seriously challenged by A.S. van der Woude ('Micah 1.10-16', in Hommages a Andre Dupont-Sommer [Paris: Adrien-Maisonneuve, 1971], pp. 348-50). In particular it is noted that only a few problems are encountered at the beginning of the lines. Moreover, it is doubtful that the text was written with each line beginning at the right-hand margin. Finally, even if each line did begin on the right-hand side, how does one explain apparent textual difficulties within the line? It is also doubtful that meter is a guide for textual reconstruction. This textual study thus does not follow Elliger's criteria, but seeks to establish a text based as much as possible upon accepted principles of textual criticism. For thorough discussions of the textual problems of this section, see R.C. Lux, An Exegetical Study ofMicah 1.8-16 (Dissertation, University of Notre Dame, 1976), pp. 44-68. Also, see S.J. Schwantes, 'Critical Notes on Micah 1.1016', VT 14 (1964), pp. 454-61. 3. The LXX presupposes tagJlu ('boast'), a reading accepted by Wolff (Micah, p. 13), Hillers (Micah, p. 25), and Fohrer ('Micha 1', p. 76). While a clear decision is difficult, the MT presents no problems and can be retained. 4. The MT bako 'al-tibku is generally emended to yield a command to weep. So Wolff, Micah, p. 43; Hillers, Micah, p. 25; Fohrer, 'Micha 1', p. 76; Mays, Micah, p. 56; Schwantes, 'Critical Notes', p. 455. The negative imperative may be explained as an indication that rites of mourning are not to take place in Gath. See Allen, Micah, p. 276; Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 89. 5. This translation retains the kerib and understands the initial beth to be a causal.
1. 'Surely Her Illnesses Are Incurable': Micah 1.2-16
35
(11) A Hebrew to you is the population of Shaphir.1 From her city2 the inhabitants of Zaanan did not come forth. A lament for Beth-haezel!3 He will withdraw his support4 from you. (12) Surely the inhabitants of Maroth waited anxiously for good; surely evil has come down from Yahweh to the gate of Jerusalem. (13) Harness the horses to the chariot, inhabitant of Lachish! She was the beginning of sin to the daughter of Zion, surely in you were found all the rebellions of Israel. (14) Therefore you shall restore a dowry unto Moresheth-Gath. The houses of Achzib are a deception to the kings of Israel. 1. This reading understands 'ibri to be a noun rather than the masculine, singular, imperative. To take the word as an imperative creates a rather inexplicable disagreement between the form of the verb and the masculine plural pronoun which follows. For the meaning, see 'The Rhetorical Situation', below. 2. The MT 'eryah-boset does not yield an intelligible meaning. The LXX apparently read 'areyah 'her cities she did not go forth'. It is possible that the MT is a misreading which resulted in the addition of the word boset as a gloss. Assuming the loss of an initial m and from the evidence of the LXX it is possible to read me 'iyrah 'from her city, she did not come forth'. So Elliger, 'Die Heimat', pp. 90-1 and Schwantes, 'Critical Notes', p. 456. 3. The MT literally reads, 'mourning (mispad) of Beth-haezel'. The proposed interpretation understands the phrase to be a call for a lamentation for Beth-haezel. While a lamed may have dropped out of the text before the name of the town, the preposition may have been understood. Although the LXX connects this phrase to the preceding verse, it understands Beth-haezel to be the object of mourning rather than the subject. In any case, adding a lamed before Beth-haezel or assuming that one is understood is preferable to assuming that the first half of the line is missing (Elliger, 'Die Heimat', p. 91) or that an entire word has dropped out of the text (Schwantes, 'Critical Notes', p. 457) or the emendation proposed by van Hoonacker who suggested that the original reading was the verb masar, but a confusion of the letter r with d led to a 'correction' of the text by the insertion of the p. 4. The noun is a hapax legomenon which appears to mean 'standing place' (A.S. Carrier, 'The hapax legomena of the Minor Prophets', Hebraica 5 [1888-89], pp. 209-14). If the word is being used figuratively it probably means 'support'. So Allen (Micah, p. 276), van Hoonacker (Le douze petits prophetes, p. 362), and Luker (Doom and Hope, p. 116 n. 20).
36
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis (15) Again I will bring a conqueror to you, inhabitant of Mareshah; unto Adullam shall the glory of Israel come. (16) Make yourself bald, and cut off your hair for the sake of the children of your delight; make yourself as bald as the vulture, for they have gone away from you.1
Unity and Date Although Mic. 1.2-16 has been divided into as many as five separate units, most modern scholars find only two units within this material: vv. 2-7 (or 2-8) and vv. 8-16 (or 10-16).2 The first unit can be classified as an oracle of judgment (Gerichtswort) introduced by a theophany description3 and the second unit is most often described as a lament or dirge.4 While these divisions and classifications are valid, a number of factors suggest that Mic. 1.2-16 can be understood as a unified discourse. First, Mic. 1.5 indicates that Yahweh is going forth in judgment for the offences of both Samaria and Jerusalem. Yet, vv. 6-7 describe only the judgment upon Samaria. The fact that nothing further is said concerning Jerusalem and Judah suggests that Mic. 1.2-7 is dependent on the following lament (8-16) which demonstrates the nature of 1. The verb is in the perfect. For the translation, see below under 'The Rhetorical Situation'. 2. Excellent surveys of various proposed divisions can be found in the following: Lux, Exegetical Study, pp. 38-41; Stansell, Micah and Isaiah, pp. 1314; and D. Schibler, Le Prophete Michee et le regne d'Ezechias de Juda (une etude historico-litteraire) (dissertation, Ecole Practique, Paris, 1980), pp. 6-18. 3. This classification is the conclusion of Stansell after a thorough and convincing examination of these verses (Micah and Isaiah, pp. 15-18). A good survey of other suggested classifications is given by Willi-Plein, Vorformen, p. 55. 4. Those who classify vv. 8-16 (or 10-16) as either a dirge or a lament include J.M.P. Smith et al., Micah, Zephaniah, Nahum, Habakkuk, Obadiah, and Joel (ICC; Edinburgh; T. & T. Clark, 1911), p. 41; B. Duhm, 'Anmerkungen zu den Zwolfpropheten', ZAW 31 (1911), p. 85; Crenshaw, 'Wedorek 'al-bamote 'ares\ p. 44; Jeremias, 'Die Deutung', p. 337; Rudolph, Micha, p. 38; Mays, Micah, p. 51; Renaud, Formation, p. 38. Stansell's observation should be noted: 'The more appropriate term here is dirge as the form elements., .and vocabulary suggest... words which belong to the mourning rites for the dead' (Micah and Isaiah, p. 43).
1. 'Surely Her Illnesses Are Incurable': Micah 1.2-16
37
judgment on Judah and Jerusalem thus fulfilling the expectation created in v. 5. A number of commentators have suggested that all or part of Mic. 5b is an addition by an editor seeking to apply the oracle of judgment to Jerusalem and to bind together the two parts of Mic. 1.2-16.1 Luker has noted, however, that the double question introduced by mi 'is used in the context of theophanic language in Exod. 15.11 and 2 Samuel 22 = Psalm 18, v. 33, as well as in Ps. 60.11 and 94.16, both laments'.2 It is thus likely that the second question of v. 5b is a typical feature of the genre rather than a redactional addition. While the reference to Jerusalem and the break in parallelism in v. 5 are unexpected, these characteristics may be understood as rhetorical devices meant to engage the audience (see below). A second indication that Mic. 1.2-16 is to be understood as a unity is the structure of this material. As noted above, vv. 2-16 is best understood as the description of a theophany followed by a lament. Luker notes a number of instances in which a lament or a recollection of distress is followed by a theophany or a recollection or anticipation of a theophany in which Yahweh fights on behalf of his people.3 Notable examples include Psalms 18; 77; 74; 89; and 83. In Mic. 1.216 one finds an artistic transformation of this pattern: now the theophany signals Yahweh's approach to fight against his own people, followed by a lament because God 'arrives to judge, condemn, and destroy'.4 There is thus a unity in Mic. 1.2-16 based on the connection between lament and theophany, even though the typical pattern is transformed in these verses by the creativity of the prophet. A third indication of unity is indicated by the function of vv. 8-9. As noted above, there is disagreement concerning whether these verses belong with the preceding or following material. In particular, it is not certain if the opening phrase of v. 8 ('over this') refers to the announcement of judgment on Samaria or the following description associated with Judah and Jerusalem. Renaud has undertaken an exhaustive study of the occurrences of the phrase 'over this' ('al-z'ot) 1. Jeremias, 'Die Deutung', pp. 333-35; Renaud, Formation, p. 74; Mays, Micah, p. 45; Lescow, 'Redaktionsgeschichtliche Analyse von Micha 1-5', p. 51. 2. Luker, Doom and Hope, pp. 151-52. 3. Luker, Doom and Hope, pp. 140-47. 4. Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 148.
38
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
in the Old Testament and has concluded that the phrase is never used at the beginning of a new unit; rather it refers back to preceding material and introduces statements which draw out the consequences of the preceding description.1 In Mic. 1.8 the phrase thus points back to what has been described (the sin of Samaria and its judgment) and connects this with what follows (the impact on Jerusalem). Verses 8 and 9 also introduce the theme of lamentation and thus serve as a transition to the lament of Mic. 1.10-16. While one cannot rule out the possibility that these verses were added by a redactor, it is certain that they function to unite Mic. 1.2-16 into one discourse.2 Finally, a number of factors make the material in Mic. 1.2-16 distinct from the following material. First, the focus of Mic. 1.2-16 is Jerusalem and Samaria. As we shall see, even the lament of 10-16 is concerned with both Samaria and Jerusalem. In contrast, the discourse that begins in Mic. 2.1 mentions neither capital by name. Secondly, Mic. 1.2-16 concerns the loss of the cities of the Shephelah and the expected destruction of Samaria while Mic. 2.Iff focuses on a powerful group in Israel which is to be punished by losing its land. Finally, the reason for judgment differs in the two chapters. In Mic. 1.2-16 the only sin that can be identified is Samaria's gathering of goods like a prostitute (vv. 6-7), but in Mic. 2.Iff the sin relates to the taking of land by powerful oppressors. The situation presupposed in Mic. 1.2-16 thus unites that material and at the same time separates it as a distinct unit from what follows. While various historical backgrounds have been proposed for the material in Mic. 1.2-16, it is sufficient to note here that almost all scholars assign the bulk of this chapter to the prophet Micah and the eighth century BCE. Two notable exceptions must be mentioned, however. On the one hand, Alfred Jepsen assigns vv. 6-7 to the prophet Hosea rather than Micah.3 Jepsen's conclusion is based on the similarity of the theme of these verses to themes in Hosea and the 1. Renaud, Formation, pp. 38-41. See also the comments of Hillers (Micah, p. 23): 'Moreover, "over this" typically refers back, not forward; note Jer. 31.26; Ps. 32.6; Isa. 57.6; 64.11 (EV 12); Jer. 5.9, 29; 9.8; and Amos 8.8...' Similar observations are made by Wolff (Micah, p. 48). 2. It should be noted that Renaud sees the unity of the chapter as redactional (Formation, pp. 38-41) as does Wolff (Micah, p. 59). 3. A. Jepsen, 'Kleine Beitriige zum Zwolfprophetenbuch', ZAW 56 (1938), pp. 96-99.
1. 'Surely Her Illnesses Are Incurable': Micah 1.2-16
39
belief that Mic. 1.6-7 constitutes the only references to idolatry in the parts of the book believed to be authentic. Again, however, most scholars have been unwilling to deny the possibility that these verses come from Micah himself. At the very least, it is impossible to prove that these verses are a fragment of an oracle from Hosea: 'Comment distinguer sur las base d'un ou deux versets le language de deux prophetes d'un meme epoqueT1 On the other hand, Volkmar Fritz has suggested that Mic. 1.2-7 was added by an anti-Samaritan redactor of the fourth century BCE.2 Such a theory is based largely on the belief that Micah prophesied only against Jerusalem at a point late in Hezekiah's reign. Any reference to Samaria must thus find its date in a time of later conflict between Jerusalem and Samaria. However, more scholars are unwilling a priori to deny the possibility that Micah prophesied before the fall of Samaria to the Assyrians in 722 BCE. An attempt to discern the exact nature of the historical background presupposed by these verses must be determined by a careful analysis of the rhetorical situation reflected in Mic. 1.2-16. The Rhetorical Situation Objective Factors The major objective factor which has shaped the discourse in Mic. 1.2-16 is summarized in v. 9: 'Her illnesses are incurable; surely it has come to Judah; it has reached to the gate of my people, up to Jerusalem'. Two important pieces of information are revealed by this verse. First, Samaria has been overtaken by some sort of disaster which the prophet calls 'her illnesses'. From vv. 6-7 it is clear that the prophet believes that this disaster will eventually culminate in the destruction of Samaria. Second, this disaster has spread to Judah and has come up to Jerusalem itself. Although the nature of the illnesses is not immediately revealed, it is safe to conclude that the disaster which initially threatened Samaria now infects Judah and threatens Jerusalem. 1. Renaud, Formation, p. 42. 2. V. Fritz, 'Das Wort gegen Samaria: Mi 1, 2-7', ZAW 86 (1974), pp. 31631. A similar conclusion was reached by Lescow, 'Micha 1-5', pp. 82-83.
40
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
It is possible that vv. 10-16 reveal the nature of the illness which has spread to Judah and threatens Jerusalem. In fact, the adversity which damages Judah and Jerusalem is summarized in v. 16b: 'For they [the cities] have gone away from you [Jerusalem]'. It is generally believed that this verse describes the exile of the cities mentioned in Mic. 1.10-16 since the verb which is used often carries the meaning 'to go into exile'. This conclusion, however, is far from certain. D.E. Gowan has shown that the verb glh became a technical term for exile only in the exilic period.1 Before 586 BCE the verb could simply mean 'remove' or even 'leave'. Moreover, when the verb is used in the restricted, technical meaning 'go/take into exile' the hiphil and hophal stems are normally used. The qal form in Mic. 1.16 could thus mean nothing more than 'they have left you'. In any case, it is not necessary to interpret the term in Mic. 1.16 in light of its later development. A careful reading of vv. 10-15 suggests that the disaster which has spread to Judah and Jerusalem is not the loss of some cities to an enemy; rather these cities on their own have undertaken a course of action which is harmful and disloyal to Jerusalem. The opening verse of the lament with its reference to Gath probably echoes the lament of David on the occasion of Saul's death (2 Sam. 1.19-27). In Mic. 1.10 the saying 'is used proverbially: let not the enemy hear of our defeat'.2 The following line poses grammatical difficulties, but probably continues the thought of the first line: 'Weep [there] not at all'. The idea seems to be that acts of mourning should not be displayed in the presence of the proverbial enemy of Israel. From the address in v. 10 it cannot be determined for certain whether Gath is considered a city of Judah, but it does not seem likely. The prophet explains in lOb that his act of mourning (rolling in dust) is due to Beth-leaphrah, although he does not give details of that town's actions. Verse 11 is an enigmatic address which apparently characterizes the population of Shaphir as being like a 'Hebrew'. Whatever the exact significance of the term, its etymology indicates that 'Hebrew' was a term applied to one who had crossed a boundary
1. D.E. Gowan, 'The Beginning of Exile-Theology and the Root glh', ZAW 87 (1975), pp. 204-207. 2. Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 158.
1. 'Surely Her Illnesses Are Incurable': Micah 1.2-16
41
whether that boundary was geographical, cultic, or otherwise.1 The thought of v. 11 is apparently that the population of Shaphir is like one who has 'crossed over'. While it is not possible to know the exact meaning of the masculine plural pronoun (laketri), it is reasonable to assume that the antecedent is Samaria and Jerusalem who have been personified in v. 5 and who was linked together in v. 9. Verse 11 can thus be seen as an accusation that Shaphir is regarded by Jerusalem and Samaria as one who has crossed over; that is, the town has withdrawn from the political arena of the capitals. The addresses to Zaanan, Beth-haezel and Maroth are also to be understood as accusations. The description of Zaanan probably means that she did not come out to render military assistance in a time of trouble.2 The textually difficult address to Beth-haezel may accuse the town of defection. The prophet's audience is apparently called to lament over Beth-haezel because that town has withdrawn its support from them. Once again, the masculine pronoun (from you) may be taken as a reference to the cities of Samaria and Jerusalem which the prophet had personified in v. 5b. The description of Maroth indicates that the inhabitants of that city hoped for good or political tranquility because evil had come down to the gates of Jerusalem. Lachish is singled out for a harsh condemnation by the prophet. The accusation against the town that she is the 'beginning of sin to the daughter of Zion' may be interpreted in several ways. Some have suggested that the sin of Lachish is that of reliance on horses and chariots.3 Indeed, trust in military might, especially horses and chariots, is prohibited by Deut. 17.6, and is condemned by other prophets (Hos. 10.13; 14.3; Isa. 2.7; 30.16; 31.1). A second interpretation suggests that the sin of Lachish is cultic in nature. Excavations at Lachish in 1966 and 1968 uncovered a ninthcentury BCE Israelite sanctuary along with a raised platform which some have interpreted to be a 'high place' with a massebah (pillar) and 1. The exact significance and origin of the word is, of course, the subject of much debate. It is sufficient to note that the root of the word appears to mean 'cross over' (BDB, pp. 716-20). Also, see the observation of B.C. Bissel ('The Use of 'br and Its Compounds in the Hexateuch', Hebraica 1 [1883-84], pp. 9-12) that the term basically means 'what is beyond, the other side of something' (p. 9). 2. Mays, Micah, p. 57. 3. Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 110; Wolff, Micah, p. 62.
42
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
asherah. Thus, Boyd has concluded: 'Perhaps it was this bamah which occasioned Micah's bitter indictment of Lachish...M A third interpretation is more political in nature. B.Z. Luria has argued that 2 Kgs 14.17-22 suggests that Amaziah ruled the cities of the Shephelah for 15 years from Lachish as a rival king to Azariah.2 Luria's interpretation, however, cannot be accepted since the biblical text only indicates that Amaziah was assassinated in Lachish after fleeing from Jerusalem and never mentions any political rule in Lachish. Nevertheless, Luria's hypothesis does underscore the fact that Lachish was a large and important city capable of rivaling Jerusalem in influence and political power. From the limited information in Mic. 1.13, it is impossible to say with certainty whether the sin of Lachish was military, cultic, or political. In the context of addresses to cities which have been disloyal to Jerusalem, it would appear that the accusation is primarily political in nature: 'she was the beginning of sin to the daughter of Zion'. In any case, the command to 'harness the horses to the chariot' appears to be a sarcastic command for the city to prepare either for battle or for flight. The connection between vv. 13 and 14 is uncertain. Although one would expect to find an announcement of judgment upon Lachish after the accusations against that city, v. 14 appears to concern the departure of Moresheth-Gath. The second, feminine singular verb is usually taken as a reference to 'Israel' or the 'daughter of Zion' (v. 13) and it is suggested that Jerusalem is to give a dowry to Moresheth-Gath as a 'parting gift' since she is going into exile.3 It more likely that the verb 'you will give' takes Lachish as its subject since the initial word of v. 14 ('therefore') indicates a connection between the 'rebellions' of Lachish and the fate of MoreshethGath. Rather than marriage imagery, the prophet may have had in mind the divorce practices, reflected in Deut. 24.1-4, which required that the dowry be returned when the husband divorced the wife with1. B. Boyd, 'Lachish', IDBSup, p. 526. See also Y. Aharoni, 'Trial Excavation in the "Solar Shrine" of Lachish', IEJ 18 (1968), pp. 157-69. 2. B.Z. Luria, The Political Background for Micha: Ch. 1', Beth Mikra 71,4 (1977), pp. 403-12 (Hebrew); English summary, p. 532. 3. Hillers suggests that the second, feminine singular is likely addressed to Jerusalem (Micah, p. 27, n. m.).
1. 'Surely Her Illnesses Are Incurable': Micah 1.2-16
43
out grounds. 1 This implies that Lachish and Moresheth-Gath are parting ways. Since Lachish apparently has defected (v. 13), Moresheth-Gath must be remaining loyal to Jerusalem. This situation reflects the 'divorce' of the two cities. The accusation against Achzib in Mic. 1.14b presents two difficulties in interpretation. First, it is unclear why the plural 'kings' occurs in this verse. Two interpretations are possible. The plural may refer to either the Judean monarchy in general or to the king of Judah and the king of Israel. Since the prophet is concerned with both Samaria and Jerusalem (v. 5; vv. 8-9) the latter interpretation seems more probable. In this case 'Israel' would refer to the combined states of north and south (see below). A second problem is determining why the prophet refers to the 'houses' of Achzib. A. Demsky has proposed, on the basis of 1 Chron. 4.21, that 'houses' refers to royal factories which produced 'either the pottery needed for the royal retinue or the special royal standardized pottery that would later be stamped with the Imlk seals'.2 Thus, the verse is thought to mean that the royal factories were a loss to the kings of Israel. On the other hand, Hillers has noted that the word 'akzab concerns not just a loss 'but something which deceives and disappoints, which does not fit well with "factories"'.3 A more probable interpretation is that 'houses' refers not to buildings but to the leading clans and families of the city.4 Thus, the ruling families of the town of Achzib have in some way failed or disappointed the royal leadership of Jerusalem and Samaria. Verse 15 announces a time when Mareshah and Adullam will be restored. The city of Mareshah will be conquered again or repossessed, presumably by Jerusalem, and the 'glory of Israel' shall return to Adullam. It is probable that here the 'glory' refers to the military might, prestige and power of the nation.5 It is also probable that the 1. See R. Westbrook, The Prohibition on Restoration of Marriage in Deut. 24.1-4', in S. Japhet (ed.), Studies in Bible 1986 (SH 31; Jerusalem: Magnes, 1986), pp. 387-405. 2. A. Demsky, 'The Houses of Achzib: A Critical Note on Micah 1.14b', IE] 16 (1966), pp. 211-15. Demsky's proposal is accepted by Aharoni, 'Trial Excavations', p. 169. 3. Hillers, Micah, p. 105. 4. For examples of this meaning of 'house', see BOB, pp. 109-10. 5. See Mays, Micah, p. 59.
44
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
term 'Israel' refers to the people of Yahweh in general rather than just to the northern kingdom. The clear implication of v. 15 is that both of these towns are lost to Jerusalem and must be retaken. Mic. 1.10-16 thus presupposes a situation in which Jerusalem has suffered the loss of support from a number of towns. Although these verses are cast in the form of a lament or a dirge, they function to make accusations against these towns. It is unlikely that these cities were chosen at random by the prophet. While it is true that the towns are close to Micah's home town of Moresheth-Gath, this fact alone does not explain why Micah addresses them. On the other hand, it is unlikely that the prophet included these towns in his lament solely because their names could yield good word plays1 since word plays could be derived from any number of sites in Judah and Israel. It is more logical to conclude that these particular towns are addressed because they were ones that had defected from Jerusalem. It is generally agreed that the towns addressed in the lament of Mic. 1.10-16 are all located in a limited geographical area in the Shephelah.2 The location of a number of the cities is fairly certain. In particular, Lachish is identified with Tell ed-Duweir with a high degree of certainty.3 Even a recent attempt by G.W. Ahlstrb'm4 to cast doubt on the identification of Lachish with Tell ed-Duweir has received no support and has been effectively refuted.5 The locations of Mareshah and Adullam are also fairly certain and proposed identifications of these sites are accepted by all scholars. Name retention, biblical and extra-biblical evidence, and archaeological excavations suggest that Tell Sandahannah, one mile southeast of Beit Jibrin and immediately east of Kirbet Mer'ash, is the site of
1. In contrast to Fohrer ('Micha 1', p. 79) and Allen (Micah, p. 278) who suggest the names were more or less picked at random for the purpose of wordplay. 2. For a thorough investigation of the location of the cities, see Lux, Exegetical Study, pp. 119-210. 3. See R.W. Hamilton, 'Lachish', IDE, III, pp. 53-54. Also, the similarity of the Lachish Relief to the town is noted by D. Ussishkin, The "Lachish Relief and the Siege of Lachish', IEJ 30 (1980), pp. 174-95. 4. G.W. Ahlstrom, 'Is Tell ed-Duweir Ancient Lachish?' PEQ 112 (1980), pp. 7-9. 5. G.I. Davies, 'Tell ed-Duweir = Ancient Lachish: A Response to G.W. Ahlstrom', PEQ 114 (1982), pp. 25-28.
1. 'Surely Her Illnesses Are Incurable': Micah 1.2-16
45
Mareshah.1 The site of ancient Adullam is generally thought to be Tell Sheikh Madkhur about nine and a half miles east of Beit Jibrin.2 This site corresponds to rather precise information from Eusebius and Jerome3 and is in the general location suggested by biblical texts such as Josh. 15.35 and 2 Chron. 11.7. The site of Moresheth-Gath can also be identified with a fair degree of confidence. Aside from Mic. 1.14 Moresheth is mentioned only in Mic. 1.1 and Jer. 26.18, both of which identify the place as the home of Micah. The designation 'Moresheth-Gath' in Mic. 1.14 suggests that the site must have been in the vicinity of Gath (Tell es-Safi or 'Araq el-Menshiyeh). Moresheth-Gath is probably to be identified with Tell ej-Judeideh about two miles north of Beit Jibrin. 4 This location corresponds to the information given by Jerome as well as the information from the Madeba map which locates the town just northeast of Eluetheropolis.5 From the excavations of Tell ej-Judeideh by Bliss and Macalister it is clear that the site was occupied in the eighth century.6 The identification of Moresheth-Gath as Tell ej-Judeideh should probably be accepted. While the location of Lachish, Adullam, Mareshah and MoreshethGath can be made with a high degree of confidence, only a probable identification can be suggested for other cities in Mic. 1.10-16. Particularly problematic is the question of the location of Gath. Extrabiblical evidence is not especially helpful and the interpretation of
1. P.M. Abel, Geographic de la Palestine II (Paris: Gabalda, 1938), pp. 37879. J. Simons, The Geographical and Topographical Texts of the Old Testament (Leiden: Brill, 1959), p. 473. 2. V.R. Gold, 'Adullam', IDE, I, p. 51; Lux, Exegetical Study, p. 198; Simons, Geographical and Topographical Texts, p. 146. 3. E.R. Conder, 'TheOnomasticon', PEFQS 28 (1896), p. 229; Lux, Exegetical Study, p. 193. Also, see Simons, Geographical and Topographical Texts, p. 146. 4. V.R. Gold, 'Moresheth-Gath', IDE, III, p. 438. This identification was first proposed by J. Jeremias ('Moreshet-Gath, die Heimat des Propheten Micah', PJ 29 [1933], pp. 42-53) and has been accepted by Elliger ('Die Heimat', p. 121), Mays (Micah, p. 59), Fohrer ('Micha 1', p. 77), Lux (Exegetical Study, p. 122), and Abel (Geographic II, p. 392). 5. See Abel, Geographic II, p. 392; Lux, Exegetical Study, p. 169. 6. F.J. Bliss and R.A.S. Macalister, Excavations in Palestine During the Years 1898-1900 (London: Harrison and Son, 1902), p. 106.
46
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
biblical references is debated.1 Nevertheless, 1 Chron. 11.8 appears to locate the city in the area of Mareshah, Adullam and Soco, and Eusebius also locates Gath in this same area.2 Bliss and Macalister suggested that Tell es-Safis, which revealed four levels of occupation, including one from the iron age ('Israelite'), should be identified with ancient Gath.3 On the other hand, Welten has argued that the site of Gath is 'Araq el-Menshiyeh, some 10 miles west of Tell ej-Judeideh.4 Unfortunately, neither site has produced evidence which allows a conclusive identification with Gath. While it is likely that one of the sites is the ancient Philistine town, one cannot make a certain identification. There is sufficient biblical and extra-biblical information on Achzib to suggest it is to be located in the vicinity of Mareshah and Abdullam. Josh. 15.44 lists Achzib immediately after Mareshah. It is also possible that the Cozeba of 1 Chron. 4.21-22, mentioned with Mareshah,5 is identical to Achzib, although this is not certain. In addition, it is generally believed that the Chezib of Gen. 38.5 near Adullam is the same as Achzib.6 In his excavations at Lachish, Aharoni discovered a partially legible ostracon which apparently lists individuals who are to receive some commodity.7 The last line of the list reads 'the house of Achzi[b]'. The ostracon may thus suggest that a place or a clan named Achzib was in 1. Gath is mentioned along with Jerusalem and Gaza in the Amarna letters (ANET, p. 489). Josh. 13.3; 11.21; 2 Chron. 26.6 mentions Gath with Ashdod. Gath is mentioned with Ekron in 1 Sam. 17.52 and 1 Sam. 7.14. The literatur the subject of the location of Gath includes: B. Mazar, 'Gath and Gittaim', IEJ 4 (1954), pp. 227-35; G.E. Wright, 'Fresh Evidence for the Philistine Story', BA 29 (1966), pp. 70-86; W.F.Albright, The Sites of Ekron', Gath, and Libnah', AASOR II-III (1923), pp. 7-12. 2. Bliss and Macalister, Excavations, p. 66. 3. Bliss and Macalister, Excavations, pp. 62-66. Anson Rainey also argues for this identification of ancient Gath ('Gath of the Philistines', Christian News from Israeli*, 4 [1966], pp. 25-30). 4. P. Welten, Die Konigs-Stempel. Ein Beitrag zur Militarpolitlk Judas unter Hiskia und Josia (Abhandlungen des Deutschen Palastinvereins 1; Weisbaden: Otto Harrassowitz, 1969), pp. 68-81. See also Wolff, Micah, pp. 59-60. 5. Demsky, The Houses of Achzib', p. 214. 6. Abel, Geographic II, p. 237; Lux, Exegetical Study, p. 81; Simons, Geographical and Topographical Texts, p. 211. 7. Aharoni, Trial Excavation', pp. 168-69.
1. 'Surely Her Illnesses Are Incurable': Micah 1.2-16
47
the vicinity of Lachish. Unfortunately, even with the biblical and extra-biblical information it is difficult to find a definite site for Achzib. Tell el-Beida, three miles southwest of Adullam, was proposed by Elliger1 and has been accepted by the majority of scholars. Simons, however, confesses that the location is unknown and can only be very tentatively identified with Tell el-Beida.2 Finally, the exact location of a number of cities listed in Mic. 1.1016 is unknown. Mic. 1.10 contains the only reference to Beth-leaphrah and proposed sites for this town remain highly speculative.3 Similarly, locations for Shaphir, referred to only in Mic. 1.10, are based only on possible name retention.4 Thus, the identification of Shaphir cannot be made with any degree of certainty. The location of Zaanan is also unknown. Even the probable equation of Zaanan with the Zenan of Josh. 15.37 which is proposed by some scholars provides little help in locating the site other than placing it in the general vicinity of Lachish. 5 The exact location, however, still remains unknown. A majority of scholars have concluded that Beth-haezel and Maroth cannot be identified. Indeed, the fact that there are no other references to these sites in biblical or non-biblical texts makes any proposed identifications uncertain.6 From the proposed identifications of the cities mentioned in Mic. 1.10-16 it is clear that they lie within a limited geographical area in the Shephelah. This area stretches from Lachish (Tell ed-Duweir) northward to Gath and reaches eastward as far as Adullam. While the exact location of four towns cannot be known, it is reasonable to conclude that they are found in this same area. Thus all the cities are to be located in the Shephelah of Judah. 1. Elliger, 'Die Heimat', pp. 121-22. 2. Simons, Geographical and Topographical Texts, p. 221. 3. See Lux, Exegetical Study, p. 139. Simons locates no less than five possible sites for this city (Geographical and Topographical Texts, p. 472). 4. A possible identification is with one of the villages named es-Suwafir near Askalon (Conder, The Onomasticon', p. 243). However, identification is based solely on possible name retention, and is questionable since it apparently lay in Philistine rather than Judean territory (see Lux, Exegetical Study, pp. 141-42). 5. Elliger, 'Die Heimat', p. 127. See especially the comments by D. Kellermann, 'Uberlieferungsprobleme Alttestamentlicher Ortsnamen', VT 28 (1978), pp. 423-32. 6. See the discussion in Lux, Exegetical Study, pp. 127-47.
48
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
Mic. 1.10-16 presents us with a description of cities in a limited area of the Shephelah which, perhaps led by Lachish, have demonstrated disloyalty toward Samaria and Jerusalem. If this defection is the illness which has come down to Jerusalem, it is reasonable to conclude that Samaria must be facing the same sort of defections since it is her illness which has spread to Jerusalem (v. 9). Although the prophet apparently accuses the towns of disloyalty to both capitals, his focus on Jerusalem in vv. 9, 14 and 16 suggests that his audience and his sympathies were with Jerusalem. It may be that these rebellions against the capitals are the 'sins [rebellions] of the house of Israel' and the 'transgressions of the house of Jacob' (v. 5). If this interpretation of v. 5 is correct, the capitals are considered to be responsible for both the 'death' of Judah and the 'rebellions' of Israel (v. 5b). Yet Samaria must ultimately be held responsible, for it is her wound that threatens her destruction and has now spread to Judah. Unfortunately, it is difficult to discern what Samaria has done to make her responsible for the threat of destruction that she has brought upon herself. Most commentators have concluded that the sin of Samaria is related to cultic offences, especially idolatry. A careful reading of vv. 6-7 casts doubt on this interpretation, however. First, it is not clear that the objects mentioned in v. 7 have provoked the anger of Yahweh. In v. 6 the stones and foundations of Samaria are the objects of Yahweh's wrath, but one would hardly conclude that they have provoked that wrath. Similarly, while in v. 7 the pesilim and 'asabim are the objects of Yahweh's judgment, it does not necessarily follow that they are the sole cause of judgment; rather, their destruction is an inevitable part of the destruction of the city of Samaria itself. Secondly, since Mic. 1.6 is clearly associated with the buildings of Samaria, the pesilim and asabim may refer not to 'idols' or cultic paraphernalia, but to carvings and hewn stones which decorate buildings in the city. It may be of significance that Amos alludes to the elaborate buildings and ivory carvings of Samaria (Amos 4.11; 6.4). * 1. It should be noted that Wolff recognizes that the focus of these verses is the magnificent buildings of Samaria (see below), but his interpretation of v. 7a as a reference to cultic objects forces him to classify v. 7a as a later addition (Micah, p. 42).
1. 'Surely Her Illnesses Are Incurable': Micah 1.2-16
49
In addition, later Aramaic documents use the term psl to refer to hewn stones of a temple, but these appear to be merely parts of the temple construction rather than cultic objects.1 It is thus possible that v. 7a, like v. 6, is concerned with the buildings of Samaria. While v. 6 focuses on the stones and foundations of the buildings, v. 7a perhaps focuses on the hewn stones and bas reliefs that adorn those buildings. Finally, the noun 'etnan which occurs three times in v. 7 does not necessarily refer to cultic offences. Medieval commentators understood the term to signify either gifts of money to the temple or the wealth of the nation.2 Indeed, Mays correctly points out that other than a reference in Hosea (which may be open to more than one interpretation) the term 'hire' ('etnan) 'is applied to political (Ezek. 16.3Iff) and economic relations (Isa. 23.17rf) as a characterization of gifts or profits'.3 It is also significant that the term zanah (7b) in some cases refers to commercial and political involvement with foreign nations (Isa. 23.17; 2 Kgs 9.22; Nahum 3-4; Ezek. 16.13).4 The essence of Samaria's sin may thus have to do with foreign political and economic alliances and associations which have allowed her to acquire the wealth represented by her magnificent buildings. Although he takes v. 7a to be a later addition, the same conclusion is reached by H.W. Wolff: Micah probably had in mind that Samaria gave commercial goods and tribute to the great power Assyria, and therefore 'gathered' 'whore's wages', which made possible the splendid buildings for the royal residence.5
It would thus appear that Micah is more concerned about Samaria's political and economic entanglements than idolatry per se. It may thus be that the deeds of Samaria which are responsible for her judgment 1. What may be significant is that the word is used to describe the features of the Temple at Yeb. In particular, the gates of stone are described as 'built with hewn blocks of stone': bnyn psylh zy bn (Aramaic Papyri of the Fifth Century BC [ed. A. Cowley; Osnabriick: Otto Zeller, 1967] no. 3, p. 113). 2. Noted by B. Halper, The Root TNN', AJSL 24 (1907-1908), p. 366. 3. Mays, Micah, p. 48. 4. S. Erlandsson, 'zanah\ TDOT, IV, pp. 99-104. 5. Wolff, Micah, p. 58. It is more likely, however, that Samaria profited from her submission and support of Assyria. See the discussion above.
50
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
as well as the 'rebellions' of Israel are the economic and political policies which the capital has pursued. In some way these policies have created a sickness of rebellion which has spread into Judah and to the very gates of Jerusalem. Subjective Factors The above consideration of the objective factors of the rhetorical situation has already touched indirectly on a number of more subjective factors. In particular, the subjective factors of the rhetorical situation consist of the assessment of events in the material. First, the prophet believes that the capital cities Jerusalem and Samaria bear responsibility for the difficulties that now plague the nation. Verse 5 makes it clear that Micah considers Samaria and Jerusalem to be responsible for the sins of Israel and the 'death' of Judah and must thus bear the brunt of judgment. The prophet implies, however, that the greater responsibility lies with Samaria since he laments that it is her 'illnesses' which have spread to Jerusalem. It is not surprising therefore that the punishment envisioned for Samaria is worse than that envisioned for Jerusalem. While Jerusalem has lost her 'children', Samaria will be completely destroyed. The differences in the judgment announced upon the two cities may betray a sympathetic attitude toward Jerusalem. Certainly, the personification of Jerusalem as a mother grieving for her lost children evokes a measure of sympathy for the Judean capital. Moreover, the prophet portrays Jerusalem as a victim both of Samaria's illness and of the sins of Lachish. Micah also foresees for Jerusalem a restoration beyond judgment. As we shall see, this unwavering belief in a renewal after disaster becomes increasingly important in the prophet's thought in subsequent discourses. Nevertheless, belief in restoration is already present in the lament of Mic. 1.10-16. If the above interpretation of Mic. 1.15 is correct, the prophet has confidence that a new 'conqueror' will retake Mareshah and the 'glory of Israel' will return to Adullam. Micah is thus able to lament Jerusalem's loss while simultaneously announcing a time when these losses will be reversed. Unlike the judgment on Samaria, the prophet suggests that beyond Jerusalem's misfortune lies restoration and renewal. A second assessment of the situation is the prophet's assertion that the defection of the cities of the Shephelah is a manifestation of Yahweh's judgment. Micah envisions Yahweh coming forth to judge
1. 'Surely Her Illnesses Are Incurable': Micah 1.2-16
51
his people and in particular to judge Samaria and Jerusalem. The evil which has come to the very gate of Jerusalem is described as having come 'from Yahweh' (v. 12).The evil is apparently the loss of the cities of the Shephelah since the cities addressed in Mic. 1.10-15 move ever closer to Jerusalem. Finally, it is Yahweh himself who is portrayed as announcing and carrying out the destruction of Samaria (vv. 6-7). It should be noted that Micah sees judgment as underway, but not yet completed. It is clear that a number of cities of the Shephelah are already lost to Jerusalem. On the other hand, Samaria's judgment lies at an unspecified time in the future. The prophet thus understands the present catastrophe which confronts the capitals as but a prelude to the disaster which will come to Samaria. This understanding is made clea both by the reference to Samaria's sickness as 'terminal' and by the direct announcement of judgment in vv. 6-7. Goals and Strategy What is the goal of a speech such as Mic. 1.2-16? On the one hand, it is clear that the prophet does not explicitly attempt to persuade his audience to take a certain course of action. Other than calling his audience to mourn, Micah does not prescribe what his hearers should do in the present situation. On the other hand, the prophet does present his audience with a particular view of the current situation. He invites them to see a connection between sin and judgment and paints for them a picture of the present catastrophe as the work of Yahweh himself. In addition, Micah offers a picture of Samaria and Jerusalem not as the glory of the nation, but as responsible for the sin currently troubling the people. The audience is allowed to imagine Samaria as a prostitute and Jerusalem as a mother mourning for her children. In short, Micah presents the audience with his view of the contemporary situation. His goal is to present that view in such a way that his audience is persuaded that his understanding and assessment are correct. It can be assumed that if the audience accepts the prophet's view of matters, appropriate actions might follow. However, in Mic. 1.2-16 Micah concentrates on the prior and more fundamental task of convincing his hearers of his assessment of the situation. The discourse which the prophet produces can be outlined as follows:
52 I.
II.
III.
IV.
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis Introduction A. Summons to hear addressed to the nations and the earth (v. 2a) B. Reason for summons: Yahweh will be a witness against you (2b) Description of Theophany A. The coming forth of Yahweh (3) B. Effects of Yahweh's approach upon nature (4) C. Reason for Yahweh's approach (5) 1. Sin of Jacob, transgression of Israel (5a) 2. Responsibility for sin (5b) a. Samaria: the sin of Jacob b. Jerusalem ('death' of Judah) D. Future result of Yahweh's appearance (6-7) 1. Destruction of Samaria (6-7a) 2. Reason: her goods are gathered from a prostitute's hire (7b) Reaction of Prophet: Lamentation (8-9) A. Description of prophet's mourning (8) B. Reasons for mourning (9) 1. Samaria's wickedness is incurable (9a) 2. The sickness has spread to Judah and to Jerusalem (9b) Prophet's description of sickness which has come to the gate of Jerusalem (10-15) A. Indication of disaster: Address to Gath (v. lOa) B. Prophet's mourning for Beth-leaphra (lOb) C. Shaphir is like a Hebrew to Samaria and Jerusalem (1 la) D. Zaanan does not come forth (lib) E. Beth-haezel will withdraw support (lie) from 'you' (Samaria and Jerusalem) F. Maroth hopes for good because of Jerusalem's misfortune (12) G. Lachish: Leader of sin for daughter of Zion (13) H. Moresheth-Gath must be given a dowry (14a) I. Houses of Achzib are a disappointment to kings (of Jerusalem and Samaria) (14b) J. Mareshah will be reconquered (15a) K. To Adullam the glory shall return (15b)
1. 'Surely Her Illnesses Are Incurable': Micah 1.2-16 V.
53
Conclusion: Summons to Jerusalem to mourn (16) A. Specific acts of mourning prescribed (16a, ba) B. Reason for mourning: they have gone away from you (16bp)
An introduction functions to catch the attention of the audience and to make them willing to hear the speaker.1 Mic. 1.2 effectively achieves these goals. The summons to hear attracts the attention of the audience. In addition, the announcement that Yahweh is to 'witness' against the peoples would lead an Israelite or Jerusalemite audience possibly to expect oracles against other nations or a description of a theophany in which Yahweh fights against the enemies of Israel.2 Mic. 1.2 is thus crucial in engaging the attention of the audience and making them receptive to the message which follows. The following passage (vv. 2-4) is a description of a theophany composed of traditional elements with which the audience was probably familiar.3 The reality of Yahweh's approach is conveyed by a vivid description of nature's reaction. The description of the destructive effects of Yahweh's approach is heightened by the use of similes. Only after Micah has involved the audience and rendered them willing to hear his message does he reveal the reason for Yahweh's approach. Yahweh does not come forth because of the sins of foreign nations; rather, the descent of Yahweh and the accompanying destruction is caused by 'the transgression of Jacob' and the 'sins of the house of Israel'. While the announcement may have surprised an audience in Jerusalem, the reference to Jacob and Israel is ambiguous enough to allow his audience to assume the northern kingdom is meant. In fact, the prophet's immediate reference to Samaria reinforces his audience's assumption.4 It is only with the concluding question of v. 5 that Micah makes it 1. E.P.J. Corbett, Classical Rhetoric for the Modern Student (New York: Oxford University Press, 2nd edn, 1971), pp. 303-19. In particular, Corbett notes the introduction should 'render the audience attentive, benevolent, and docile' (p. 314). 2. J. Willis, 'Some Suggestions on the Interpretation of Micah I, 2', VT 18 (1968), pp. 378-79. 3. These elements are noted in the outline: (a) the description of Yahweh's approach; (b) the effects upon nature. See Mays, Micah, p. 42. 4. Such is the insightful observation of Allen, Micah, p. 272.
54
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
clear that Judah and Jerusalem are also responsible for the angry approach of Yahweh. Obviously, the prophet is utilizing what can be described as the 'rhetoric of entrapment'. 1 The judgment is first announced in such a way that the audience can agree to the justice of that judgment. The speaker then turns the hearer's agreement on them as he announces that the judgment is against them. Verse 5 uses several rhetorical devices to focus the audience's attention and to heighten the emotional impact of the announcement of sin. First, these verses are cast in the form of questions which function in much the same way as so-called rhetorical questions.2 The audience is thus not allowed to be disinterested, detached listeners; rather they are forced to participate in the persuasive process since each hearer must formulate an answer to the questions. In addition to focusing the audience's attention, the questions create a strong emotional impact by means of personification. The questions seek to establish who is responsible for the 'sins' of Jacob and the 'death' of Judah. The prophet accomplishes this with the technique of personification which may strike the modern audience as strange. Each question begins with the interrogative 'who' (mf) and thus personifies the cities of Samaria and Jerusalem. Corbett notes that such personification creates an emotional response in the audience: "This is one figure of speech that should be reserved for passages designed to stir emotions'.3 The object personified is no longer impersonal and unfeeling; now the cities are living beings with all the emotions and abilities of mortals. In particular, they are able to sin and to be punished, to be sick and to mourn. The emotional impact of personification thus helps to convey to the audience the prophet's view of reality. Finally, the unexpected break in parallelism in v. 5b underscores the message of the verse. The unbalanced lines focus on the phrase 'death of Judah', indicating that this is the real concern of the prophet and the actual subject of his discourse. 1. On the rhetoric of entrapment as a tool employed by various prophets see R. Alter, The Art of Biblical Poetry (New York: Basic Books, 1985), pp. 142-46. 2. Lewis notes that there are 23 leading questions in Micah: These interrogations arouse interest, sustain attention, enhance listening ease, create beauty, and help to keep the book in focus' (The Persuasive Style of the Minor Prophets, p. 88. See also Gitay, Prophecy and Persuasion, p. 88; and C.H. Holman, A Handbook to Literature [New York: Odyssey, 3rd edn, 1972], p. 452). 3. Corbett, Classical Rhetoric, p. 486.
1. 'Surely Her Illnesses Are Incurable': Micah 1.2-16
55
Having identified the focus of sin as Samaria and Jerusalem, the prophet announces judgment on Samaria (vv. 6-7). The shift to firstperson speech in these verses is not uncommon in prophetic address.1 More importantly, the first-person speech of Yahweh invests the announcement of judgment with the highest possible authority: it is not the prophet who declares judgment; it is Yahweh himself.2 Moreover, Yahweh is the one who will execute the judgment by destroying Samaria along with her riches and buildings. In vv. 8-9 the prophet himself laments in response to the sin and judgment of Samaria and Jerusalem. The description of the speaker's lament in these verses functions as an ethical appeal:3 The prophet shows himself as one who is moved to lamentation by the very message he must convey. The lament which follows (vv. 10-16) paints a vivid, emotional picture of the loss of cities in the Shephelah. The dirge actually functions not only to describe the actions of the cities, but also to accuse the cities of disloyalty. A number of rhetorical devices are utilized to maximize the emotional impact and effect of these accusations. First, throughout this section, the prophet makes extensive use of personification. The population of the town is personified by the feminine term yosebet.4 As noted above, such personification is usually reserved for emotional speeches. Secondly, throughout the passage there is a 'profusion of different 1. So Willis, 'Micah I, 2', p. 373. 2. On the appeal to divine authority Gitay observes that 'the prophet speaks with the authority of God Himself. In modern times a sense of authority may be considered a subjective matter, but in ancient times, authority—especially that of God—was accepted as fact' (Prophecy and Persuasion, p. 65). Lewis also recognizes that the prophet's speaking in the name of Yahweh is an effective appeal to authority (The Persuasive Style of the Minor Prophets, p. 185). 3. 'The ethical appeal is exerted, according to Aristotle, when the speech itself impresses the audience that the speaker is a man of sound sense...high moral character... and benevolence...' (Corbett, Classical Rhetoric, p. 93). Similarly, Lewis notes that the components of the ethical appeal are character, intelligence, and goodwill (The Persuasive Style of the Minor Prophets, p. 186). 4. It seems more reasonable to conclude that the feminine participle refers to the population of the town than to assume that it refers to a local goddess associated with the town as is suggested by W.C. Graham ('Some Suggestions toward the Interpretation of Micah 1.10-16', AJSL 47 [1931], pp. 237-58). On this feminine personification of the towns see Luker, Doom and Hope, pp. 109-14.
56
The Speeches of Micah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
pronominal elements, creating both intensification and confusion, if not incoherence'.1 This mixture of singular and plural, masculine and feminine, as well as the change from second- to third-person verbs may well be explained as the prophet's attempt to personify the population of a city while simultaneously addressing the male (fighting) population of the town.2 In any case, these grammatical inconsistencies create a certain amount of chaos which heightens the impact of the lament by expressing the confusion and chaos which are overtaking the city of Jerusalem. Finally, the emotional impact of the dirge is heightened by the pervasive use of puns. Throughout this section, the names of the towns are understood to be omens which correspond to their actions or their present situation.3 The prophet plays on either the concept suggested by the town's name or the sound of the name of the town.4 The wordplays focus attention simultaneously on the city and the accusation against it. The description of each city through the wordplay maximizes the effect and was probably intended to make a lasting impression on the audience. The lament closes with a summons to Jerusalem to join in acts of mourning. The summons again provides emotional impact through the personification of both Jerusalem and the cities of the Shephelah which have left her. Historical Possibilities
The factors of the rhetorical situation allow us to make some judgments concerning the historical backgrounds proposed for the material in Mic. 1.2-16. The Assyrian invasion of 701 BCE is often proposed as
1. D.N. Freedman, 'Discourse on Prophetic Discourse' in H.B. Huffmon et al. (eds.), The Quest For the Kingdom of God: Studies in Honor of George F. Mendenhall (Winona Lake, IN: Eisenhrauns, 1983), p. 149. 2. Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 110. 3. Allen, Micah, p. 278. 4. Lux, Exegetical Study, p. 85. Cuffey may be correct in discerning a chiastic arrangement based on the types of puns in vv. 10-15, although it is questionable that the audience would have perceived such a subtle and extended pattern (The Coherence of Micah, p. 291, n. 12). On the use of wordplays, see J.M. Sasson, 'Wordplay in the Old Testament', IDBSup, pp. 968-70.
1. 'Surely Her Illnesses Are Incurable': Micah 1.2-16
57
the background for at least vv. 8-16' if not for the whole of chapter I. 2 Those who advocate this date as the setting for the latter half of the chapter see in these verses a description of those cities which were threatened or destroyed by Sennacherib's invading armies. Support for this interpretation appears to come from Sennacherib himself who boasts of conquering 46 of Hezekiah's cities and counting as booty some 200,150 people.3 In addition, the conquest of Lachish is depicted in an inscription from Sennacherib's palace.4 The objective factors in the rhetorical situation, however, rule out 701 BCE as the background presupposed by Mic. 1.8-16. First, the accusations and statements concerning the towns of the Shephelah reveal that they have not been destroyed; rather, they have shown themselves to be disloyal to Jerusalem and Samaria. Nothing in the sequence of events surrounding the Assyrian invasion of 701 BCE suggests that the Shephelah wavered in its loyalty to Jerusalem. As the Lachish relief clearly demonstrates, Lachish was destroyed defending against the Assyrian invasion. Yet nowhere does Mic. 1.10-15 indicate that these towns are facing any specific military threat, nor have they been destroyed. This same obstacle prevents dating the discourse to Sargon's Philistia campaign of 712 BCE.5 No military threat is directed at the cities of the Shephelah. Moreover, Gath, which would have been most threatened by the Philistia campaign, is expected to find the present situation to be good news (v. 10). The simple fact that the cities appear to have 'left' Jerusalem (v. 16) rules out not only 701 BCE but also 712 BCE. A second obstacle to the theory that Mic. 1.8-16 presupposes the 1. See Elliger, 'Die Heimat', p. 147; Smith, Micah, p. 39; Mays, Micah, p. 50; O. Eissfeldt, The Old Testament: An Introduction (trans. P.R. Ackroyd, New York: Harper & Row, 1965), pp. 552-53; Lux, Exegetical Study, p. 115. 2. Especially noteworthy is Marti, Das Dodekapropheten, pp. 265-72. Also see Jepsen, 'Zwolfprophetenbuch', p. 98. 3. ANET, pp. 287-88. 4. Ussishkin,'The "Lachish Relief", pp. 174-95. 5. This date is considered likely for the latter half of Micah 1 by J. Lindblom, Micha Literarisch untersucht (Act Academiae Aboensis; Humaniora 6.2; Helsinfoss: Abo Akademi, 1929), p. 56. Allen (Micah, p. 241) suggests either 712 or 722. Lux (Exegetical Study, p. 115) and Eissfeldt (Introduction, p. 552) suggest either 712 or 701 BCE as a possible date.
58
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
Assyrian campaign of 701 BCE is the fact that these verses do not assume any direct, immediate threat against Jerusalem. In his description of the 701 campaign Sennacherib claims that he trapped Hezekiah in Jerusalem 'like a bird in a cage'.1 Moreover, the same Assyrian inscription reports that Jerusalem was surrounded with 'earthwork in order to molest those who were leaving his city gate'. This same state of siege preparation is reflected in 2 Kgs 18.13 which depicts the Assyrian ruler demanding the surrender of Jerusalem. Indeed, the destruction of Jerusalem seemed so certain, that the deliverance of the city was taken as nothing less than a miracle.2 In contrast, Mic. 1.8-16 gives no indication that Jerusalem is in danger of siege, nor is there any indication of an expected military attack. No fate other than the loss of her cities is envisioned for Jerusalem. This lack of any suggestion of a serious military threat against Jerusalem raises doubts about dating the latter half of Micah 1 to the time when an Assyrian invasion was in progress or anticipated. Finally, throughout the chapter, there is no indication that Samaria has been destroyed. The explicit references to Samaria in vv. 5-7 assume that the city is still the capital of Israel. Indeed, the destruction of the town lies in the future (vv. 6-7). Thus, those who date this section to 701 BCE or 712 BCE are forced to the unlikely conclusion that these verses are a vaticanum ex eventum. More importantly, the plural pronouns of v. 11 and the 'kings' of Israel in v. 14 appear to be references to both Jerusalem and Samaria. Any date before 722 BCE would be inappropriate for the latter half of Micah 1 as well as the first half of the chapter. It is not surprising therefore that some have dated all or part of Mic. 1.2-16 to the time around 722 BCE.3 The addresses to the cities of the Shephelah, however, are not easily explained by the Assyrian siege of Samaria. Georg Fohrer has suggested that these verses are actually a warning to the cities near Micah's home issued in light of 1. ANET, pp. 287-88. 2. 2 Kgs 19.32-37. 3. Those who date all of Micah 1 to 725-22 BCE include van Hoonacker, Le douze petits prophetes, p. 340; Karl Budde, 'Die Ratsel von Micha 1', ZAW 37 (1917-18), p. 106; Rudolph, Micha, p. 39; and van der Woude, Micha, p. 31, 41. Those who date only Micah 1.2-7 to 722 BCE include Renaud, Formation, p. 48; Lindblom, Micha Literarisch untersucht, p. 31; Willis, 'Some Suggestions', p. 374.
1. 'Surely Her Illnesses Are Incurable': Micah 1.2-16
59
the fall of Samaria.1 Yet it is not clear why these cities should have been threatened by the Assyrian conquest of Samaria. Geographically there are many towns that would have been in far greater danger from the Assyrian campaign against Samaria. Van Hoonacker's suggestion that the cities were the allies of Samaria does not take into account the geographical setting of the towns nor the fact that far more important Israelite cities nearer Samaria would more likely have been addressed.2 More importantly, the announcement of judgment on Samaria in vv. 2-7 does not provide strong evidence for assuming a setting near the time of the actual fall of that city. It is noteworthy that the judgment on Samaria is stated in rather indefinite terms. No human enemy is named or alluded to and the destruction lies at an unspecified time in the future. The indefinite language of vv. 2-7 thus tends to suggest that the threat to Samaria is neither imminent nor is it certain what human enemy will carry out the city's destruction. In contrast, by 722 BCE the threat to Samaria was immediate and concrete and the enemy no longer uncertain or indefinable. It is thus doubtful that vv. 2-7 reflect the Assyrian siege of Samaria. Finally, some have suggested that all or part of Micah 1 reflects the time of the Syro-Ephraimite war in 734-732 BCE. 3 Again, some arguments can be made for such a date. First, 2 Chron. 28.5-15 recounts how Syria and Israel waged war on Judah and captured and attempted to take into exile a large number of captives (the number of 200,000 is given in v. 8). This set of historical events is thus thought by some to be presupposed by the addresses to the cities in Mic. 1.1016. In addition, the Syro-Ephraimite war might explain the address to Gath. 2 Chron. 28.18 describes the expansion of Philistine territory into the Shephelah in conjunction with the events of the Syrian and Israelite attack on Jerusalem. John Bright is probably correct in his suggestion that this Philistine expansion was part of a concerted action 1. Fohrer, 'Micha 1', pp. 79-80. 2. Van Hoonacker, Le douze petits prophetes, p. 340. 3. The events of the Syro-Ephraimite crisis are seen as the background for the entire chapter by H. Donner, Israel unter den Volkern (VTSup, 11; Leiden: Brill, 1964), p. 102. Allen suggests that 1.2-9 can be dated to this time (Micah, p. 24) and Freedman suggests that vv. 10-16 could reflect this period ('Discourse on Prophetic Discourse', p. 155).
60
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
against Judah by an anti-Assyrian coalition headed by Rezin of Damascus. 1 The assumption that Gath would profit by the disaster which has come upon Jerusalem (v. 10) thus appears to correspond nicely to the events of 734-32 BCE. Other elements in Mic. 1.10-16 could be a reflection of events surrounding the Syro-Ephraimite war. As noted above Mic. 1.10-16 appears to reflect a situation in which a number of towns have shown themselves to be disloyal. The biblical record offers some evidence that in this conflict many in Judah sided with Pekah and Rezin against Ahaz. Isa. 8.6 reports that 'this people have refused the waters of Shiloah that flow gently, and rejoices in Rezin the son of Remaliah...' The logical conclusion to be drawn from this verse is that some in Judah welcomed the attempts by Rezin and Pekah to remove Ahaz from the throne.2 In other words, a division existed between Judah (this people) and Ahaz. On the other hand, it must be noted that the cities taken from Judah by the Philistines lie outside the area indicated in Mic. 1.10-16. 2 Chron. 28.18 reports that Philistia took 'Beth-shemesh, Aijalon, Gederoth, Soco with its villages, Timnah with its villages and Gimzo with its villages; and they settled there'. All of these cities, however, lie just north of the cities addressed in Mic. 1.10-16, but none of them is actually addressed in these verses by Micah. A connection between 2 Chron. 28.18 and Mic. 1.10-16 may be possible, but not certain. In addition, other elements in the rhetorical situation do not correspond well to the events of 734-32 BCE. First, the focus of the events of 734 BCE was the city Jerusalem: 'Then Rezin king of Syria and Pekah the son of Remaliah, king of Israel, came up to wage war on Jerusalem...' (2 Kgs 16.5). That Jerusalem was the target is also confirmed by Isa. 7.1, where it is reported that Rezin and Pekah 'came up to Jerusalem'. That no reference is made to Samaria's attack on Jerusalem or Israel's alliance with Rezin casts strong doubts on any attempt to date the material in Mic. 1.2-16 to 734 BCE. If none of these proposed settings (701, 711-12, 722, 734-32) seems to fit the rhetorical situation reflected in Mic. 1.2-16, then what 1. J. Bright, A History of Israel (Philadelphia: Westminster Press, 2nd edn, 1976), p. 272. 2. On the interpretation of this verse see S.A. Irvine, Isaiah, Ahaz, and the Syro-Ephraimitic Crisis (Dissertation, Emory University, 1989), pp. 322-33.
1. 'Surely Her Illnesses Are Incurable': Micah 1.2-16
61
possible historical circumstances lie behind Micah's address? First, the objective factors indicate that the fates of Samaria and Jerusalem appear to be intertwined. The defection of the cities affects both capitals, and the policies of Samaria affect all of Israel as well as Jerusalem. Such a relationship between Samaria and Jerusalem indicates a time before Ahaz's refusal to join Israel in an alliance with Syria. Throughout much of her history Jerusalem appears to have been a subservient partner to Samaria. The deuteronomistic historian records remembrances of two different military campaigns in which Judah assisted Israel (1 Kgs 22; 2 Kgs 3). Although both accounts are set in the time of the Omride dynasty, there is strong evidence that suggests that these events actually took place during the Jehu dynasty.1 At the very least, Amaziah's challenge to Jehoash represents a bid for Judean independence from Samaria (2 Kgs 14). Amaziah's defeat and the taking of hostages to Samaria no doubt assured that the following king, Uzziah, would remain co-operative with Samaria. There is no reason to doubt that Judah's willingness to submit to Samaria's contro continued through the reign of Jeroboam II. Indeed, 1 Chron. 5.17-22 may suggest that Jeroboam and Jotham co-operated in the rule of parts of the Transjordan. Unfortunately the close connection between Samaria and Jerusalem was not limited to the reign of Jeroboam and, indeed, could reflect almost any time before Ahaz's break with Samaria. Is it possible to narrow the time presupposed by the rhetorical situation of Mic. 1.216? As indicated by the objective factors, Mic. 1.2-16 presupposes a time when towns in the Shephelah had withdrawn their support from Jerusalem. In addition, I have suggested above that since this is a 'sickness' which has come from Samaria, one may infer that the northern capital, like Jerusalem, has also experienced the loss of support from cities. A number of pieces of evidence would seem to indicate that a loss of territory and a splintering of both Israel and Judah into warring factions began before the death of Jeroboam II in 747 BCE. First, evidence exists which may be interpreted as the loss of terri1. See J.M. Miller, 'The Rest of the Acts of Jehoahaz', ZAW 80 (1968), pp. 337-42; The Elisha Cycle and the Accounts of the Omride Wars', JBL 85 (1966), pp. 441-54.
62
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
tory during the time of Jeroboam II. Amos 1.6 accuses Damascus of 'threshing Gilead with threshing sledges of iron'. This accusation suggests that by the time of Amos' prophecy, Syria had waged war to regain control of Gilead. Accusations against Philistia indicate at least harassment of Israel if not the taking of territory. It is this encroachment on Israelite territory to which Isaiah refers in Isa. 9.12: 'The Syrians from the East and the Philistines from the West devour Israel with an open mouth'.1 It is also possible that at some point in Jotham's reign, the Ammonites asserted their independence from Israel or Judah. 2 Chron. 27.5 describes Jotham's domination of Ammon and the tribute he received from that Transjordanian country. Although the notice in 2 Chron. 27.5 is meant to show the power of Jotham's rule, it also makes clear that tribute from Ammon was received for only three years. It is possible to infer from the text that Jotham was unable to continue his domination of the Ammonites. It is also significant that Amos accuses the Ammonites of atrocities in Gilead 'that they might enlarge their border' (Amos 1.13-15). This accusation may reflect not only Israel's loss of control of Ammon, but also the encroachment of Ammonites on traditionally Israelite territory. Secondly, evidence also suggests that at a time near the end of the reign of Jeroboam II, Israel itself split into rival factions. Following the death of Jeroboam a series of assassinations plunged the country into chaos. Jeroboam's successor was assassinated by Shallum, who in turn was defeated by Menahem. It is reported that Menahem committed atrocities against a part of the kingdom which 'did not open to him' (2 Kgs 15.16). Since Menahem seized the throne less than two years after the death of Jeroboam II, it is likely that the divisions reflected in Shallum's assassination and Menahem's rise to power existed already in the time of Jeroboam. According to 2 Kgs 15.16, Menahem terrorized 'Tiphsah and all who were in its territory from Tirzah on'. This enigmatic text deserves some detailed consideration. First, it should be noted that there is virtual unanimous agreement that 'Tiphsah' should be emended to read with the Lucianic Tappuah'.2 The location of Tiphsah on the 1. Irvine, Isaiah, Ahaz, pp. 417-18. 2. Bright, History, p. 269 n. 3; H.B. McClean, 'Menahem', IDE, III, p. 347; W.L. Reed, Tappuah', IDB, IV, p. 517.
1. 'Surely Her Illnesses Are Incurable': Micah 1.2-16
63
Euphrates makes it likely that this emendation is correct. The site usually proposed for Tappuah based on biblical references and possible name retention is Tephon (Sheikh Abu-Zarad), some six miles southwest of Shechem.1 The meaning of the verse is still not certain, however. The awkward syntax may be interpreted as follows: 'Then Menahem, starting out from Tirzah, destroyed Tappuah and everything in it and ravaged its territory'.2 Such an interpretation accords well with 2 Kgs 15.14, which suggests that Menahem's power base was in Tirzah. Nevertheless, the barbaric acts of Menahem against Tappuah are still a source of puzzlement: why would Menahem carry out such atrocities against a city so close to his own power base?3 In answer, some have suggested that Shallum's home was not Jabesh, but Yasib, a town in the vicinity of Tappuah.4 Thus Tappuah would have thrown its support to Shallum, the leader from its own area. Unfortunately, such an emendation to Jabesh has no textual support. Other reasons for the atrocities against Tappuah must be sought. Perhaps the real problem is the assumption that the Tappuah intended in 2 Kgs 15.16 is the modern Tephon. In fact, another Tappuah is known from biblical texts. Josh. 15.34 includes a Tappuah as a city in the Shephelah of Judah. Although the exact location of this Tappuah is not known,5 it is clearly included among the cities in the northern part of the Shephelah. It could thus be hypothesized that some portion of the Shephelah which refused to support Menahem's bid for the throne of Samaria was atrociously attacked by him. Additional evidence for the splintering of the kingdom may be found in 2 Kgs 15.37 where it is reported that already in Jotham's 1. Reed, 'Tappuah', p. 517. 2. Translation of the New English Bible. 3. J.A.Montgomery pondered this very question: '...there remains the problem of such a barbarous raid carried out between two such closely neighboring cities', A Critical and Exegetical Commentary on the Book of Kings (ICC; ed. H.G. Gehman; New York: Charles Scribner's Sons, 1951), p. 450. Montgomery ventures no answer to his question, however. 4. J. Gray, / and II Kings (OTL; Philadelphia: Westminster Press, 1963), p. 562. The assumption is that a metathesis has occurred resulting in yabes rather than yaseb. 5. Beit Nettif, some 12 miles west of Bethlehem has been suggested, but the exact location is not known (Reed, Tappuah', p. 517).
64
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
reign (i.e. before 744-3 BCE) Rezin and Pekah were harassing Judah. The importance of this notice lies in the fact that Jotham's reign ended some 10 years before Pekah seized the throne in Samaria. Pekah ben Remaliah is assigned a 20-year reign in 2 Kgs 14.27 and his predecessor, Pekahaiah, is credited with a two-year reign in 2 Kgs 15.23. Unfortunately, the 22 years assigned to the reigns of Pekah and Pekahaiah do not correspond to information from Assyrian sources which indicate that Menahem's reign ended no earlier than 738 BCE and Hoshea overthrew Pekah around 732 BCE.1 Thus there is no more than a six-year period of time in which Pekahiah and Pekah could have ruled Samaria. A possible solution to this chronological difficulty is the proposal that for most of his 20-year reign Pekah ruled as a rival monarch over a portion of Israel, perhaps an area including part of Gilead. Indeed, his alliance with Syria which had regained control of Gilead and the fact that 50 men of Gilead assisted Pekah in his rise to power suggest that Pekah may have ruled as a rival king to Menahem and even Jeroboam long before coming to the throne of Samaria.2 The report that, during the reign of Jotham, Pekah and Rezin were harassing Israel may thus be interpreted as an indication of the splintering of Israel into rival factions. Finally, evidence for the splintering may be found in 2 Chron. 27.4, where it is reported that Jotham 'built cities in the hill country of Judah, and forts and towers on the wooded heights'. The area fortified by Jotham was not the Shephelah bordering Philistia, but the interior of Judah. If the Chronicler's report is historically accurate, it could be interpreted as an indication of reduced Judean territory. The Chronicler's description of Uzziah's earlier reign presents a Judah in full control of the Shephelah (2 Chron. 26.6-8). In addition, the location of the forts within the hill country of Judah may indicate a need to strengthen Jerusalem's control over Judah itself. In either case, the loss of political and military control of some territory may be inferred. There are therefore numerous pieces of evidence that appear to suggest that before the end of Jotham's reign, and perhaps before the 1. ANET, pp. 283-84; 282. 2. Bright, History, p. 271, n. 8; H.J. Cook, 'Pekah', VT 14 (1964) pp. 121-35.
1. 'Surely Her Illnesses Are Incurable': Micah 1.2-16
65
end of the rule of Jeroboam II, Israel was losing territory and splintering into various factions competing with the capitals of the nation. Of special interest for Mic. 1.2-16 is the possible indication that Menahem encountered such a faction in the Shephelah only shortly after the death of Jeroboam II. All of these conflicts within Israel and between Israel and her neighbors are probably to be related to Israel's policy toward Assyria. Later incidents would demonstrate that Rezin of Damascus along with Pekah worked to forge an anti-Assyrian coalition. Eventually they would be joined by a number of nations including the Philistines (2 Chron. 28.17) and the Edomites, who with Rezin's support regained control of the seaport of Elath (2 Kgs 16.6). Assyrian records from the campaigns of 734—32 BCE indicate that anti-Assyrian activities had been pursued by Syria, Israel (led by Pekah), Phoenicia, Philistia, and probably the Meunites, south of Judah.1 It is quite possible that the earlier encroachment on Israel's territory as well as the rival faction led by Pekah were attempts to force Israel and Judah into this anti-Assyrian alliance. Later events would demonstrate that the formation of an anti-Assyrian coalition was the goal of Rezin and Pekah. Such an alliance of the states of Syro-Palestine had worked well in the days of the Omride dynasty when Shalmaneser III was repelled by a coalition which included Israel.2 In contrast, the Jehu dynasty had found that it was to Israel's advantage to pursue friendly relations with Assyria (including the payment of tribute). Near the beginning of his reign Jehu himself had paid tribute to Assyria when Shalmaneser III invaded the area and may himself have been encouraged by the Assyrians in seizing the throne.3 Together Israel and Assyria had a common enemy in Syria. Syrian aggression against Israel was checked when Adad-Nirari III led a series of campaigns into Syria-Palestine. Again, king Joash, of the house of Jehu, is recorded as paying tribute to the king of Assyria.4 It 1. ANET, pp. 282, 284. 2. ANET, pp. 278-79. 3. The payment of tribute by Jehu is described on the Black Obelisk. The text is found in ANET, pp. 280-81. 4. The Rima Stela of Adad-nirari III reports that tribute was received from 'Joash of Samaria'. See A.R. Millard and H. Tadmor, 'Adad-Nirari III in Syria: Another Stela Fragment and the dates of His Campaigns', Iraq 35 (1973), pp. 5764.
66
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
may be that the 'savior of Israel' alluded to in 2 Kgs 13.4-5 was actually the Assyrian king Adad-Nirari III.1 History had clearly shown that Syrian aggression against Israel could be reduced to Israel's advantage by Assyria. It was thus likely that throughout the Jehu dynasty, friendly relations existed between Israel and Assyria and tribute was paid. There is no statement in Assyrian texts that would indicate anything other than co-operation between Assyria and Israel throughout the rule of the house of Jehu. Indeed, even when Assyrian power and influence weakened in the last years of the first half of the eighth century, continued co-operation with Assyria was a logical course of action for Israelite monarchs since Assyria had proved to be the one power able to hold Syrian expansion in check. As we shall see in the next chapter the later series of assassinations and Menahem's struggle to gain control of Samaria can also best be understood in light of a struggle concerning policy toward Assyria. In any case, conflict over policy toward Assyria and the continued payment of tribute probably emerged as early as the later years of Jeroboam's rule. Discontent within Israel itself also created a climate conducive for the emergence of factions challenging control from Samaria. The book of Amos indicates that while Jeroboam's policies might have been good for Samaria and the upper class they imposed a hardship upon most of the people of Israel and Judah, and aroused opposition from neighboring states. Amos 3.15 and 4.1 suggest that the wealth attained by Jeroboam's policies was at the very least not evenly distributed among Israelite society. Resentment toward Jeroboam II and his policies probably played an important role in the development of factions within Israel. At least, unpopular economic policies would make the general populace more willing to follow those who were condoning a change in foreign military and economic policy. It is thus reasonable to conclude that the foreign and economic policies of Jeroboam II led to discontent within Israel and were a factor in the emergence of factions such as the one led by Pekah with the backing of Rezin of Damascus. Such a background may well be presupposed by Micah. Not only does the discourse assume a close relationship between Samaria and Jerusalem, but also it presupposes the existence of a faction disloyal to both capitals and both kings. In 1.
Miller, 'The Acts of Jehoahaz', pp. 337-42.
1. 'Surely Her Illnesses Are Incurable': Micah 1.2-16
67
addition, v. 5 may refer to other rebellions for which Samaria and Jerusalem are responsible. Finally, the reference to Samaria's 'harlot's wages' in Mic. 1.7, with its allusion to Samaria's status as a 'harlot' which may indicate that Samaria's foreign and economic policies are to bring her destruction, corresponds well to a time when there was deep discontent over the policies of Jeroboam II and a policy of submission ('prostitution') to Assyria. It must be conceded that this reconstruction is far from certain and only plausibility can be affirmed. While evidence for the splintering of Israel into factions can be found, some of it is circumstantial and open to other interpretations. Nevertheless, the advantage of this proposed background for Mic. 1.2-16 is its ability to account for the full range of evidence from both biblical and extra-biblical sources. None of the other proposed historical contexts for this text can meet these restrictions.
Chapter 2
'MY PEOPLE HAVE BECOME AN ENEMY' MICAH2.1-13 Text and Translation (1)
(2)
(3)
(4)
Woe to those who plan iniquity and deeds of evil1 upon their beds. With the light of morning they carry it out; because it lies in the power of their hand. And they covet fields and seize them and houses and take them. They oppress an owner and his house and a man and his inheritance. Therefore, thus says Yahweh: 'Behold, I am planning evil against this family from which you will not be able to remove your neck; nor will you walk upright, for it will be an evil time. On that day a taunt song will be lifted concerning you, and a lament will be sung,2 saying:3 We are despoiled; he changes the portion of my people;
1. This translation understands po'ale as a plural construct and second object of the verb hosebe. See Hillers, Micah, p. 31, n. b; Allen, Micah, p. 284, n. 1. For the pointing, see Rudolph, Micha, p. 51. 2. Deleting niheydh as dittography with Hillers, Micah, p. 32; Wellhausen, Kleinen Propheten, p. 138; Mays, Micah, p. 60; Renaud, Formation, p. 68; J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 54. 3. Reading le'mor for 'amar. See Wellhausen, Kleinen Propheten, p. 138; J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 54.
2. 'My People Have Become an Enemy': Micah 2.1-13
(5) (6)
(7)
69
Alas! He takes it from me.' Our fields are portioned out by a rebel.2 Therefore, you3 will have no one to cast the cord by lot in the assembly of Yahweh. 'Do not preach!' they preach. 'They should not preach of these things.4 Such reproaches will not overtake us.'5 'Is the house of Jacob accursed?6 Is Yahweh impatient? Are these his deeds? Do not my deeds do good to the one who walks upright?'7
1. The LXX ('is measured with a rod') is probably a simplification of the MT (Renaud, Formation, p. 68; Hillers, Micah, p. 31; Rudolph, Micha, p. 52). The MT should be retained. 2. This translation understands the / to be the lamed of agent. See R.J. Williams, Hebrew Syntax: An Outline (Toronto: University of Toronto Press, 2nd edn, 1976), p. 50, para. 280. 3. Reading lacem for leka. The final m was probably lost by haplography with the initial m of the following word. Hillers, Micah, p. 32; Mays, Micah, p. 61, n. g.; Allen, Micah, p. 285. 4. The various readings in the versions are easily explained as interpretive attempts to attain meaning from the Hebrew. Such is the correct conclusion of J.T. Willis, 'Micah 2.6-8 and the "People of God" in Micah', BZ N.F. 14 (1970), pp. 73-74; and Hillers, Micah, p. 34. 5. The MT, 'Reproaches shall not withdraw from us', is problematic in the context. Assuming a confusion of sibilants emend yissag to yassig (Mays, Micah, p. 66). Similar proposals are set forth by Hillers, Micah, p. 34; Willis, 'Micah 2.68', pp. 74-75; J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 55; W. Nowack, Die Kleinen Propheten (HK 3.4; Gottingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 3rd edn, 1922), p. 198; Marti, Das Dodekapropheten, p. 275. 6. This is the only occurrence of the Qal passive participle of 'amar in the Old Testament and has thus been the subject of much speculation concerning its interpretation or emendation. For a survey of proposed emendations see Willis, 'Micah 2.6-8', pp. 78-79; Renaud, Formation, pp. 91-92; and E.A. Neiderhiser, 'Micah 2.6-11: Considerations on the Nature of the Discourse', BTB 11 (1981), p. 105. The above translation follows the suggestion of A. Ehrman ('A Note on Micah II, 7', VT 20 [1970], pp. 86-87) who points out that in certain cases 'amar apparently means 'to curse' (e.g. Job 3.3). Such a meaning is supported by the context of Mic. 2.6. 7. It is perhaps necessary to transpose the last two words of the line. Mays, Micah, p. 66, n. e.
70
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis (8)
(9)
(10)
But recently1 my people2 have become an enemy.3 From the peaceful you strip off the cloak;4 from those who pass by securely, averse to war.5 You drive the women of my people from her pleasant house.6 From her children You take away my honor forever. Arise and go for this is no place to occupy; because of your uncleanness, you will be destroyed7
1. Neiderhiser has pointed out that 'etmul can mean 'formerly' or 'recently' as in 2 Sam. 15.20 and Isa. 30.33 ('Micah 2.6-11', p. 106. A similar observation is made by Margolis (Micah, p. 31). Although the MT is somewhat awkward, it yields good sense and does not need to be emended. 2. Many have proposed rather extensive emendations of the MT of this line on the assumption that the present text is the result of a rather complicated process of corruption (for example, J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 55; Allen, Micah, p. 292; Mays, Micah, p. 67, nn. f, g; Renaud, Formation, p. 94; Hillers, Micah, p. 35, n. j). Most of the proposed emendations appear to be based on the assumption that 'My people' could not be the subject of this verse. Nevertheless, all the versions read 'my people' not as the object, but as the subject of v. 8 (Willis, 'Micah 2.6-8', p. 87). 3. Luker notes that although qum is in the uncommon form of the polel in this verse, the verb in both the qal and hiphil means 'to become/constitute' (see BDB pp. 878-79). This is apparently the meaning intended here. The less common form may have been chosen for assonance... and alliteration' (Doom and Hope, p. 12, n. 13). 4. The MT literally reads, 'From in front of the cloak glory you strip'. The text is obviously corrupt and emendation is unavoidable. The most likely solution is to assume that mimmul arose through dittography: the scribe copied the final three letters of 'etmul in the preceding line. In addition, the word salmah should be emended to solainim. This latter emendation produces good parallelism with the following line, and is supported in part by the LXX which read some form of salom in this verse. These emendations (or a variation of them) are accepted by Wellhausen, Kleinen Propheten, p. 138; Marti, Das Dodekapropheten, p. 275; J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 56; Allen, Micah, p. 293; Mays, Micah, p. 67. 5. The MT is retained and the verb su.be is taken in the sense of 'turning away from' or 'averse to' (Willis, 'Micah 2.6-8', pp. 82-83 and Allen, Micah, p. 293). 6. Most commentators emend the possessive suffixes to agree with the plural antecedent, but the MT is retained here. For an assessment of the LXX of this verse, see Hillers, Micah, p. 35; Renaud, Formation, p. 96. 7. Redividing the MT to read with the LXX: tehubbelu hebel. So Allen, Micah, p. 293; Mays, Micah, p. 67, n. m; Renaud, Formation, p. 97; J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 56.
2. 'My People Have Become an Enemy': Micah 2.1-13 (11)
(12)
(13)
71
by an agonizing destruction.1 If a man came in the spirit2 and deceived with lies (saying), 'I will preach to you about wine and strong drink.' He would be the one prophesying to this people. I will surely gather Jacob, all of you. I will indeed assemble the remnant of Israel. Together I will assemble them like sheep in distress;3 like a flock in the midst of its pasture. And they shall be in commotion for fear of man.4 The one who breaks out has gone up before them. They have broken through and passed through the gate; they have gone forth through it Their king has passed over before them, and Yahweh at their head.5
Unity and Date
Almost all scholars divide chapter 2 into three distinct units: (1) vv. 1-5 constitute a woe oracle; (2) vv. 6-11 are classified as a disputation; and (3) vv. 12-13 have been categorized as either an announcement of salvation or an announcement of judgment.6 Nevertheless, it is likely that Mic. 2.1-11 is an original speech. 1. Neiderhiser points out that the basic meaning of nimras is 'to be sick'. He further notes that the term is used in 1 QH from Qumran (The Hodayoth) where it means 'birth pains' (Neiderhiser, 'Micah 2.6-11', p. 106). 2. This translation reflects that of Mays who understands the phrase as a description of 'ecstatic spirit possession' (Micah, p. 73). For other suggestions see Renaud, Formation, p. 101; and Hillers, Micah, p. 36. 3. MT reads bosrah (Bozrah), but the LXX assumes besarah ('in distress'). Although certainty is not possible, parallelism seems to justify the reading of the LXX which is adopted here. 4. This translation understands the min as causal. See Allen, Micah, p. 300, n. 84. 5. The repetitious nature of v. 13 as well as changes in tense and number have led some scholars to make minor emendations. Nevertheless the MT gives good meaning and the evidence of the versions does not conclusively require emendations. 6. Only minor points of difference exist with regard to the division of this chapter. See the discussion and references by Schibler, Le Prophete Michel, p. 21 n. 1.
72
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
Moreover, I suggest that Mic. 2.12-13, when interpreted in terms of his goals and strategy, can be understood as a part of the prophet's speech. Setting aside for the moment vv. 12 and 13, it is clear that Mic. 2.1-11 should be taken as a unity. The opening woe oracle specifies the events and characteristics that have evoked the cry of mourning.1 Micah describes the behavior of those who plot and execute acts of evil. Following these descriptions, the prophet announces judgment on the guilty. Further announcements of judgment follow in vv. 4 and 5. The objections that begin in v. 6 are best understood as a response to the preceding announcements of judgment. Although Mays suggests that this saying begins in medias res,2 it is difficult to imagine that an independent unit would begin by quoting the objections of the prophet's opponents without indicating what has provoked this objection: 'The provocation of this would be expected to precede the response itself'.3 Mic. 2.6-11 is thus a logical continuation of vv. 1-5 in which Micah anticipates the objections his message will encounter (vv. 6-7), and offers a rebuttal to their objections. Verse 10 once again underscores the announcement of judgment made in vv. 4-5. In the previous verses Micah has announced judgment; in v. 10 he commands the accused to leave the land which they have defiled by their actions. It is generally agreed that the majority of the material in Mic. 2.111 is from the eighth-century BCE prophet. There are, however, a number of elements that some commentators have taken to be later additions. First, many have suggested that there are redactional elements in vv. 3 and 4. In particular a number of scholars believe that the temporal phrases ('on that day' and 'it will be an evil time') reflect a rereading of the text during the time of the exile.4 In fact it is impossible to isolate a temporal expansion in these verses. Scholars have long noted how closely the judgment of Mic. 2.3-5 corresponds 1. E. Gerstenberger, 'The Woe Oracle of the Prophets', JBL 81 (1962), p. 251. 2. Mays, Micah, p. 69. 3. Willis, 'Micah 2.6-8', p. 85. 4. Jeremias, 'Deutung', pp. 333-35; Mays, Micah, p. 62; Renaud, Formation, p. 74; Lescow, 'Micah 1-5', p. 51; R. Vuilleumier and C.A.Keller, Michel, Nahoum, Habacuc, Sophonie (Commentaire de 1'Ancien Testament lib; Neuchatel: Delachaux et Niestle, 1971), p. 579.
2. 'My People Have Become an Enemy': Micah 2.1-13
73
to the crimes described in 2.1-2.1 The crimes in vv. 1-2 take place at two distinct points in time. First, there is the time of plotting evil and coveting land. Then there is the time when that which has been planned is executed. The judgment of vv. 3-5 takes place at two distinct times. First comes Yahweh's planning evil against the oppressors (v. 3a, b). Next there is the execution of that evil at a separate time, 'on that day' (vv. 3c, 4). To suggest that the temporal references in these verses are redactional expansions is to miss the artistry with which the material describes a judgment appropriate to the crime. Mays and Renaud also follow Jeremias in finding an expansion in the middle strophes of v. 4: 'He changes the portion of my people. Alas! he takes it from me'.2 The change in number and meter from the first and last strophe seems to identify these middle strophes as redactional. Caution must be exercised, however, since there are frequent shifts in number in this chapter. Moreover, as we shall see, the shift to third person may be intentional and a reference to a particular individual. Finally, rather than see the 2 + 2 meter of the middle strophes as signs of redaction, it is possible to take all four strophes together so that the meter is the qinah (3 + 2) followed by a 2 + 3 meter which some take to be a 'legitimate variation' of the qinah.3 There is also disagreement on the question of whether v. 5 is a later addition. Both Renaud and Lescow argue that the vocabulary and prosaic style of v. 5 indicate that the text is non-Mican.4 On the other hand, Mays admits that while the verse may have been reworked, the 'basic idea expressed in the line is more consonant with Micah's expectation than with the situation of the redactor'.5 It should also be noted that the change to prose in v. 5 may be a stylistic device which functions to emphasize the announcement made in v. 5.6 1. See, for example, the comments of Luker, Doom and Hope, pp. 166-67; Mays, Micah, pp. 64-65; and Allen, Doom and Hope, pp. 286-87. 2. Mays, Micah, p. 62; Renaud, Formation, pp. 75-76; Jeremias, 'Deutung', pp. 333-34; Vuilleumier, Michee, pp. 579-80. 3. Allen, Micah, p. 285, n. 6. It is doubtful that texts can be 'restored' or secondary elements isolated solely on the basis of meter. Especially problematic is the emphasis on accents for a determination of the meter. See Buss, The Prophetic Word, pp. 45-46. 4. Renaud, Formation, pp. 78-79; Lescow, 'Micha 1-5', p. 50. 5. Mays, Micah, p. 66; also Jeremias, 'Deutung', p. 333. 6. See Y. Gitay, 'A Study of Amos' Art of Speech: A Rhetorical Analysis
74
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
It is also important to understand that v. 5 is actually the logical conclusion of the judgment announced in v. 3. The evil announced by Yahweh in v. 3 is to be permanent: 'You shall not be able to remove your neck'. Without v. 5, however, the permanent nature of the judgment is lacking: 'You will have no one to cast the cord by lot in the assembly of Yahweh'. Not only will property be taken (v. 4) but also all hope of regaining it is lost (v. 5). The fact that the verse fulfills an expectation created by an earlier part of the oracle makes it probable that the text is authentic. The question of the original shape of v. 10 is also a source of debate among scholars. Mays and Renaud have followed Jeremias in arguing that v. 10 has been reworked in an attempt to apply Micah's prophecy to the beginning of the exilic period.1 The occurrence of the noun tdme'ah provides the main support for such a reworking of v. 10. Renaud offers a study of the occurrences of the word and concludes that tame'ah is used most often in exilic and post-exilic texts to refer to impurity resulting from idol worship.2 It is thus suggested that Mic. 2.10 originally read me'umah ('trifle'), but was intentionally changed to tdme'ah to allow Micah's accusations to encompass the sin of idolatry which in Jeremiah and Ezekiel is signified by the word tdme'ah. A number of factors weigh against such a rereading of v. 10. First, the unique meaning of tdme'ah in the context of v. 10 suggests that it should not be understood as redactional. Within the context of vv. 611 the word suggests not the consequences of the sin of idolatry condemned by later prophets, but the consequences of moral offences associated with seizing land and dispossessing people.3 Why would a redactor introduce the word into a context that would give the word a sense other than that intended? In short, the use of tdme'ah to refer to moral offenses contrasts with later prophetic uses of the term to refer to idolatry. It is thus unlikely that the word was introduced by an exilic redactor who wanted to include the sin of idolatry in Micah's condemnation. of Amos 3.1-15', CBQ 42 (1980), p. 305. 1. Jeremias, 'Deutung', pp. 339-40; Mays, Micah, pp. 71-72; Renaud, Formation, pp. 98-100. 2. Renaud, Formation, pp. 98-100. 3. That moral offenses could render tame\ see Deut. 24.1-4 and Westbrook, 'Marriage in Deut. 24.1-4', pp. 387-405.
2. 'My People Have Become an Enemy': Micah 2.1-13
75
A second problem with the proposed redactional scheme is that the supposed original me'umah 'by itself does not mean a trifle... J l The redactional process would thus have to be somewhat more complex than simply changing one word. It seems preferable to conclude that the verse has not been reworked by later editors. In summary, it is doubtful that there are any significant later additions in Mic. 2.1-11. Certainly, later additions are possible, but the evidence remains quite weak and other, more likely explanations can account for what appears to be redactional activity in these verses. While a convincing case can be made for the unity and authenticity of Mic. 2.1-11, serious objections have been raised to including Mic. 2.12-13 as a part of the preceding material. A majority of scholars understand these verses as an announcement of salvation to be attributed to an exilic or post-exilic prophet or redactor.2 This interpretation rests on three considerations. First, the motif of Yahweh as a shepherd leading his sheep is often found in exilic and post-exilic texts such as Deutero-Isaiah. Second, some of the vocabulary of Mic. 1.13 apparently parallels that of later prophets. In particular, Renaud notes that the words 'go up' and 'go out' are found in Jer. 50.8 and Isa. 52.12.3 Finally, the text is thought to presuppose an exilic situation: Israel must be gathered and led back home.4 As impressive as the arguments for an exilic or post-exilic dating of Mic. 2.12-13 appear, a number of objections can be raised to this conclusion. Although vv. 12 and 13 share motifs used by later prophets, Allen points out that such motifs were not newly created in the exile, 'and their application to the Exile does not preclude their applicability to another period if the circumstances were equally fitting'.5 Killers concurs that these motifs are not exclusively exilic concepts and concludes that 'there is nothing decisive against thinking
1. Hillers, Micah, p. 73, n. r. 2. See, for example, J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 67; Mays, Micah, p. 74; Rudolph, Micha, pp. 63-64; Renaud, Formation, pp. 111-14; Stade, 'Das Buch Micha', p. 162; Wellhausen, Kleinen Propheten, p. 139; Willis, The Structure of the Book of Micah', p. 26. 3. Renaud, Formation, pp. 112-14. 4. Wellhausen, Kleinen Propheten, p. 139; J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 67. 5. Allen, Micah, p. 301, n. 90.
76
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
it early or even by Micah, if we allow for positive, visionary elements in his thought...' 1 Even more significant is the observation of Schibler that the supposed exilic parallels to Mic. 2.12-13 are not really parallels.2 Other than the fact that Isa. 52.12 includes the words 'go up' and Jer. 50.8 includes the words 'go out', these verses have nothing in common with Mic. 2.13. Schibler also notes that the only text besides Mic. 2.13 that contains both verbs is 1 Kgs 10.29, which is not thought to be an exilic addition. Finally, it is not certain that vv. 12 and 13 presuppose an exile. The occurrence of the word 'remnant' only suggests a diminished state of Israel, not that Israel is scattered abroad.3 Moreover, it is not clear where the gathering of Israel occurs, nor is it clear where Israel is being led at the end of v. 13. Indeed, these verses have been understood as a description of a gathering to exile and destruction.4 Others have suggested that the verses refer to refugees gathering in Jerusalem or to the reunification of Israel.5 In any case, there is nothing in vv. 12 and 13 that demands an exilic situation. If there is no conclusive evidence to date Mic. 2.12-13 to a time later than the eighth century BCE, one must still decide how the verses are to be interpreted. Whether they attribute the saying to false prophets,6 or a later editor,7 or to Micah himself8 a majority of scholars have understood the verses as an announcement of salvation. On 1. Hillers, Micah, pp. 39-40. 2. Schibler, Le Prophete Michee, p. 145, n. 51. 3. See R. de Vaux, 'Le "Reste d'Israel" d'apres les prophetes', RB 42 (1933), p. 530. 4. Van Hoonacker, Les douze petit prophetes, pp. 374-76. 5. Allen, Micah, p. 302; H. Schmidt, Micha (SAT, Abteilung 2, Band 2, Die Grossen Propheten; Gottingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 1923); Sellin, Das Zwolfprophetenbuch; see the references in Hillers, Micah, p. 39 and J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 66. 6. For example, Ewald, Die Propheten des Alien Bundes, I, p. 512; Van der Woude, 'Micah in Dispute with the Pseudo-prophets', pp. 244-60. 7. Stade, 'Das Buch Micah', p. 162; Renaud, Formation, pp. 111-14; Rudolph, Micha, pp. 63-64; J.M.P. Smith, Micah, pp. 66-67; Mays, Micah, pp. 75-76; Lescow, 'Micha 1-5', p. 81; N. Mendecki, 'Die Sammlung und der Neue Exodus in Micha 2.12-13', Kairos 23 (1981), pp. 96-99. 8. Hillers, Micah, p. 40; Allen, Micah, p. 301. See also Sellin, Das Zwolfprophetenbuch, pp. 275-76.
2. 'My People Have Become an Enemy': Micah 2.1-13
77
the other hand, the verse has been interpreted as an announcement of judgment. 1 Both interpretations understand v. 13 as the chronological and logical continuation of v. 12. In other words, v. 12 contains the basic announcement from Yahweh that Israel is to be gathered, and v. 13 describes what will happen to Israel after Yahweh has gathered her. The assumption that v. 13 is the chronological and logical continuation of the description in v. 12 is open to question, however. In the first place, the speaker in v. 12 is Yahweh, while the speaker in v. 13 is the prophet. Moreover, in contrast to the imperfect verbs of v. 12, all the verbs in v. 13 are in the perfect tense. Thus, while v. 12 is clearly future-oriented, v. 13 appears to be a description of present or past events. It is therefore likely that these verses should be understood as an announcement of salvation in which v. 12 contains the announcement and v. 13 describes events in the present situation which would lead one to believe the announcement of salvation. It would be erroneous to conclude that because these verses proclaim salvation they are a later addition to the original speech. In fact, vv. 12-13 echo important themes already sounded in vv. 1-11. As we shall see, vv. 1-11 assume that Israel is divided and, in the view of the prophet, involved in self-destruction. Verse 12 also presupposes a situation in which Israel is so divided that the 'remnant' or survivors need to be regathered. In addition, both vv. 4-5 and v. 12 are based on the idea of a reversal of fate. The former verses describe how those who have taken land will be dispossessed, and the latter verse describes how those who are scattered and in distress will be gathered. Finally, in both v. 4 and v. 13, the reversal of fate is accomplished by military action. Mic. 2.4 probably refers to a military defeat of the oppressors at the hands of an individual called 'a rebel' while v. 13 makes reference to a military victory led by one described as 'the one who breaks out'.2 There are enough connections of themes, images and ideas to justify considering vv. 12 and 13 as part of the rhetorical unit. In addition, these themes and the presupposition of the same situation indicate that Mic. 2.1-13 forms a unit distinct from the following material. While Mic. 2.1-13 expects a military defeat of the oppressors and the 1. 2.
See p. 76 n. 4, above. See below, 'The Rhetorical Situation'.
78
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
reapportionment of land, Mic. 3.Iff announces the destruction of Jerusalem and the judgment of particular leaders of Israel. In addition, the focus of Mic. 3.Iff is Jerusalem and the national leaders, while Mic. 2.1-13 focuses on a powerful group within the nation. Finally, the summons to hear in Mic. 3.1 serves as a good beginning to a new discourse. Both the structure and the situation presupposed indicate that Mic. 2.1-13 may be understood as a unified discourse which is distinct from the following material. The Rhetorical Situation Objective Factors The major objective factor of the rhetorical situation can be stated concisely: some within Israel are involved in acts of oppression against others. As simple as this statement may seem, it raises three important questions that require further investigation. First, what is the identity of those committing acts of oppression? Second, what is the nature of their deeds? Third, who are the oppressed? A number of observations can be made in answer to the first question. First, the oppressors are clearly a part of Israelite society. Their identity is reflected in their objections which Micah anticipates in vv. 6-7. These objections rest on the confessional motif that Yahweh is 'slow to anger' (cf. Exod. 34.6; Num. 14.8). As Rudolph states the matter: 'Sie wehren sich (7) soausagen mit der Bibel in her Hand'.1 Their objections are also based on the belief that they are righteous and that the deeds of Yahweh 'do good' to those who are righteous. Since the oppressors claim Israel's unique relationship with Yahweh as their own, there is little doubt that they are part of Israelite society. In addition, the oppressors appear to be a rather clearly defined group within Israel. Verse 3 refers to them as 'this family'. It is not necessary to conclude that 'this family' refers to all Judah or Israel2 since the word has a variety of meanings in the Old Testament. In addition to referring to the nation, it can also mean a clan, tribe or guild.3 Mispahah can thus apparently refer to any identifiable group 1. Rudolph, Micha, p. 60. 2. This is the conclusion of Mays, Micah, pp. 64-65; Jeremias, 'Deutung', p. 333; Renaud, Formation, pp. 73-74; Lescow, 'Micha 1-5', p. 31. 3. See BDB, pp. 1046-47.
2. 'My People Have Become an Enemy': Micah 2.1-13
79
or sub-division of such a group. In the context of v. 3, the phrase 'this family' suggests not all Israel, but an identifiable group within the nation. Finally, it is clear that this group of oppressors is powerful. They are able to carry out their plots 'because it lies in the power of their hand' (v. 2). Furthermore, they are capable of seizing land by various means (vv. 3, 8, 9). Some have sought to clarify further the identity of the group that speaks in vv. 6-7. Donat and van der Woude believe that the objections are raised by the so-called false prophets.1 Support for this view comes from the occurrence of the verb 'preach' in vv. 6 and 11. Nevertheless, it is more probable that the objection to Micah's message would be raised by those condemned in vv. 1-5. Micah's concluding remark aimed at 'this people' also suggests a group larger than false prophets opposed to Micah. Thus, most commentators conclude that the words of vv. 6-7 reflect the objection of those who found Micah's message to be offensive.2 Other scholars have argued that those whom Micah condemns are the powerful rich nobles of Jerusalem who use 'official force' to their advantage.3 Still others have suggested that the oppressors are the rich throughout Judah who oppress the poor.4 It should be noted, however, that there is no explicit indication that the oppressors are either Jerusalem officials or wealthy land barons. One can only conclude that those whom Micah condemns are a powerful, clearly defined group within Israelite society. The identity of the oppressors can be clarified further only as the second and third questions of the objective factor are explored. What are the deeds of the oppressors? The deeds condemned by Micah are seizing land and driving away the inhabitants. Verse 2 accuses the 1. H. Donat, 'Micha 2.6-9', BZ 9 (1911), pp. 350-66; Van der Woude, 'Micah in Dispute', p. 249; J. de Waard, 'Vers une Identification des Participants dans Livre de MicheV, Revue d'Historie et de Philosophic Religieuses 59 (1979), p. 510. 2. Renaud, Formation, p. 88; Willis, 'Micah 2.6-8', pp. 75-81. 3. See especially A. Alt, 'Micha 2.1-5 Ges anadasmos in Juda', NTorT 56 (1955), pp. 13-23; Mays, Micah, p. 62; H.W. Wolff, 'Micah the Moreshite—the Prophet and his Background', in J.G. Gammie et al. (eds.), Israelite Wisdom (Missoula, MT: Scholars Press, 1978), p. 80. 4. For example, Killers, Micah, p. 33.
80
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
oppressors of 'seizing fields'. In addition, they are guilty of oppressing 'an owner and his house'. According to Raymond Westbrook the verb used here ('asaq) essentially means to deny people that which is rightfully theirs. According to him, in Mic. 2.2 'the reference is to denial of inheritance-rights that are due to a nuclear family (byt 'by.1 Yet, there remains the question of method: how are the oppressors able to take land? Most answer by suggesting that the oppressors seize land through the imposition of debt servitude and usury.2 In particular, v. 8 is cited as an indication of such economic oppression. Willis expresses the majority opinion when he says, 'The offence condemned here is that of seizing a poor man's garment in pledge and failing to return it before sundown (cf. Exod. 22.26-27)'.3 A number of factors raise doubts about such an interpretation of Mic. 2.8. First, it must be noted that in Exod. 22.26-27 and Deut. 24.12-13 the offense condemned is not the taking of a garment, but the failure to return the garment before night. In Micah, however, the offense is the act of taking rather than failing to return the garment. It is also significant that the word 'pledge' is not used in vv. 8-9 or in the rest of Micah 2. This lack of reference to 'pledge' and the emphasis on the act of taking the garment makes it doubtful that Micah is referring to the laws of Exodus and Deuteronomy. Secondly, the verb 'strip' is somewhat more forceful than the act of receiving a garment for a pledge. Elsewhere the verb is used of stripping the dead after a battle (1 Sam. 31) and the plundering of a conquered people (Ezek. 23.26). The force of the word is also reflected in the fact that the same word is used with the meaning 'to flay'. To 'strip the garment' thus suggests an act more violent than simply taking a pledge. In addition, in Exod. 22.26-27 and Deut. 24.12-13 the offense is prohibited because it is directed against the poor. In contrast, Micah makes it clear that the victims in 2.8 are simply the peaceful who turn away from war. The emphasis on 'peace' and 'averse to war' suggests that 'stripping the cloak' refers not to taking something in pledge but 1. R. Westbrook, Studies in Biblical and Cuneiform Law (Cahiers de la Revue Biblique 26; Paris: Gabalda, 1988), pp. 36-37. 2. Mays, Micah, p. 64; Hillers, Micah, p. 33; Allen, Micah, p. 298; J.M.P. Smith, Micah, pp. 56-57. 3. Willis, 'Micah 2.6-8', p. 82.
2. 'My People Have Become an Enemy': Micah 2.1-13
81
to acts of violence against the peaceful. Finally, if the proposed reading of the text is correct, the noun 'eder may not even be a reference to garments. While 'eder can mean garment, more often the noun and the related verb and adjective mean 'glory' or 'majesty'.1 The exact meaning in v. 8 is not clear, but the occurrence of the less common word for 'garment' may suggest that the prophet has something in mind other than the taking of a piece of clothing for a pledge. The analogy between the accusation in Mic. 2.8 and the prohibitions of Deuteronomy and Exodus is thus too weak to conclude that Micah is condemning the offense of not returning garments taken in pledge. Micah's accusations point not to the foreclosure of mortgages and debt servitude, but to harassment and acts of violence by those in positions of power. Indeed, v. 8a accuses the oppressors of 'becoming an enemy'. Verse 9 continues to elaborate on the charges against the oppressors. Here the accusation is that of driving women and children off the land. In light of the war imagery in v. 8 the verb 'drive' is significant since it often indicates the driving out of an enemy by means of a military campaign (see Exod. 23.28, 31; 34.11; Josh. 24.21; 2 Chron. 20.11). Micah's accusation is thus that the powerful are violently dispossessing women and children, driving them off the land which rightfully is their inheritance. Even in v. 2, the taking of land may have been achieved through the use of military force rather than economic exploitation. While the verb gdzal (v. 2a) obviously refers to some sort of expropriation, other occurrences of the verb connote the use of physical violence. Indeed, in Judg. 9.55 and Judg. 21.23 the verb clearly indicates the use of military means to achieve a particular goal.2 In fact in the former case the reference is to the ambushing of travelers, while the latter case refers to raids carried out to capture brides. It is clear in Mic. 2.2 that land is being taken, but the occurrence of gdzal may 1. BOB, p. 12. Unfortunately, the only other occurrence of the form found in Mic. 2.8 is in Zech. 11.13 where it appears to have a quite different meaning. G.W. Ahlstrom suggests that the noun means 'buckle' in Mic. 2.8 ("eder\ VT 17 [1967], pp. 1-7). It is not possible to accept this conclusion, however, since the evidence is practically non-existent. A better solution may be to accept the common meaning of the word. 2. Westbrook, Biblical and Cuneiform Law, pp. 16-17.
82
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
indicate that land is seized through military might rather than abuse of the debt laws of the country. Finally, against whom are these deeds directed? Just as a majority of scholars have identified the oppressors as the rich, so have the oppressed been identified as the poor.1 An observation of H.W. Wolff calls this interpretation into question, however: It is striking that Micah never once calls his tormented compatriots poor (|V2K), helpless C?n), or oppressed ('3JO, as is quite often done by Amos... and not infrequently by Isaiah... Obviously... Micah visualizes in them more the free men (Mic. 2.2)...2
Indeed, there is nothing in the text that would prohibit seeing the oppressed as holding even significant amounts of land; the objects of the oppressors' attack are 'fields' and 'an owner and his house'. While commentators have understood 'house' in 2a as a reference to a physical structure, the word can be used to designate 'arable land' in some situations. 3 Parallelism with 'fields' in the first half of v. 2 strongly suggests that in this case 'house' means land rather than an edifice. Moreover, the verbs used in v. 2 suggest the use of force. One could argue that the imagery of war throughout vv. 8-9 should be understood metaphorically. Although such an understanding is not impossible, it is significant that there is no unambiguous reference to economic exploitation through foreclosures and usury. The taking of land which Micah condemns appears to be achieved mostly through acts of violence and harassment. It is true that the oppressors also attack the 'women of my people' and 'her children'. Yet even here one need not conclude that the victims are widows and orphans. A literal reading of v. 9 suggests another interpretation. The MT contains a disagreement between the possessive pronoun and the antecedent: 'You drive the women of my people from her fair house'. Moreover, this apparent disagreement is continued into the next line: 'From her children...' The fact that the singular possessive suffix occurs twice suggests that it is more than a textual error that needs to be emended. Hillers suggests that in v. 9 1. For example, J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 56; Mays, Micah, pp.64, 71; Allen, Micah, p. 298. 2. Wolff, 'Micah the Moreshite', p. 81. 3. H.W. Wolff, Hose a (Hermeneia; Philadelphia: Fortress Press, 1974), p. 137.
2. 'My People Have Become an Enemy': Micah 2.1-13
83
'her' refers either to the nation or to 'Mother Zion'.1 Thus the dispossessing of women and children is interpreted as a crime against the nation and Jerusalem. Luker has taken up Millers' suggestion and developed it further: In the midst of the audience sits Lady Jerusalem herself (v. 9); they are not driven from 'their houses', but out of 'her beloved house'; nor is the divine glory removed from 'their' children, but from 'hers'.2
The interpretation proposed by Millers and Luker opens the possibility that 'women' and 'children' should be understood metaphorically in v. 9. When Micah addressed the cities of the Shephelah in 1.10-15 his 'feminine personification of the villages and their inhabitants is clear and striking...'3 This consistent and intense feminine personification of villages and populations raises the possibility that 'the women of my people' in v. 9 is a reference to the towns or inhabitants of Israel. In addition, in Mic. 1.16 the towns are called Jerusalem's 'children' (bene). The reference to 'her children* ('olaleyha) in 2.9 could be a similar reference to the towns and villages of Judah. If so, in 2.9 'her children' is parallel in meaning to 'women' much as we find in Mic. 1.10-16. It is thus possible that v. 9 means: 'The populations of my people you drive away from Jerusalem's fair house; from her towns you take away my glory forever'. If this interpretation is correct, one may conclude that the oppressed include not only individual landowners but also entire towns and their populations which are in some way 'driven away' from Jerusalem. One final observation can be made concerning the identity of the victims in chapter 2. The dividing line between the oppressor and the oppressed seems to be found in v. 8c. Those who are attacked are 'averse to war'. This phrase suggests not simply a group of peaceloving people, but a group that has 'turned away' from war; that is, they have rejected war. This description of the victims may indicate that they have chosen to surrender their property rather than fight. Thus, their attitude towards militarism and policies that lead to warfare rather than their social class or economic standing is the characteristic of the oppressed that separates them from the oppressors. 1. Killers, Micah, p. 35. 2. Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 170. 3. Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 110, n. 12.
84
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
While some exact details remain uncertain, it is now possible to state with more precision the objective factors indicated in the rhetorical situation. First, those upon whom Micah proclaims judgment form a powerful, clearly defined group. These oppressors are Israelites and claim the protection of Yahweh. There is little in these verses to indicate that this group is comprised of land barons or wealthy officials. Second, there is little evidence that the deeds of the oppressors are related to exploiting debt laws and foreclosing on loans. Rather, their deeds seem to be the violent dispossessing and harassment of people. Finally, the oppressed appear to be landowners as well as entire populations and villages. The victims are not described as being poor or powerless; rather they are characterized as being 'averse to war'. Subjective Factors A number of subjective factors have shaped the speech in Mic. 2.1-13. As one would expect, a major factor is the prophet's own evaluation of the situation and its consequences. The prophet holds the strong belief that the conduct of the oppressors will bring forth severe and certain punishment from Yahweh himself. In the prophet's view the coming judgment will take the form of a military defeat of the oppressors. Verse 4 is probably to be understood either as a lament which the punished will sing or a lament to be sung on behalf of the punished by professional mourners. The contents of this brief lament indicate several aspects of the prophet's understanding of the approaching day of judgment. First, it will be a time of military defeat. The term 'ruined' (sador) often refers to the devastation wrought by military action.1 In particular, one should note Jer. 9.1719 where the word is used in a lament describing the aftermath of an invasion. Second, unless one emends the text, v. 4 suggests that Micah believes an individual will be responsible for taking the land from the oppressors: 'He changes the portion of my people. Alas! he removes it from me. Our fields are portioned out by a rebel!' Although Luker has suggested that the third-person singular verbs should be understood as impersonal,2 is likely that they refer to an individual. Indeed, 1. 2.
See the references in BOB, p. 994. Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 91.
2. 'My People Have Become an Enemy': Micah 2.1-13
85
the last line of v. 4 probably means that the holdings of the oppressors are to be divided by an individual who, in the eyes of the oppressors, is a 'rebel' (sobeb).1 The prophet apparently is referring to an expected leader of a victorious army who will divide the spoils after his conquest of the oppressors. The day of the defeat of the oppressors will thus bring a reversal of fate: those who have taken land through violence will be dispossessed violently and their property will be divided as spoils of war. As noted above, it may be precisely at this point that there is a connection with vv. 12-13. Like v. 4, v. 13 apparently refers to a military action led by a specific individual. A careful reading suggests that v. 13 is the announcement of a successful military campaign: an individual ('the one who breaks out') has 'gone up' before them (his army?) and they have broken through, reached 'the gate' and have gone out through it. The verb 'go up' ('alah) is often used to describe an army going into battle.2 While the exact meaning of 'the one who breaks out' is not known, this word also has military connotations. Often it is used to refer to breaching the walls of a city.3 On the other hand, it may have the more general meaning of 'the one who breaks away' or 'who rebels against'.4 It is possible that the references to 'crossing to the gate' and 'going out by it' refer to the troops leaving a city to go into battle. The text may actually refer to ritual preparation for battle. Such a ritual preparation for war is described in Hittite texts as a means by which the deity was pacified and the army was purified after a defeat: It was the only occasion at which human sacrifice was still practiced; the army had to march through a 'gate' erected from sticks of wood and between the two halves of a sacrificed prisoner. One believed that the contamination which had made the army unfit to conquer the enemy could not pass such an obstacle and thus was left behind.5
1. Hillers suggests that the term refers to groups considered to be religiously inferior (Micah, p. 32, n. p). The text under consideration, however, contains nothing that points to a purely or even primarily religious dimension to the conflict. 2. See BDB, p. 748. 3. See Ps. 80.12; 89.40; Isa. 5.5; 2 Kgs 13.14. Other references are given in BDB, p. 829. 4. Especially in the hithpael. See BDB, p. 829. 5. A. Goetze, 'Warfare in Asia Minor', Iraq, 25-26 (1963-64), p. 129.
86
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
Although one need not conclude that Mic. 2.13 presupposes human sacrifice, it is possible that a ritual of passing through a 'gate' before battle lies behind this verse. In any case, the verse presents a picture of an army following 'their king' into battle. Finally, the image of the deity going before the king and his army suggests a military campaign. Parallelism leads most scholars to conclude that 'their king' in v. 13c is to be identified as Yahweh. While this conclusion is possible, it is not the only interpretation of the verse. Schibler has suggested that the parallelism of v. 13 expresses a royal ideology: Yahweh and the king are one.1 At the very least the king stood in a special relationship with Yahweh.2 It is thus possible that 13c expresses the prophet's view that 'their king' is acting on behalf of Yahweh. On the other hand, in the ancient Near East, it was commonly believed that the deity preceded the king and army into battle.3 Thus, rather than merely expressing a royal ideology, Mic. 2.13 presents a picture of Yahweh leading both king and army into battle. If v. 13 is a description of recent or presently occurring events, then v. 13 provides the objective facts upon which Micah bases his conclusion that the land of the oppressors will be violently taken by an individual leader or king and divided as the spoils of war. A second major subjective factor is the prophet's perception that there is strong resistance to his message. The objections raised in vv. 6-7 suggest that Micah was addressing an audience which was not receptive to his message, or at least an audience which had heard objections to his message. In any case, the prophet's perception of his audience would clearly be a force that would shape his speech. A third subjective factor is the prophet's belief that by their actions, the oppressors lose any claim to Yahweh's special protection. This 1. Schibler, Le Prophete Michee, p. 151. 2. See the discussion by R. de Vaux, Ancient Israel, I (New York: McGrawHill, 1965), pp. 101-5, 111. 3. A visible presence of Yahweh was the ark which accompanied the troops into battle (2 Sam. 11.11). Assyrian texts may reflect the idea that Ashur preceded the troops into battle. For example, The terror-inspiring glamor of Ashur, my lord, overwhelmed him...' (ANET, p. 281) or a similar phrase is a typical feature of numerous Assyrian inscriptions. Perhaps the closest parallels are to be found in Hittite texts which, according to Goetze, indicate that the gods 'marched in front of the king and his army' ('Warfare in Asia Minor', p. 129).
2. 'My People Have Become an Enemy': Micah 2.1-13
87
belief is seen most directly in the prophet's use of the term 'my people' in vv. 8 and 9. H.W. Wolff has argued that in Micah 1-3 'my people' always refers to the rural landowners whom Micah represents in his capacity as an elder of the land.1 Mic. 2.8, however, is the prophet's refutation of the opponents' objections that as God's people (the house of Jacob) no evil can overtake them. In response, the prophet, speaking for Yahweh, declares that 'my people have become an enemy'; that is, those who claim to be Yahweh's people have been transformed into Yahweh's enemy. As Willis notes, the use of 'my people' in v. 8 is 'derived from the claims made by Micah's opponents, and therefore is ironical...' 2 In addition, it is possible that in the following verse (v. 9) 'my people' refers to 'God's people' since the prophet speaks as a representative of Yahweh. Indeed, it is probably not necessary to make a sharp distinction between the words of the prophet and the words of Yahweh throughout this chapter. Goals and Strategy In light of the rhetorical situation it is clear that Micah must create a discourse to meet two goals. First, he must communicate and persuade his audience of his evaluation of the situation and its consequences. Second, he must refute the arguments of those opposed to him. Since Micah apparently anticipates the objections of his opponents within the speech (vv. 6-7), it is reasonable to conclude that the entire discourse was conceived as a response to the arguments set forth by his opponents. In order to achieve these goals Micah creates a discourse which is similar to what classical rhetoric classifies as a deliberative speech; that is, it seeks to persuade its hearers to take certain actions or attitudes in the future.3 The organization of the arguments can be outlined as follows:
1. 2. 3.
Wolff, 'Micah the Moreshite', pp. 77-84. Willis, 'Micah 2.6-8', p. 86. See Kennedy, New Testament Interpretation, pp. 19-20.
88
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis I.
II.
III.
IV. V.
Thesis (vv. 1-5) The guilty will be punished A. Description of unacceptable behavior (1-2) B. Announcement of judgment (v. 3) C. Nature of judgment i. dispossessed and humiliated (v. 4) ii. permanent (v. 5) Objections of opponents (vv. 6-7) A. Jacob is not cursed B. Yahweh is patient C. His deeds are good to those who are upright Refutation (vv. 8-10) A. 'my people' have become an enemy B. Description of acts of those who claim to be 'my people' C. Result of actions: loss of Yahweh's favor i. arise and go ii. reasons ('because of uncleanness') Ridicule of those who refuse to hear (v. 11) Coda: Positive side of judgment A. Yahweh will regather the oppressed (v. 12) B. Proof: military victory already accomplished by Yahweh (v. 13)
The woe oracle that opens the speech functions to command the attention of the audience. In addition, the woe oracle has three important functions. First, if the woe oracle is derived from the mourning cry, its use here serves to announce the certainty of judgment upon the oppressors. Those addressed by the prophet are on a path that leads directly to the grave.1 Second, the woe oracle allows the prophet to describe in some detail the behavior that he finds to be unacceptable. Third, since the woe oracle typically employs reversal imagery,2 the prophet is able to use it to introduce his belief that the oppressors will be dispossessed. The woe cry also makes it clear that the prophet is relying upon an emotional appeal to convince his audience of this point of view. He makes no effort to prove logically that judgment upon the oppressors 1. Mays, Micah, p. 62. 2. W. Janzen, Mourning Cry and Woe Oracle (BZAW 125; Berlin: de Gruyter, 1972), pp. 35-39.
2. 'My People Have Become an Enemy': Micah 2.1-13
89
is the outcome of the present situation. The prophet simply proclaims the reality of that outcome with a cry of mourning over the oppressors as if the situation were already reversed. In addition, the reality of the coming judgment is underscored by the detailed picture that the prophet paints for his audience. The judgment will be permanent ('they will not remove their necks') and irreversible (v. 5). The judgment will also involve humiliation: their lands will be divided by one considered to be their inferior (v. 4). Both the woe oracle and the detailed description of the judgment heighten the emotional impact of Micah's words and thus convince his hearers of the reality that produces such emotions. In addition to the emotional appeal, the prophet relies upon an appeal to authority to convince his hearers. The beginning of v. 3 makes it clear that the audience is to receive the proclamation of judgment not simply as the words of the prophet, but as the words of Yahweh himself. Indeed, as noted above, throughout this discourse there seems to be little distinction between the words of the prophet and the words of Yahweh. The prophet has assumed the stance of Yahweh's spokesman to make his speech more persuasive and to counter the arguments of opposing prophets. In vv. 6-9 the prophet refutes the arguments of his opponents. First, the objections that he expects to be raised are set forth. These objections are three-fold. First, the opponents remind the prophet that Yahweh has not cursed Israel, and secondly they point out that Yahweh is a patient God (v. 6b). Finally, the opponents seem to suggest that they are actually the righteous who 'walk uprightly'. In citing the objections of his opponents Micah is following an effective rhetorical strategy which allows the speaker to refute the specific objections he anticipates his speech will encounter.1 Having acknowledged the objections to his message, Micah turns to refute those objections (vv. 8-9). Now, however, the prophet uses a rational appeal. His argument basically has three parts. Underlying the prophet's argument is the unspoken assumption that Yahweh's people follow certain accepted standards of conduct.2 In particular, they 1. It is unlikely that we have here a record of Micah's actual debate with his opponents. Rather, in vv. 6-7 the prophet quotes the objections he has heard or expects to encounter. 2. Logical arguments often assume the major premise since it is accepted by
90
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
respect the property rights of others. Yet, according to the prophet, the accused have violated this standard of conduct (vv. 8b-c, 9). This description of the conduct of his opponents is also a direct answer to their claim that they walk upright. Because they have not acted as Yahweh's people should, the prophet concludes that they are no longer Yahweh's people, but have become his enemy (v. 8a). They have thus forfeited the right to the patience and protection Yahweh has promised his people (v. 10). Ridicule is a powerful weapon in rhetoric against those who reject the arguments of the speaker.1 Micah thus employs ridicule against those who still reject his assessment of the situation. Not only is their blindness held up for others to see, but also the ridicule heaped upon them makes others less inclined to reject the prophet's arguments. Finally, the prophet addresses those who are currently oppressed and suffering. The survivors are to be gathered and Israel will be reunited. Yahweh will surely gather the oppressed who are like sheep in distress. The certainty of the gathering of the survivors is conveyed through the use of the absolute infinitive.2 The prophet can be certain that a radical change of circumstances is imminent because of the events that are described in v. 13. Already Yahweh has accomplished a victory through a king. The tide has turned, and this victory signals the beginning of the reversal of the current situation. In summary, the prophet's strategy is to convince through a deliberative speech utilizing both emotional and rational appeals. In each case, the argument has the same goal: to convince his audience of the reality of the coming judgment and to refute the claims of his opponents that judgment cannot overtake them. Micah paints a detailed picture of judgment which has negative implications for the oppressors and offers hope to the oppressed. It is noteworthy that in proclaiming both the negative and positive aspects of judgment the prophet speaks on behalf of Yahweh, thus giving authority to his words. Both these negative and positive factors as well as the use of
both speaker and audience; Kennedy, New Testament Interpretation, pp. 16-17. 1. C. Perelman and L. Olbrechts-Tyteca, The New Rhetoric: A Treatise on Argumentation (trans. J. Wilkinson and P. Weaver; Notre Dame: University of Notre Dame Press, 1969), p. 206. 2. Williams, Hebrew Syntax: An Outline, pp. 37-38.
2. 'My People Have Become an Enemy': Micah 2.1-13
91
ridicule help to persuade his audience to adopt a certain attitude or action toward present and future events. Historical Possibilities If Mic. 2.1-13 is indeed an original unity as I have suggested, what historical background can be proposed for the speech? First, it should be noted that any attempt to locate the historical setting for these verses must be viewed as tentative. The chapter contains no explicit reference to a known historical event, nor does it name a historical figure or place. Consequently many scholars are either quite general when discussing the background of the chapter, or simply offer no proposal at all for the historical setting. Nevertheless, in light of the elements in the rhetorical situation, some attempt can be made to discern the historical circumstances behind Micah 2. In particular, the historical setting must take into account the societal divisions presupposed by the discourse. A substantial group within Israel ('this family') is involved in harassing and dispossessing those who are 'averse to war'. Those being terrorized and driven out may include populations and towns (v. 9). A military victory, however, has signaled the turning of the tide and the prophet now expects judgment to overtake the oppressors. When these factors are taken into consideration, it is possible to evaluate suggested historical settings and perhaps propose a possible background for Mic. 2.1-13. On the one hand, some have suggested that the events underlying Micah's discourse represent the normal state of affairs for Israel. George Adam Smith suggests that the situation in Micah 2 is the time between major threats to Judah when normal social life could proceed and the rich could exploit the poor. Thus, he proposes either the period between 719 and 710 or 710 and 705 BCE. 1 Schibler also suggests that the majority of the chapter dates to about 715 BCE before the reforms of Hezekiah.2 Unfortunately, to suggest that the events depicted in chapter 2 do not presuppose a major disruption of Israel's social life is to ignore the factors in the rhetorical situation. As noted above, the discourse 1. G.A. Smith, The Book of the Twelve Prophets, I (New York: Doubleday, 1929), p. 389. 2. Schibler, Le Prophete Michee, p. 144.
92
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
presupposes events more disruptive than the unethical acquisition of land by the rich. Indeed, the violent dispossession of the peaceful is a far different situation from foreclosing mortgages and imposing debt servitude. What is represented in Micah 2 is clearly out of the ordinary and an attempt should be made to find the unusual historical circumstances which prompted the speech. On the other hand, some have suggested that the historical reality underlying all or part of Mic. 2.1-13 is an expected Assyrian invasion in either 725-722 BCE or 701 BCE. 1 Several reasons are cited in support of such a scenario. First, it is assumed that the expectation of an invasion is presupposed by v. 4.2 Second, a number of scholars have dated vv. 12-13 to 701 BCE on the assumption that these verses describe the Assyrian invasion and the gathering of refugees into Jerusalem.3 Finally, van Hoonacker has suggested that Mic. 2.1-13 dates to 725-722 on the assumption that chapter 2 gives the reasons for judgment announced in chapter I.4 In addition, van Hoonacker concludes that Mic. 2.8 should be emended so that the text refers to Shalmaneser. In each case the evidence is doubtful. First, the judgment announced in v. 4 suggests that the land will be divided by 'a rebel', an inappropriate designation for the Assyrians.5 In addition, v. 5 depicts judgment as excluding the guilty from participation in the traditional allotment of land in Israel. Such a judgment does not suggest that a foreign power is to be the agent of judgment. On the contrary, Israelites will divide among themselves the land of the guilty. Second, it is doubtful that vv. 12 and 13 can be read as a description of the seige of Jerusalem. Not only would the perfects of v. 13 have to be read as futures, but one would have to imagine a rather odd description of the attempt to find refuge in Jerusalem. 'Cramming of a besieged people into Jerusalem would hardly be described as Yah wen's gathering of his flock... '6 Finally, van Hoonacker's attempt to connect the discourse of 1. Lindblom, Micha literarisch untersucht, pp. 143-45; Mays, Micah, p. 62; van Hoonacker, Les douze petits prophetes, pp. 341-71. 2. Mays, Micah, p. 62; J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 58. 3. See above, p. 73, n. 6. 4. Van Hoonacker, Les douze petits prophetes, pp. 341-44. 5. Killers, Micah, p. 32, n. p. 6. Killers, Micah, p. 39.
2. 'My People Have Become an Enemy': Micah 2.1-13
93
Micah 2 with the events of 725-722 BCE must be rejected. The suggested emendations of Mic. 2.8 are doubtful and unnecessary. In addition, even if Micah 1 does date to 701 BCE it would be doubtful that chapters 1 and 2 are part of the same speech. The strategies and rhetorical situations are sufficiently different to point to separate speeches delivered on separate occasions. Interestingly, those who date the speech to a time when invasion seemed imminent read Micah 2 as a description of the rich seizing the lands of the poor. If an invasion seemed likely, it is doubtful that individuals would occupy themselves with acquiring land. Events during the Babylonian invasion of 586 BCE show that acquiring property during such a time was considered a foolish act.1 On the other hand, if Micah 2 describes violent dispossession and harassment then one must confess that such a scenario has little connection with what is known of any periods of Assyrian invasion. The search for a historical setting for Micah 2 thus leads one back to that period of Israel's history in the eighth century when there were societal divisions and near or actual civil war. As noted in the previous chapter the time near the death of Jeroboam II was probably a period of internal strife for Israel and Judah. It is likely that the causes of this infighting were Jeroboam's policy toward Assyria and the uneven distribution of wealth in Israel and Judah. As a result, various factions competed with Jerusalem and Samaria for the control of the nation. Although many factions may have competed for control of Israel in the years after the death of Jeroboam II, the biblical account focuses on the rivalry between Shallum and Menahem (2 Kgs 15.8-16). Shallum assassinated Zechariah, the son of Jeroboam II, and seized the throne of Samaria. The overthrow of the Jehu dynasty was apparently supported by many who hoped for a change in economic conditions and in the national policy toward Assyria. Indeed, the biblical account may indicate that sizeable segments of the population supported Shallum in his struggle with Menahem (2 Kgs 15.16). In light of the close connection between Israel and Judah, Shallum probably found supporters not only in the north, but also among factions in Judah which were discontented with policies under Jeroboam and Jotham. It
1.
See Jer. 32.6-15.
94
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
is thus possible that Shallum's accession also proved to be a threat to Jotham and Jerusalem. On the other hand, Menahem apparently represented a faction that wanted to continue the pro-Assyrian policies of Jeroboam II and Jotham. Subsequent actions reveal Menahem's willingness to co-operate with Assyria. No later than 738 BCE Menahem paid tribute to Tiglath-Pileser III when the latter was in the area.1 More importantly, 2 Kgs 15.19 makes it clear that Menahem was able to maintain his rule only with the help of Assyria: Tul, the king of Assyria came against the land; and Menahem gave Pul a thousand talents of silver, that he might help him confirm his hold of the royal power'. 2 Kgs 15.19 may be interpreted as a report that Menahem paid for Assyrian troops to be stationed in Israel.2 Whatever the exact significance of this text, it is clear that Menahem pursued a policy of co-operation with Assyria. It is thus possible that his revolt against Shallum was an attempt to preserve the pro-Assyrian policies of Jeroboam II and Jotham.3 The struggle between Menahem and Shallum may be reflected in the discourse of Mic. 2.1-13. This chapter clearly assumes that society is badly divided although the divisions are not along class lines. A powerful group within Israel is gaining control of territory through harassment and acts of violence. If my interpretation of Mic. 2.9 is correct the group which has become an 'enemy' (v. 8) is guilty of attacking and driving out populations and seizing control of towns which belong to Jerusalem ('her house'). Micah equates the actions of the oppressors with violations of the accepted codes of conduct regarding property rights. It may be significant that a similar characterization is made by Hosea: 'The princes of Judah have become like those who remove the landmark...' (Hos. 5.10). Although the oppressors are not clearly identified they may be supporters of Shallum's attempt to set Israel on a different course. In any case, since the oppressors are seizing territories that belong to Jerusalem, one may safely infer that the attackers are sufficiently 1. ANET, p. 283. 2. T.R. Hobbs, 2 Kings (WBC 13; Waco, TX: Word Books, 1985). 3. For the theory that the conflicts of this period must be interpreted in light of policy toward Assyria see especially K. Fullerton, 'Isaiah's Earliest Prophecy against Ephraim', AJSL 33 (1916-17), pp. 9-39 (esp. pp. 32-33).
2. 'My People Have Become an Enemy': Micah 2.1-13
95
discontent with Jerusalem's policies to contest her control of the country. It may be possible to understand Mic. 2.12-13 in light of the struggle between Shalum and Menahem. Micah seems to have in mind a specific event when he refers to a military victory in v. 13. In addition, the above interpretation suggests that the prophet points to a specific individual, identified as 'their king', as the agent of judgment upon the oppressors. If this interpretation is correct, it may be possible to understand Mic. 2.13 as a description of Menahem's revolt against Shallum. The assassination of Shallum would appear to have involved a military campaign. The account in 2 Kgs 15.14 suggests not the actions of a lone assassin, but a co-ordinated military coup. The fact that it is reported that Menahem went up from Tirzah suggests that he had the support of that local population, and perhaps commanded a sizeable force of men from the old capital of Israel. In addition, the report could be interpreted as a description of a military assault on Samaria: the verb 'go up' ('dlah) is often used of a military campaign (see 2 Kgs 17.3, 5). In any case, it is unlikely that Menahem singlehandedly entered the fortified town of Samaria, killed the king, and overcame the forces in Samaria which were loyal to Shallum. The fact that Menahem encountered resistance to his rule also suggests that he had to use considerable force to claim the throne initially. Quite possibly, the situation was similar to a much earlier coup in which Omri, an army commander, led a revolt against the usurper, Zimri (1 Kgs 16.15-20). If Menahem did in fact win a military victory in his overthrow of Shallum, it may be this victory to which the prophet Micah refers in Mic. 2.13. Menahem could well be the 'one who breaks out', that is, the one who has broken away or rebelled. In addition, he leads an army which can be described as those who have 'broken away'. Micah thus pictures Menahem leading a rebellious faction into battle. In addition, Menahem may be the one who is described as the 'rebel' who will divide up the land of the oppressors (v. 4). 'The gate' mentioned in v. 13 could either be a reference to Samaria or the gate of the city which they 'go up against', or it could be a reference to the gates of Tirzah through which Menahem leads his troops against Shallum. On the other hand, as noted above, the phrase 'pass through the gate' may be an idiomatic expression for preparing for or going into battle or a
96
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
reference to a military ritual undertaken under special circumstances. Perhaps most important, if this verse refers to Menahem's coup, the prophet designates Menahem as 'their king' who stands in a special relationship with Yahweh. Indeed, the faction of Menahem has the blessing of Yahweh since Micah pictures Yahweh himself leading those who have broken away into battle. There can be little doubt that Menahem's coup was a significant victory for those in Israel and Judah who were willing to co-operate with Assyria. Indeed, Menahem's rule was later supported by Assyria. It can also be assumed that Menahem's rise to power also served to check, for a moment and to a limited extent, those discontented factions which were challenging Jerusalem's authority. Thus, Micah is able to foresee a time when an individual ruler (Menahem) would bring judgment on the oppressors and restore the fortunes of those who have either refused to join Shallum's bid for power or have been caught in the middle of the struggle. It is this recognition of the significance of Menahem's victory that has led Micah boldly to proclaim a reversal of the present situation.
Chapter 3 'is IT NOT FOR You TO ACKNOWLEDGE THE DECISION?' MICAH3.1-4.8
Text and Translation (3.1)
(2)
1
And I said: Hear this, O heads of Jacob and rulers2 of the House of Israel: Is it not for you to acknowledge the decision? You who hate good and love evil, who strip the skin off them, and their flesh from their bones;
1. The LXX reads 'and he said'. Both MT and LXX present problems in interpretation. See the surveys by Renaud, Formation, pp. 119-21 and J.T. Willis, •'A Note on TB0] in Micah 3.1', ZA W 80 (1968), pp. 50-54. In both the LXX and the MT the opening word is unexpected and has been the subject of much debate. Generally three different explanations are set forth for the occurrence of 'and I said'. Mays suggests that the word is an editorial gloss intended to join 3.1-12 to the preceding material (Micah, p. 78), while Willis believes the word is an editorial addition meant to emphasize the break with the preceding oracle ('Micah 3.1', p. 54). Others have taken the word as an indication that this section of Micah is to be understood as part of a debate with the prophet's opponents (van der Woude, 'Micah in Dispute', pp. 244-60; T.A. Boogart, Reflections on the Restoration: A Study of Prophecies in Micah and Isaiah About the Restoration of Northern Israel (dissertation, Groningen, 1981), p. 60). Obviously, certainty is not possible. It is the opinion of the present writer, however, that the occurrence of 'and I said' is an indication that there once existed a prophetic narrative which recorded the circumstances and occasion upon which the following discourse was delivered. Such is the conclusion of Allen (Micah, p. 305) and Budde ('Eine folgenschwere Redaction des Zwolfprophetenbuchs', ZAW39 [1921], p. 322). 2. The LXX reading 'remaining ones' is difficult to explain and may be a reading based on an interpretation of 2.12-13. See Killers, Micah, p. 42.
98
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis (3)
(4)
(5)
(6)
(7)
(8)
and who consume the flesh of my people, and flay their skin off them, and break to pieces their bones; and divide it up1 like that which2 is in the pot, like flesh for the kettle. If they were to cry to Yahweh, then he will not answer. And he will hide his face from them at that time, for they have made evil their deeds. Thus says Yahweh against the prophets who lead my people astray— those who bite with their teeth and declare peace; and whenever one does not put something in their mouths they sanctify war against him.3 Therefore it will be night to you—without vision. And darkness4 to you—without divination. And the sun will go down on the prophets, and black will be the day for them. And the seers will be made ashamed and the diviners disgraced. They shall cover their lips—all of them— when there is no response from God. But as for me: I am filled with power, with the Spirit of Yahweh and with justice and might, to declare to Jacob his transgression and to Israel his sin.
1. Reading prs as equivalent to prs (see Lam. 4.4 and the LXX). 2. The LXX apparently read kise 'er instead of MT ka 'eser. A number of scholars have accepted the LXX reading (Mays, Micah, p. 76; Allen, Micah, p. 304; Killers, Micah, p. 42; J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 71). The reading of the LXX is easily explained by confusion with the word se'er which occurs earlier in the line. The MT is thus retained, although it appears to be rather awkward. 3. Notice the reading of the Targum: 'Whoever gives them a banquet of meat, they prophecy peace for him; but whoever does not offer them something to eat, they prepare war against him'. The Targum of the Minor Prophets. The Aramaic Bible, Vol. 14 (trans. K.J. Cathcart and R.P. Gordon; Wilmington, DE: Michael Glazier, 1989). 4. Reading the noun with the LXX. So Renaud, Formation, p. 131; Hillers, Micah, p. 44; Allen, Micah, p. 310, n. 27; Mays, Micah, p. 80; Rudolph, Micah, p. 67, n. 6a. 5. For the LXX of this verse see Renaud, Formation, p. 131; Hillers, Micah, p. 44.
3. 'To Acknowledge the Decision?': Micah 3.1-4.8 (9)
(10) (11)
(12)
(4.1)
(2)
99
Hear this, heads of the house of Jacob and rulers1 of the house of Israel— who abhor justice and pervert all this is upright, who would build up2 Zion with blood and Jerusalem with acts of violence— her heads make decisions for a bribe, and her priests give instruction for a price; and her prophets divine for money; but they lean on Yahweh, saying, 'Is not Yahweh in our midst? Evil cannot come upon us.' Therefore, because of you, Zion will be plowed as a field and Jerusalem will become heaps of ruins;3 and the temple mount of the house will become wooded heights.4 But5 in the days to come, the mountain of the house6 of Yahweh will be established as the highest of mountains, and will be lifted up above the hills, And the peoples will flow to it, and many nations will come and say,7
1. LXX again reads 'remaining ones'. See above, p. 97, n. 2. 2. The participle in the MT is singular. Although most agree it should be emended to the plural, it could be understood as a collective. 3. Jer. 26.18 reads 'iyytm instead of 'iyyin. The variation may be explained as a dialectic one. See Millers, Micah, p. 47. 4. The versions read a singular rather than the plural 'wooded heights' as found in the MT. The MT should be retained as the more difficult text. See the comments by J. Vincent, 'Michas Gerichtswort gegen Zion (3.12) in seinem Kontext', ZTK 83 (1986), pp. 176-77. 5. The textual variants in vv. 1-3 are of a minor nature and primarily involve differences with Isa. 2.2-4. No discussion of these variants is necessary since 'there is little if any basis for a preference' (Killers, Micah, p. 49). See also the comments by Mays, Micah, pp. 94-95. For an examination of the variants between Micah and Isaiah, consult H. Wildberger, Jesaja (BKAT 10.1; Neukirchen-Vluyn: Neukirchener Verlag, 1972), pp. 75-80. 6. LXX omits bet. 1. Some scholars have omitted we'amSru on the basis of the LXX and meter. The verb is to be retained as an anacrosis. See Hillers, Micah, p. 50; Renaud, Formation, p. 152.
100
(3)
(4)
(5)
(6)
(7)
(8)
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis 'Come, let us go up to the mountain of Yahweh, and to the house of the God of Jacob, that he may teach us his ways and that we may walk in his paths.' For out of Zion will come forth instruction, and the word of Yahweh from Jerusalem. And He will arbitrate among many peoples and decide the cases for strong, distant nations.1 And they will bend their swords into ploughshares and their spears into pruning knives; nation will not lift up sword against nation, and they shall train for war no more. They shall dwell, each one under his own vine, and under his own fig tree, and there will be none to terrify, for the mouth of Yahweh Sebaoth has spoken. Surely every nation walks in the name of its god so let us walk in the name of Yahweh, our god forever and ever. On that day, Yahweh has decreed, 'I will gather the one who limps, and collect her who has wandered, and whomever I have injured. And I will make the one who limps into a remnant, and the wandering one into a mighty nation. And Yahweh will rule over them on Mount Zion, from now and forever. And you, tower of the flock, Ophel of the daughter of Zion, to you shall come and enter in,2 the former dominion,3 rule by Jerusalem.'
Unity and Date The material in Mic. 3.1-4.8 is usually divided into as many as five separate units: 3.1-4; 5-8; and 9-12 are oracles of judgment while 4.11. 'ad-rahdq is absent from Isa. 2.4 and is taken by Renaud to be a gloss (Formation, p. 153). 2. Both synonymous verbs can be retained. The repetition of verbs may well be a stylistic device according to Hillers, Micah, p. 56. 3. The LXX adds 'from Babylon'. The phrase is to be understood not as a misreading but as a later gloss.
3. 'To Acknowledge the Decision?': Micah 3.1-4.8
101
5 and 6-8 are generally classified as oracles of salvation.1 It is generally conceded that at some level Mic. 3.1-12 forms a 'kerygmatic' or 'compositional' unity. 2 Indeed, the three oracles are linked thematically by their accusations against the leaders of society. Moreover, the similarity of form, as well as wordplay, assonance and verbal links tie the material together.3 While it is generally believed that, in spite of the unity, these oracles were delivered on separate occasions4 the possibility that the oracles comprise an original unity must not be dismissed. Indeed, the thematic and verbal links as well as the movement of the chapter toward a clear goal (v. 12) indicate a coherent unity. On the other hand, the material in Mic. 4.1-8 appears to be united by the theme of the restoration of the nation and the future glory of Zion. Mic. 4.1-8 is thus considered by most to be distinct from the preceding material or even a complete contradiction to the judgments envisioned in 3.1-12.5 This apparent contrast has led some to the conclusion that 4.1-8 was added by a later hand to soften the harsh judgment foreseen for Jerusalem in Mic. 3.12.6 There are, however, strong links between 3.1-12 and 4.1-8 based on both theme and rhetorical situation. First, both 3.9-12 and 4.1-5 focus on the theme of 'building up Zion'. On the one hand, the former oracle describes the attempts of the nation's leaders to build up Zion through violence and bloodshed. Their efforts result in the destruction of Jerusalem. On the other hand, Mic. 4.1-5 describes the building up of Zion by Yahweh with the result that Jerusalem receives honor, prestige and power (see also v. 8). The two sections are linked 1. There are, of course, other proposed divisions of this material. For example, Lescow divides 3.5-8 into two separate units ('Micah 1-5', p. 48). More serious disagreements concern the division of Mic. 4.1-8. In particular, commentators are almost evenly divided on the question of whether v. 8 belongs with the preceding material, that which follows, or is an independent saying. See Schibler, Le Prophete Michee, p. 30, n. 21, 22, and 23. 2. Allen, Micah, p. 304; Killers, Micah, p. 42; Rudolph, Micha, p. 68; Lescow, 'Micha 1-5', p. 47; Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 73; Vincent, 'Michas Gerichtswort', p. 169. 3. See Hillers, Micah, p. 42; Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 173. 4. Rudolph, Micha, p. 68; Vincent, 'Michas Gerichtswort', p. 169. 5. Note especially Mays who concludes that Mic. 4.1-4 is a 'direct contradiction' to the judgment of 3.12 (Micah, p. 95). 6. So Stade, 'Bemerkungen iiber das Buch Micha', pp. 169-70; Marti, Das Dodekapropheten, pp. 262-64; Mays, Micah, p. 29.
102
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
grammatically by a conjunction (4.1) and by a progression of thought: after human efforts fail to build up Zion Yahweh himself will exalt the city by his own deeds. In addition to the thematic link between 3.1-12 and 4.1-8, a common rhetorical situation is presupposed. Both sections reflect the speaker's certainty that disaster is inevitable for Jerusalem. Mic. 3.112 gives the reasons for the impending disaster and culminates in the declaration that Jerusalem will be destroyed. On the other hand, all of 4.1-8 underscores the certainty of judgment since the oracles of restoration assume that disaster will most definitely come. It is thus erroneous to view Mic. 4.1-8 as a contradiction of Mic. 3.12. Hillers notes that a true contradiction of 3.12 would have to be 'Jerusalem will not fall, etc.'1 There is obviously a contrast between 3.12 and 4.1, but the words of 4.1-4 'do not ease the indictment, they confirm it, for if the functions of authority continue, the functionaries disappear'.2 In other words, the judgment upon the priests, prophets and heads of Israel will result in Yahweh himself removing these officials and carrying out their tasks. Mic. 3.9-12 and 4.1-8 can thus be taken as two ways of looking at the same idea of the corruption of national leaders and the righteousness of Yahweh.3 The theme of the building of Zion and the speaker's certainty that Jerusalem will be destroyed unite the material in 3.1-4.8, but also separate it from the following discourse in Micah 4.9ff. In 4.9ff. the theme is not those who build up Zion, but the peoples who deliberately attempt to destroy the city. Thus, in 3.11 the people who are addressed appear convinced that Jerusalem will not fall: 'Yet they lean upon Yahweh and say, "Is not Yahweh among us? No evil can come upon us'". In contrast, in 4.9-10 Micah's audience is in panic and distress with no sign of the false confidence evident in 3.1-4.8. Moreover, condemnation of national leaders is not found in Mic. 4.9ff, but dominates all of 3.1-12 and is indirectly involved in 4.1-4 where the function of national leadership is taken over by Yahweh. The themes of the building of Zion and the certainty of disaster thus mark Mic. 3.1-4.8 as a single discourse. 1. Hillers, Micah, p. 53. On the possibility that so-called oracles of hope actually confirm the certainty of disaster, see below under 'Goals and Strategy'. 2. Hillers, Micah, p. 51. 3. This observation is made by Cuffey, The Coherence ofMicah, pp. 347-55.
3. 'To Acknowledge the Decision?': Micah 3.1-4.8
103
A question closely related to that of the unity of Mic. 3.1-4.8 is the date of this material. If it can be decisively demonstrated that this material must be derived from times other than Micah, the unity must be explained as redactional. On the other hand, if arguments for the later dating of the material are not convincing, the possibility is left open that Mic. 3.1-4.8 is an original unity. While scholars assign the majority of material in Mic. 3.1-12 to the prophet himself, some have sought to isolate later additions to the authentic sayings. In 3.4b the phrase 'in that time' is taken by some to be an editorial addition meant to apply Micah's words to the time of the exile.1 The only basis for such a conclusion is a rather arbitrary assumption that any temporal phrase represents a rereading of the text. There is no firm evidence to indicate that references to a future time represent later additions in Micah or other prophetic books. Nothing compels the reader to assume that 3.4b is an exilic updating of the text. Somewhat more complicated is the question of the phrase 'the Spirit of Yahweh' (3.8). On the basis of meter and its prosaic character a number of scholars have deleted this phrase as a later addition.2 Rudolph argues that the inclusion of the phrase is illogical: '...der Geist Jahwes kann nicht zwischen den von ihm gewirkten Eigenschaffen genannt werden'.3 Renaud also notes that the reference to Yahweh's Spirit in connection with prophecy appears to reflect the notion of prophecy in EzekieFs time.4 Although the speech is not greatly affected if the phrase 'the Spirit of Yahweh' were to be a later gloss, a number of observations need to be made on this redactional question. As always, meter is a very precarious criterion for identifying editorial additions. Allen and Lindblom find the meter of 3.8 as it stands to be a very regular 2 + 2 + 2.5 The validity of Rudolph's observation is certainly open to
1. Mays, Micah, p. 80; Renaud, Formation, pp. 128-29; Lescow, 'Micha 15', p. 47; Jeremias, 'Die Deutung', p. 335. 2. Rudolph, Micha, p. 68; Wellhausen, Kleinen Propheten, p. 141; Mays, Micah, p. 81; Renaud, Formation, pp. 134-46. 3. Rudolph, Micha, p. 68. 4. Renaud, Formation, p. 135. 5. Allen, Micah, p. 314, n. 40; J. Lindblom, Prophecy in Ancient Israel (Philadelphia: Fortress Press, 1962), p. 174, n. 107.
104
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
debate. Moreover, it is not certain that the phrase is to be understood as an attribute of Yahweh's Spirit. The phrase 'et-ruah can be understood as prepositional: 'With the help of Yahweh's Spirit'. This interpretation raises questions not only about Rudolph's comments but also about Renaud's assertion that the notion of prophecy found in Mic. 3.8 is similar to that found in Ezekiel. If Micah is merely claiming that true prophecy is possible only through the Spirit of Yahweh, then his point of view is not very distant from that expressed in the prophetic legend of 1 Kings 22 (especially v. 24) which is generally considered to date from a pre-exilic time.1 Lescow has proposed that all of Mic. 3.10-11 is a later addition to Mican material.2 His only support for this suggestion is the change of person in vv. 10 and 11. Thus, Renaud views Lescow's deletion of 3.10-11 as arbitrary and comments: '...il serait excessif d'en tirer argument pour envisager une modification du texte'.3 The most difficult problem raised by Mic. 3.1-4.8 is the question of the origin of Mic. 4.1-4. Since the oracle contained in Mic. 4.1-4 is also found in Isa. 2.2-4, serious doubts are raised about attributing the material to Micah. On the basis of vocabulary, theme and style a number of scholars have concluded that the oracle is Isaianic,4 while others have used these same criteria to conclude that the oracle is original to Micah.5 Most scholars, however, consider the oracle to be a late composition which has been placed in both books by an editor or editors.6 Such 1. S.J. De Vries, Prophet Against Prophet (Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1978), pp. 4, 44-46. 2. Lescow, 'Micha 1-5', pp. 49-50. 3. Renaud, Formation, p. 141. 4. Wildberger, Jesaja, pp. 75-80; Rudolph, Micha, p. 77; vanderWoude, 'Micah 4.1-5', p. 399. 5. J. Gray, 'The Kingship of God in the Prophets and Psalms', VT 11 (1961), p. 15. See other references in Schibler, La Prophete Michee, p. 155 and Wildberger, Jesaja, p. 78. 6. J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 83; Lescow, 'Micha 1-5', p. 75; Stade 'Bemerkungen iiber das Buch Micha', p. 165; Marti, Das Dodekapropheten, p. 281; Mays, Micah, p. 95; Wellhausen, Kleinen Propheten, pp. 142-43; Lindblom, Micha literarisch untersucht, p. 80. For other references consult vanderWoude, ('Micah 4.1-5', pp. 396-97). A good study of representative interpretations is found in E.H. Scheffler, 'Micah 4.1-5: An Impasse in Exegesis?', Old Testament Essays 3 (1985), pp. 46-61.
3. 'To Acknowledge the Decision?': Micah 3.1-4.8
105
ideas as the peaceful pilgrimage of the nations to Jerusalem, universal eschatological peace, the exaltation of Zion and a positive relation between Yahweh's reign and the nations, it is argued, are generally found in post-exilic works or passages thought to be later additions to earlier works.1 Finally, scholars argue that the vocabulary of the oracle contains a number of expressions not attested until the exilic or post-exilic period. In particular, Cannawurf suggests that the parallel 'JerusalemZion' is 'typical for the post-exilic time'.2 Renaud cites a number of phrases which possibly indicate a late origin for the oracle.3 In particular, a late date is suggested by the phrase 'at the end of days', the metaphorical use of the verb 'flow' (attested in Jer. 31.12) and the phrase 'powerful nation' (found in Deut. 9.14; 26.5 and Isa. 60.22). In addition, the parallel 'many people-strong nation' (4.3) occurs only in Zech. 8.22, and the phrase 'mountain of the house of Yahweh' has its only parallel in 2 Chron. 33.15. Finally, 'to learn war' is found only in Ps. 18.35; Ps. 144.1; 1 Chron. 5.18 and the gloss in Judg. 3.2. The arguments for a late date for Mic. 4.1-4 have not been found compelling, however, and a number of scholars have argued convincingly that the oracle under consideration is the product of pre-exilic times.4 In the first place, it is not at all clear that the themes of the oracle are confined to the post-exilic period. The concepts found in Mic. 4.1-4 have clear parallels in the Zion-Psalms (Pss. 46; 48; 68; 76).5 J.J.M. Roberts has argued convincingly that motifs that belong to the Zion tradition (e.g. the divine mountain, the defeat of the nations, and the pilgrimage of the nations) are quite ancient.6 Indeed, 1. See Renaud, Formation, pp. 165-81; Mays, Micah, p. 95; G. Wanke, Die Ziontheologie der Korachten (BZAW 97; Berlin: de Gruyter, 1966). 2. E. Cannawurf, The Authenticity of Micah IV 1-4', VT 13 (1963), p. 32. 3. Renaud, Formation, pp. 177-78. 4. A.S. Kapelrud, 'Eschatology in the Book of Micah', VT 11 (1961), pp. 392-405; van der Woude, 'Micah 4.1-5', pp. 397-401; Hillers, Micah, p. 52; Wildberger, Jesaja, pp. 75-80; W. Brueggemann, 'Vine and Fig Tree: A Case Study in Imagination and Criticism', CBQ 43 (1981), p. 189; Allen, Micah, p. 325 5. See Wildberger, Jesaja, pp. 75-80. 6. J.J.M. Roberts, "The Davidic Origin of the Zion Tradition', JBL 92 (1973), pp. 329-44; see also his article 'Zion Tradition', in IDBS, pp. 985-87; and 'Zion in the Theology of the Davidic-Solomonic Empire', in T. Ishida (ed.), Studies in the Period of David and Solomon and other Essays (Winona Lake, IN: Eisenbrauns, 1982).
106
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
the motifs found in the Zion traditions are present even in the mythology of the Canaanites as well as the ancient Psalm 86. Roberts concludes that the most likely time for the formation of the Zion tradition was not the post-exilic time: the 'exilic ruins and post-exilic restoration' hardly provide a plausible background for the development of such traditions about a glorious Zion important enough for nations either to honor or attack. Rather, the united monarchy of David with its triumphant Yahwism, its need to establish the validity of Jerusalem as Israel's capital and its stream of vassal states bringing tribute to the capital provides the most likely setting for the formation of the Zion tradition. Roberts thus builds a convincing case that the Zion tradition such as that reflected in Mic. 4.1-4 took shape long before the eighth century and was certainly not a product of the exilic period. Second, there are serious doubts that the vocabulary of Mic. 4.1 -4 demands a post-exilic dating. E. Lipinski has demonstrated that the phrase 'in the latter days' occurs in texts as early as the Yahwistic source of the Pentateuch.1 The simple occurrence of this phrase in Mic. 4.1 does not therefore compel one to accept a late date for this material. In addition, Cannawurf's suggestion that the parallelism of Zion and Jerusalem is 'typical for post-exilic time' is rather puzzling. On the one hand, he offers no evidence to support this assertion. On the other hand, Cannawurf apparently ignores the fact that the ZionJerusalem parallel occurs in Mic. 3.10 and 3.12, two passages universally accepted as Mican. Other vocabulary which according to Renaud indicates a late date for the oracle is of questionable value. Since both phrases 'many people-powerful nations' and 'mountain of the house of Yahweh' have only one parallel in other works, it is doubtful that much can safely be concluded concerning the date of their possible origins. The parallels with other uses of the verb 'flow' and the phrase 'learn war' are inconclusive. It should be pointed out that in neither case is there an exact parallel to the phrases in which the words occur in Mic. 4.1-5. As Hillers points out, the question of vocabulary can easily become an 'argument about what is a significant parallel,
1. E. Lipinski, 'D'OTi rnnxa dans les Textes Pre^xiliques', VT 20 (1970), pp. 445-50.
3. 'To Acknowledge the Decision?': Micah 3.1-4.8
107
thereby revealing the somewhat unsatisfactory nature of the criterion'.1 It must be conceded, however, that the style of 4.1-5 stands in sharp contrast to the style of 3.1-12. The liturgical style of 4.1-5 suggests the possibility that the prophet is actually quoting a cultic oracle with which his audience was familiar.2 Indeed, given the oracle's liturgical style, the possible earlier origin of the oracle's motifs and the fact that the same oracle is found in a discourse attributed to another eighthcentury prophet, it seems best to agree with those who have concluded that Micah is simply quoting a well-known oracle at this point. As we shall see, the quotation of a saying known to the audience is an important rhetorical device. Verse 5 has the nature of a liturgical response to the preceding oracle and may in fact be the response recited in the cult. While some suggest that this response comes from the hand of a later redactor,3 it is possible that the response is the composition of Micah himself. Certainly, there is nothing in its vocabulary or concepts which mark 4.5 as a late composition. Mic. 4.1-4 can thus be understood as a selfcontained, cultic oracle which the prophet incorporated into his discourse and to which a response has been added.4 Neither vocabulary nor motifs demands a date later than the eighth century BCE. Renaud has found several possible indications that Mic. 4.6-8 is an addition by a later editor.5 First, the occurrence of the phrase, 'on that 1. Hillers, Micah, p. 52. 2. Kapelrud, Micah, p. 395; Gray, The Kingship of God', p. 15; Allen, Micah, p. 325. 3. J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 88; Renaud, Formation, p. 158; Rudolph, Micha, p. 81; Marti, Das Dodekapropheten, p. 282. 4. Redactional considerations of 4.1-4 are complicated by the possibility that Micah himself was the redactor. That is, the prophet may have used the ancient oracle making minor changes for his own purposes. It is suggested by some that 4.4 is a contradiction to 4.1-3 and therefore must be an addition to the oracle (J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 83; Marti, Das Dodekapropheten, p. 282). However, Brueggemann has shown that 4.4 is a traditional formula expressing the ideal of peace and in many ways is a parallel to 4.2 ('Vine and Fig Tree', pp. 191-93). It is thus likely that 4.4 is a part of the original oracle that is absent from the text in Isa. 2.2-4 (so Hillers, Micah, p. 51). 5. See Renaud, Formation, pp. 184-87. Also see, N. Mendecki ('Die Sammlung der Zerstreuten in Mi 4,6-7', BZ 27 (1983), pp. 218-21) who seeks to trace the influence of Ezekiel and Deutero-Isaiah on the oracle in Micah. Mendecki
108
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
day' indicates a rereading which applied the oracle to the time of the exile. Second, a number of terms such as 'gather', 'assemble', 'vanish' and 'injure' are applied to the exile by later texts. Third, the expression 'Yahweh will rule' is absent from the pre-exilic Psalms, but is found in numerous post-exilic texts. Fourth, the expression, 'now and forever' only appears in post-exilic texts. While Renaud's evidence is impressive, there are a number of weaknesses in his arguments. As has been noted, it is rather arbitrary to assume that each occurrence of 'on that day' is a reference to the exilic period. Second, with regard to the vocabulary parallels, Renaud admits that these terms are not used exclusively in the exilic period.1 Renaud's argument is further weakened by his need to assume that 2 Sam. 14.13-14, which uses the word 'banish', is redactional. Perhaps most questionable is his assertion that the phrase mlk YHWH is absent from pre-exilic Psalms. The phrase appears most often in the genre of the enthronement Psalms, and Mowinckel has argued that this genre existed in the cult of the pre-exilic temple.2 More problematic is Renaud's observation concerning the theological motif of the 'remnant'.3 While Isaiah typically uses the form se"ar, Mic. 4.7 uses sg'erit which is typical of later works. More importantly, Renaud argues that the positive valuation attached to the concept of the remnant is a later theological development. Two observations can be made on the use of the word 'remnant'. First, the use of se"erit rather than se"dr may simply point to a difference in style rather than a difference in time. Second, the question of the origin and development of the concept of remnant is uncertain and is made quite complicated by the question of the 'authenticity' of passages in Amos and Isaiah.4 It is thus difficult to know exactly when and how the concept assumed a positive theological connotation. Killers has noted that 'the term "remnant" or "survivors" is an old one; to turn it to a positive sense, almost a title of honor could be the apparently does not consider the possibility that the oracle in Micah could have influenced the later prophetic material. 1. Renaud, Formation, p. 186. 2. S. Mowinckel, The Psalms in Israel's Worship, I (Nashville: Abingdon Press, 1962), p. 117. 3. Renaud, Formation, pp. 187-90. 4. See V. Herntrich, 'The "Remnant" in the Old Testament', TDNT, IV, pp. 196-209.
3. 'To Acknowledge the Decision?': Micah 3.1-4.8
109
work of a very brief time'.1 Certainly, in Micah's day, Isaiah was already in the process of transforming the concept of remnant into a positive one. Micah may thus be reflecting the development of the remnant concept in the preaching of Isaiah. Finally, Mic. 4.8 is often assigned to a later redactor.2 It is generally assumed that the passage presupposes the destruction of Jerusalem and the end of the Davidic line. There is nothing in the oracle, however, that indicates either exile or that the Davidic line has perished. Mic. 4.8 'would fit the circumstances of a kingdom whose territory had been much reduced...' 3 It should be noted that the vocabulary of 4.8 is not cited as an indication of a later date. In summary, the arguments for a late date for all or part of Mic. 3.1-4.8 are not convincing. Since the material appears to be united by a common theme and a common rhetorical situation the possibility that Micah 3.1-4.8 is a unified discourse must be left open. An attempt can be made to find the possible historical background of the speech by a closer examination of the factors in the rhetorical situation. The Rhetorical Situation Objective Factors The major objective factor reflected in the speech can be summarized concisely: some leaders of Israel have undertaken a course of action that, in the opinion of Micah, is harmful to the nation and ultimately will bring about the destruction of Jerusalem. The dynamics of this situation are revealed by an investigation of the identity of the leaders and the nature of their actions. Within Mic. 3.1-12 heads, rulers, prophets and priests are accused of abusing their power and bringing harm to others. Singled out for the harshest condemnations are the heads (r'os) and rulers (qasin). That these authorities have national governing responsibilities is seen in the fact that they are called the 'heads of Jacob' and 'rulers of Israel', r'osis a rather imprecise term which could refer to leadership
1. 2. 3.
Hillers, Micah, p. 55. Renaud, Formation, p. 194; Mays, Micah, p. 102. Hillers, Micah, p. 56.
110
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
in general and may include those who function as judges (cf. v. II) 1 although the term is also used of those who perform military functions.2 On the other hand, qasin occurs infrequently. Mays notes that other than its occurrences in Isaiah and Micah, the title refers to a military leader.3 Yet, in at least one of the four occurrences in Isaiah qasin also refers to a military authority (Isa. 22.3) and the other occurrences do not exclude the idea of a military commander (Isa. 1.10; 3.6, 7). It is also of interest that the only other occurrence of the pair r'osfqasin is in reference to Jephthah's role as the military ruler of Gilead.4 It is thus probable that the leaders addressed in v. 1 and v. 9 are military leaders who are royal administrative appointees5 and who probably had the power to settle disputes. That military authorities had such power is evidenced by the Mesad Hashavyahu letter, in which a laborer appealed to a commander (saf) to decide his dispute against one who had taken his mantle.6 It is thus not unlikely that the 'heads of Israel' and 'rulers of the house of Jacob' exercised authority in military matters as well as in the settlement of disputes. 1. For the various uses of the term r'os, see BOB, pp. 910-11. Also see J.R. Bartlett, 'The Use of the word /-'twas a Title in the Old Testament', VT 19 (1969), pp. 1-10. 2. The passages cited by Bartlett as examples of ro's with military associations include 1 Sam. 15.17; Num. 14.14 and 2 Sam. 23.8-39. He also points out that in several cases (e.g. Judg. 7.16, 20; 9.34; 1 Sam. 11.11) ro's refers to small companies of soldiers ('The Use of the Word Ro's ', pp. 2-4). Also see J.A. Dearman, Property Rights in the Eighth-Century Prophets: The Conflict and Its Background (SBLDS 106; Atlanta: Scholars Press, 1988), p. 50. 3. Mays, Micah, p. 78. 4. Dearman, Property Rights, p. 50, n. 1. Wolff makes this same observation but concludes that Micah is here utilizing a pre-monarchic tradition ('Micah the Moreshite', pp. 78-79). 5. That the heads and rulers were appointed by the king to administer affairs in areas outside of Jerusalem is the logical conclusion of Hammershaimb, 'Some Leading Ideas in the Book of Micah', pp. 31-32. Dearman (Property Rights, pp. 143-44) and Wolff ('Micah the Moreshite', pp. 78-79) also conclude that these officials were probably royally appointed members of the administrative/judicial system. 6. H. Donner and W. Rollig, Kanaanaische und Aramdische Inschriften I (Wiesbaden: Otto Harrassowitz, 1971), p. 36, n. 200.
3. 'To Acknowledge the Decision?': Micah 3.1-4.8
111
While the 'heads' and 'rulers' probably held some degree of judicial authority, it is doubtful that their settlement of legal disputes is the main concern of Mic. 3.1-12. The accusing question of Mic. 3.1 has generally been understood as an indication that the leaders have failed to render just decisions in accordance with the requirements of the law. 1 In v. 1, however, the term hammispat may refer to something other than justice in general. Since the noun is preceded by the definite article the prophet may have in mind a specific decision or judgment.2 If this interpretation is correct the usual translation, 'to know justice' cannot be accepted; rather lada 'at 'et-hammispat must mean 'to acknowledge (i.e. abide by) the decision'. The accusation thus is not that the leaders are ignorant of the law, but that they have failed to recognize and accept a specific decision or judgment. Verses 2 and 3 develop the accusation against the national leaders. According to v. 2 the rulers 'hate good and love evil'. In other words, their values and sense of right and wrong are inverted. This inversion of values is demonstrated by their refusal to abide by 'the decision' as well as by the description of their actions in vv. 2b-3. It has been suggested that the leaders addressed in vv. 1 and 9 are guilty of exploiting peasants through oppressive economic measures.3 As was the case in Mic. 2.1-13, however, there is nothing to indicate that the oppressed are peasants or that the crime of the heads and rulers is economic exploitation. Since the language of the prophet is exaggerated and metaphorical in vv. 2-4, it is impossible to know the exact nature of the crimes. The exaggerated descriptions of barbaric acts of violence, however, certainly suggest acts of terror and violence rather than calculated economic exploitation. Moreover, if r'os and qasm refer to military authorities the gruesome acts described in vv. 2 and 1. A somewhat different view is suggested by Wolff, who suggests that the accusation in v. 2 is that the leaders are ignorant of the laws and traditions utilized in rural areas ('Micah the Moreshite', p. 79). Such an interpretation is not likely in light of the possibility that the mispat refers not to a code of laws, but to a specific decree. 2. The mispat is used for a specific decision in Deut. 1.17; 17.9, 11; 1 Kgs 3.28; 7.7. See also V. Herntrich, lMishpat\ TDNT, III, pp. 923-33, especially p. 927. Boogart recognizes that the term refers to a specific decision although there is little basis for his interpretation of the setting of this chapter as an ongoing debate regarding a military expedition to Edom (Restoration, p. 61). 3. Such is the interpretation of Allen, Micah, p. 307; J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 73; and Mays, Micah, p. 79.
112
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
3 could reflect acts of terror carried out by armed raids. The violent nature of the deeds of the heads and rulers is underscored again in Mic. 3.10: they would build Jerusalem with blood and Zion with acts of violence. While the second term ('awldh) can be used of injustice in general, parallelism with 'bloodshed' (damim) suggests that the meaning here is 'violent deeds of injustice'.1 Indeed, in a number of cases 'awlah refers to violent deeds such as raids and murders (2 Sam. 3.34; 7.10; 1 Chron. 17.9). While it is clear that the rulers are accused of carrying out deliberate acts of violence, it is difficult to discern the motivation for their deeds. According to v. 10, the rulers and heads of Israel hope to 'build' Jerusalem through their deeds. Most have taken the participle boneh in a literal sense and have concluded that Micah is condemning the building of fortifications through forced labor2 or the construction of estates through economic exploitation.3 Deliberate acts of violence could conceivably point to forced labor, although this is not clear from the information in v. 10. In any case, the 'building of Zion' suggests efforts to increase the power and prestige of the city. The participle may thus convey the more general idea of 'building up' the city of Jerusalem.4 The result of attempts to build up Jerusalem will be the destruction of the city (3.12). The destruction of Jerusalem is described in language that is similar to that found in international treaties pronouncing curses upon rebellious vassals.5 In particular, the treaty between Ashurnirari V and Mati'lu of Arpad contains this threat against those who violate the treaty: '...may Ashur, father of the gods, who grants kingship, turn your land into wasteland, your people into...your cities into ruin mounds, your house into ruins'.6 Also significant is the consequence for rebellion described in the treaties of 1. BOB, p. 732 d. 2. S. Wagner, lbanah\ TDOT, II, p. 174. Also see Margolis (Micah, p. 40) who suggests the term refers either to 'judicial murder' or 'working the poor to death'. 3. For example, Mays, Micah, p. 88. 4. Cf. Ps. 102.17 where Yahweh is said to 'build up Jerusalem'. The sense seems to be 'to exalt' rather than construct buildings. 5. D. Hillers, Treaty-Curses and the Old Testament Prophets (BO 16; Rome: Pontifical Biblical Institute, 1964), pp. 44-54. See also his Micah, p. 48. 6. ANET, p. 532.
3. 'To Acknowledge the Decision?': Micah 3.1-4.8
113
Esarhaddon: 'May Shamash plow up your cities and districts with an iron plow'.1 Although Micah may have simply cast the decree of Jerusalem's destruction in the form of treaty curses, the language may indicate that the leaders' efforts to build up Jerusalem constitute a violation of an actual treaty by which Israel was bound. It is thus possible that the purpose of the actions of the leaders is to rebel against a specific treaty. The prophets who are addressed in vv. 5-8 appear to be accomplices to the acts of violence carried out by the heads and rulers. What Micah attacks is not their status as prophets or the methods they use;2 rather, he accuses the prophets of producing oracles related to the receipt of payment they are given. Most commentators envision a situation in which individuals consult a prophet concerning a particular need; the prophet then responds according to the amount of payment offered to the prophet. Mays represents the usual interpretation of the passage: 'Probably the prophets produced oracles of misfortune against those who did not support them'.3 The specific accusation against the prophets, however, is not that they produce unfavorable oracles, but that they 'sanctify war'. As Soggin points out, to 'sanctify war' means literally to prepare for a holy war.4 It is clear that in ancient Israel prophets were involved in the conduct of war.5 In the days before the monarchy Samuel and Deborah, both of whom are said to fulfill a prophetic role, called Israel to go into battle. Even during the time of the monarchy it is reported that kings sought oracles from prophets before going into battle (1 Kgs 22; 2 Kgs 3). Prophets are also seen calling for revolution and the overthrow of various kings (1 Kgs 14.7-11; 21.20). It is 1. ANET, p. 529. 2. Killers, Micah, p. 46. 3. Mays, Micah, p. 83. It is difficult to know how seriously to take the charges that the prophets produced oracles appropriate to the amount they were paid. Conflict within the ranks of the prophets was especially bitter and intense, and it is certainly possible that Micah's accusation is a distortion or misrepresentation of the situation. On the nature of intra-prophetic conflict see especially, J.L. Crenshaw, Propheti Conflict (BZAW 124; New York: de Gruyter, 1971), especially, pp. 1-4. 4. J.A. Soggin, 'Der Prophetische Gedanke iiber den Heiligen Krieg, als Gericht gegen Israel', VT 10 (1960), pp. 79-85. 5. In addition to the passages noted above see 2 Kgs 14.25 and 1 Chron. 5.22. See K. Koch, The Prophets I (Philadelphia: Fortress Press, 1982), pp. 27-32.
114
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
thus likely that in Micah's time the prophets were involved in giving advice or even calling for 'holy war' against some enemy. Their role in inciting the people to war probably lies behind Micah's condemnation of the prophets. It is clear that Micah disagrees with the prophets' oracles on war and peace: their decisions are less than the truth and one cannot place confidence in their oracles. The prophets could be bribed into supporting one side in a conflict while advising or calling for war against those who would not pay them. The fact that the address to the prophets immediately follows the address to the heads and commanders may suggest that the prophets were co-conspirators with the heads and commanders in their deeds against the people of the nation ('my people'). Since the advice of the prophets was sought in matters of importance, the average person ('my people') could easily be led to support military action called for by less than truthful prophets. It is quite likely, therefore, that the accusation against the prophets should be taken literally: the prophets are encouraging war against those from whom they receive no financial benefit and are doing so with the encouragement and support of those rulers who do pay. Mic. 3.11 refers to the leaders of Jerusalem. These religious and political authorities are probably a distinct group from the 'heads' and 'rulers' who are addressed in Mic. 3.1, 9. The latter officials are apparently those who were appointed by the king to govern throughout the country. In contrast, the group of officials in 3.11 are all located in Jerusalem. The exact connection between the two groups is not immediately apparent although their deeds are similar to those of the prophets who apparently support the deeds of the rulers and heads. Two accusations are spoken against the prophets, priests and heads of Jerusalem. First, they accept bribes which prevent them from faithfully executing their responsibilities. Second, they adhere to a false hope that Yahweh will protect Jerusalem in spite of their deeds and possibly in spite of the deeds of the leaders and heads. As noted above, nothing in the chapter indicates that the victims of the violent acts of the rulers and heads are the poor or the helpless. The only clue to the identity of the oppressed is that they are called 'my people' (vv. 3, 5). Unless one draws a sharp distinction between the words of the prophet and the words of Yahweh, the phrase can be taken to mean 'the people of Yahweh'. As has been shown, in some cases 'my people' refers to the oppressed while in other cases
3. 'To Acknowledge the Decision?': Micah 3.1-4.8
115
(Mic. 2.8) the phrase refers to the oppressors.1 In addition, the term is also used for Judah in Mic. 1.9. Micah may simply use the phrase 'my people' to designate Israel or Judah or a part of the nation as the people of God. Thus, the use of the phrase in Mic. 3.2, 5 as a designation for the victims may simply underscore the fact that the ultimate victim in Mic. 3.1-12 is the nation itself. In any case, the only sure conclusion that can be drawn from the use of this term is that the victims are members of Israelite society. Subjective Factors Two basic subjective factors have shaped the prophetic discourse. First is the prophet's conviction that the present situation can only end in disaster. It is noteworthy that the judgments announced in chapter 3 are all manifestations of Yahweh's withdrawing his protection and help. When the rulers and heads of the nation cry to Yahweh for help, their pleas will be ignored (v. 4). For the prophets there will be darkness and night 'for there is no answer from God' (v. 7). Finally, the military destruction of Jerusalem is the sure sign that Yahweh has withdrawn his protection from the city. A second subjective factor seen in Micah's discourse is his belief that there will be a restoration beyond the judgment. In his belief in a transformed remnant and a glorious future for Israel, Micah echoes some of the same beliefs of his contemporary, Isaiah.2 Unlike Isaiah, however, Micah has concluded that Zion will fall and then be transformed (cf. Isa. 29.1-8). Exactly how Micah arrives at this conclusion 1. See especially the observations of Willis, 'Micah 2.6-8', pp. 86-88. Also see the proposed interpretation of Mic. 2.8 in the preceding chapter. The observation that 'my people' can refer to either the oppressed or the oppressor contrasts with the opinion of Wolff who argues that the term 'means the country population and does not include that of the residential city of Jerusalem' ('Micah the Moreshite', p. 80). It should be noted, however, that Wolff emends Mic. 2.8 so that 'my people' becomes the object of oppression rather than the subject. An extensive critique of Wolffs interpretation of 'my people' and his theory that Micah speaks as an elder from Moresheth is set forth by J.N. Carreira, 'Micha—ein Altester von Moreschet?', 7TZ90 (1981), pp. 19-28. 2. For a brief summary of Isaiah's thought see G. von Rad, Old Testament Theology II (New York: Harper & Row, 1965), pp. 147-75; T.C. Vriezen, 'Essentials of the Theology of Isaiah', in B.W. Anderson and W. Harrelson (eds.), Israel's Prophetic Heritage: Essays in Honor of James Muilenburg (New York: Harper Brothers, 1962), pp. 128-42.
116
The Speeches of Micah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
is impossible to say. Nevertheless, it is clear that the prophet is convinced that Jerusalem will be destroyed but restored and transformed at some future point in time. Three convictions about this future restoration of Israel are evident in the discourse. First, the time beyond the destruction will be the time when an earlier oracle regarding Jerusalem will be fulfilled. Yahweh will rule from an exalted Jerusalem, and nations will journey to learn from Yahweh during a time of universal peace. While others took comfort from the Zion theology for the present, Micah is convinced such beliefs will only be realized on the other side of disaster. Second, the prophet envisions the restoration to be a time when Israel will be gathered and reunited. Verse 7 does not contain references to three distinct groups; rather the descriptions refer to the people of Israel in general who have survived judgment and destruction. The prophet believes that just as Yahweh has punished them, so will he regather and transform them into a powerful nation. Finally, v. 8 apparently reflects the prophet's belief that a Davidic king will once again rule over an empire from Jerusalem. It must be conceded that the exact significance of the phrase, 'tower of the flock' (migdal 'eder) is uncertain. Some have suggested that Migdal Eder should be understood as a reference to a small village or outpost of Jerusalem.1 Although Gazelles suggests that the place in question is an expansion of Jerusalem there is no evidence to support such an interpretation.2 On the other hand, Gen. 35.21 contains a reference to a Migdal Eder near Bethlehem. A precise location cannot be established and it is unclear whether the Migdal Eder near Bethlehem is a town or a less permanent structure.3 The difficulty in identifying Migdal Eder with a site outside of Jerusalem lies in the fact that in the context of Mic. 4.8 the place in question appears to be part of Jerusalem itself. In apposition to Migdal Eder is the phrase 'Ophel of the daughter of Zion'. The Ophel is probably the hill on which the original Canaanite town was located
1. Simons, Geographical and Topographical Texts, p. 473. H. Gazelles, 'Historic et Geographic en Mich6e 4.6-13', in Fourth World Congress of Jewish
Studies (Papers I; Jerusalem: World Union of Jewish Studies, 1967), pp. 87-89. 2.
Gazelles, 'Historic', pp. 87-89.
3. Simons, Geographical and Topographical Texts, p. 220.
3. 'To Acknowledge the Decision?': Micah 3.1-4.8
117
and which David captured and made his capital.1 Mays points out that 'in its topographical uses [Ophel] is applied only to the ridge on whose lower reaches to the south the Old City of Davidic time was built'.2 If Ophel is in apposition to 'tower of the flock' then the latter is probably a reference to the fortifications and structures of the oldest part of the city, that is, the city of David. Micah's references to the Davidic part of Jerusalem recall the rule of David over a united kingdom. Thus when Micah proclaims that the 'former dominion' and 'rule from Jerusalem' will be restored, it is likely that he envisions a future in which a Davidic king will rule. Such a belief does not necessarily contradict the description of Yahweh's rule in Mic. 4.1-5. According to the Israelite understanding of kingship, Yahweh adopts the king who then shares in Yahweh's rule not only over Israel, but over all the nations (Ps. 2; 89; HO).3 Moreover, if my geographical conclusions about v. 8 are correct, the 4 Ophel' may also be symbolic of the joint rule of Yahweh and the king: 'It was in the general area where the old Jebusite fortress had stood, that the temple and palace were erected as joint tokens of divine rule mediated through an earthly king'.4 It is therefore probable that Micah believes that the restoration beyond judgment will include the renewal of the rule of the Davidic kings. It is also noteworthy that while the prophet condemns priests, prophets, rulers and heads, he never condemns the king of Jerusalem. It is possible that this silence reflects a sympathetic, supportive attitude toward the Davidic king. It is thus not surprising that a glorious future is envisioned for the Davidic dynasty. Goals and Strategy The discourse that Micah produces in response to the rhetorical situation is designed to persuade his audience that disaster will be the outcome of their actions and to convince them of the certainty of destruction. Preventing his audience from accepting the certainty of disaster is their conviction that they are assured of Yahweh's 1. K.M. Kenyon, Archaeology in the Holy Land (New York: W.W. Norton, 4th edn, 1979), pp. 234-37. 2. Mays, Micah, p. 103. 3. See de Vaux, Ancient Israel I, p. 109. 4. Allen, Micah, p. 331.
118
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
protection (3.11). Both the words of those prophets opposed to Micah and a well-known oracle (4.1-4) contribute to a false security based on a belief in Yahweh's unconditional protection. Micah is thus confronted with the task of shattering the false security of his audience and persuading them that their present course of action is leading to a certain judgment. The prophet's persuasive strategy and progression of thought can be seen in an outline of Mic. 3.1-4.8. I.
II.
III.
IV.
Responsibility of 'heads and rulers' for the coming disaster (3.1-4) A. The deeds of the 'heads and rulers' 1. They ignore the decision (3.1) 2. They hate the 'good' (v. 2) 3. They carry out acts of violence against their own people (v. 3) B. Result: Yahweh will withdraw his help (v. 4) Responsibility of prophets for coming disaster (5-8) A. Their deeds (5) 1. Lead people astray 2. 'Sanctify war' against those who do not pay them B. Results (6-7) 1. No answer will come from Yahweh 2. They will be put to shame C. Micah in contrast to the prophets (8) 1. Filled with justice, power, might (8a) 2. Purpose: to declare transgression and sin (8b) Recapitulation (9-12) A. Deeds of 'heads and rulers' (9-10) B. The corrupt authorities of Jerusalem (11) C. Result: destruction of Jerusalem (12) Certainty of coming destruction (4.1-8) A. Promise to Jerusalem to be fulfilled after destruction (in latter days) (4.1-5) B. Israel will need to be regathered (6-7) C. Power and prestige of Jerusalem will be restored (8)
The prophet opens his discourse with a summons to hear addressed to the heads and commanders of Israel. Following the opening summons Micah sets forth in rapid succession a series of accusations against the national leaders. The variety of both the content and form of these
3. 'To Acknowledge the Decision?': Micah 3.1-4.8
119
accusations holds the attention of the audience. Moreover, the succession of accusations makes it clear that Micah's strategy is to adopt an extremely confrontational style which places the leaders on the defensive. Such a confrontational style is probably intended to shake the leaders' false confidence which is revealed in 3.11. The first accusation takes the form of a question: 'Is it not for you to acknowledge the decision?' By casting his accusation as a question Micah forces his audience to take an active role in the persuasive process.1 The accused cannot be passive, but must formulate an answer or a defense to the accusing question. Before an answer can be set forth, however, the prophet moves rapidly to a direct accusation that the leaders hate the good and love the evil. The repetition of accusations serves to heighten the emotional impact and persuasive force of the speech. The third accusation takes the form of an extended and exaggerated description of the deeds of the national rulers. Although the progression of thought in vv. 2-3 appears somewhat chaotic, it is clear that Micah uses an implied metaphor to describe the behavior of the national leaders: their deeds are those of cannibals who chop, cook and devour other Israelites. The emotional impact of this gruesome metaphor is dramatic. By its nature a metaphor is a powerful way of making a statement: 'Hence, while the simile gently states that one thing is like or resembles another, the metaphor boldly and warmly declares that one thing is another'. 2 In this case Micah further heightens the impact of the metaphor by his chaotic and repetitious description. In addition, the metaphor continues Micah's strategy of involving the audience since the hearers must decide how the deeds of the leaders are and are not cannibalistic: 'Metaphor derives much of its convincing power because it does not allow its hearers to be passive, but requires them to participate in the construction of metaphorical meaning'.3 Although the prophet relies mainly on the emotional impact of 1. Holman, A Handbook to Literature, p. 452. 2. E.W. Bullinger, Figures of Speech used in the Bible (London: Eyre and Spottiswoode, 1898; repr. Grand Rapids: Baker, 1968), p. 735. 3. C. Newsom, 'A Maker of Metaphors—Ezekiel's Oracles Against Tyre', Int 38 (1984), p. 153.
120
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
presenting the leaders as cannibalistic, he has also constructed a rational appeal of three parts. First, it is the duty of leaders to acknowledge the decision in question (Ib), yet the leaders' actions demonstrate that they have failed in their duty (2-3). Therefore, one can expect serious consequences to follow (v. 4). It is somewhat surprising that following such an intense, emotional appeal and vivid description of the deeds of the accused, the prophet's description of judgment is rather short and vague. The lack of details concerning the judgment may lead the audience to anticipate a more concrete description and thus prepares the audience for the thesis presented in 3.9-12. In Mic. 3.5-8 the speaker turns his attention to the prophets of Israel. Unfortunately, in attacking other prophets Micah creates a dilemma for himself. How is the audience to know if the true word of Yahweh is being spoken by Micah or by the prophets whom he condemns? Micah seeks to convince the audience of the truth of his word in two ways. First, he makes an appeal to authority by prefacing his words about the prophets with the phrase 'thus says Yahweh'. This appeal to authority identifies Micah's words as those of Yahweh himself; to reject Micah's message is to reject Yahweh's message. Second, Micah makes an ethical appeal. To win the confidence of his audience Micah gives a description of his character and mission which stands in sharp contrast to those of his opponents (3.8).1 The repetition of the images of darkness and light as well as the focus on the shame and distress of the prophets creates a vivid picture of the disgrace that will overtake Micah's opponents. The certainty of judgment seems to be confirmed by Micah's ability to give vivid details about that judgment. Only in the recapitulation of the charges against the leaders does Micah direct his words of doom against Jerusalem itself. Micah has made it clear that his concern is with coming judgment and its cause. He has also led the hearer to anticipate a more detailed account of judgment, and established the fact that there is a basic conflict between the speaker and those addressed. Building on those elements, Micah now states his thesis: the deeds of the leaders will result in the destruction of Jerusalem. 1. On the nature and function of the ethical appeal and the appeal to authority see above, Chapter 1, 'Goals and Strategy'.
3. To Acknowledge the Decision?': Micah 3.1-4.8
121
The thesis restates the previous accusations and is formulated as a direct address to the leaders and rulers of Israel. At this point it finally becomes clear that the deeds of violence described in 3.2-3 have to do with attempts to enhance the prestige and power of Zion. Whatever the exact meaning of 'building up Zion with blood', it is clear that Micah is holding the national leaders responsible for the state of leadership in Jerusalem itself. Verse 12 can be understood as a description of the results of the deeds of the national leaders. The emphatic word order and the repetitious nature of v. 12 underscore the seriousness of the situation in Jerusalem. The description of such a serious state of affairs is meant to justify to the audience the conclusion that Jerusalem cannot escape destruction. Having shown the cause and nature of the coming disaster, Micah now turns his efforts to underscoring the certainty of disaster. To an audience that refuses to believe that evil will come, he must prove that it is indeed possible for Zion to be destroyed. With an ingenious stroke, Micah turns against his audience an oracle that seems to support their belief that Zion cannot be destroyed. Yet by quoting the oracle at this precise location, the prophet gives it new meaning: 'in the latter days' (4.1) is now made to refer to the time after the destruction of Jerusalem (3.12). Micah is thus careful not to deny the truth of the oracle; instead he insists that since its fulfillment is not for the present, the oracle does not preclude the possibility of Jerusalem's destruction. By its nature the oracle in 4.1-4 is a practice in imagination which undergirds Micah's purpose in two ways: On the one hand, it introduces a sphere of freedom. Israel is invited to think about inexplicable futures which God may yet give, that are beyond human engineering. On the other hand, the promise subverts the present. It announces that the managers of the present (Zion) system have not spoken the last word or fully co-opted all the energies at work in life.1
The very oracle in which Micah's audience found security actually demonstrates that their security is false. Yahweh alone controls the future; the designs and plans of the rulers will be superseded by Yahweh's plan. Indeed, the leadership functions of rulers, prophets, priests and judges will be carried out by Yahweh himself. The oracle accepted by his audience thus becomes the prophet's major resource in 1.
Brueggemann, 'Vine and Fig Tree', p. 190.
122
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
refuting their point of view and confirming his own belief that judgment is coming. Micah seeks to demonstrate the certainty of judgment by describing the gathering of the nation after judgment. Micah is so convinced that present events will lead to disaster that he already imagines the time of restoration after catastrophe. In this way Micah is not unlike Hosea, who coupled his proclamation of disaster with descriptions of a restoration: For Hosea... Israel's downfall is definitely sealed, so that it is appropriate for him to look beyond the impending disaster to a new order fulfilling the will of God. In other words, Hosea's words would be less drastic if they did not include a hope. The presence of the promise makes it clear that... the content of the threats given by him is not avertable.1
Not only do such promises regarding the future reveal the prophet's certainty that disaster is coming, but also they have a powerful persuasive effect. The audience which denies the very possibility of judgment is invited to look at disaster as so certain that even now one may begin to look at the shape of the future beyond the disaster. The promise of restoration thus leads the audience to imagine what had previously been unimaginable and to accept as certain that which they had denied as possible. Such an exercise in imagination serves to make the possibility of judgment and disaster vividly real for the audience. The promise in v. 8 also functions to underscore the certainty of disaster. In particular, this verse addresses the question of the future of the Davidic dynasty. The fact that Micah had not previously directly addressed the present or future fate of the Davidic ruler creates a certain amount of suspense and anticipation. This suspense is heightened further by the construction of the address in v. 8. The prophet only announces the fate of the monarchy after a series of vocatives and a repetition of verbs. The prophet underscores the importance of his pronouncement on the fate of the monarchy by using a series of ancient names to designate the Davidic house. The drama and suspense deliberately developed in this section indicate that here the prophet has reached the climax of his speech. The emotional impact is such that the audience is invited to see the Davidic line as the ancient line, but also as the future monarchy that will rule a restored and transformed Israel. 1.
Buss, The Prophetic Word of Hosea, p. 128.
3. 'To Acknowledge the Decision?': Micah 3.1-4.8
123
With the dramatic announcement of the future of the Davidic monarchy Micah brings his discourse to a close. The entire speech is well crafted to shake the false confidence of the leaders of society through confrontation. The series of accusations against the governing authorities gives the reasons for the prophet's conclusion that the present course of action will lead to judgment. Micah finds common ground with his audience by quoting an oracle known to them, but he uses the oracle to demonstrate his conclusion that a glorious future in which Yahweh's protection of Israel is realized is only possible after the time of destruction. The certainty of judgment is emphasized by the description of Yahweh's gathering of a weak and injured Israel and the promise of the restoration of the former dominion of Jerusalem. Historical Possibilities If Mic. 3.1-4.8 is to be read as a single discourse, what is the historical occasion for the speech? Almost all commentators have assigned all or part of chapter 3 to the time of Hezekiah and more specifically to either 722 or 701 BCE.1 It is apparent, however, that this dating of the material is based more on external considerations than internal evidence. In particular, Jer. 26.19 is cited as evidence that Mic. 3.9-12 dates to the time of Hezekiah. Recent scholarship has been sensitive to the difficulties involved in using the data in Jer. 26.19 as clear-cut historical evidence. H.G. Reventlow has done an exhaustive study of Jeremiah 26 and has concluded that the chapter is composite in nature and not an eyewitness account of the events of Jeremiah's ministry.2 Rather, the narrative was compiled at a later date for a specific purpose: 'Der Erzahler benutzt einen Stoff aus der Wirksamkeit Jeremias, um daraus fur seinen Zeitgenossen im Exil Mahnung und Hoffung zu schopfen'.3 In addition, Vincent has questioned the eyewitness nature of the account by arguing that the identical wording of the difficult Mican 1. For example, Sellin, Des Zwolfprophetenbuch, p. 277; Mays, Micah, p. 92; Allen, Micah, p. 243; Hillers, Micah, pp. 8-9; Rudolph, Micha, p. 701; Renaud, Formation, p. 145; Haupt, 'The Book of Micah', pp. 1-63. 2. H.G. Reventlow, 'Gattung und Uberlieferung in der "Tempelrede Jeremias', Jer. 7 und 26', ZAW 81 (1969), pp. 315-52. 3. Reventlow, 'Gattung', p. 351.
124
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
passage in Jeremiah 26 points to the conclusion that the narrator of Jeremiah 26 had a written Vorlage at his disposal.1 More importantly, however, the narrator sets the context for the Mican oracle in a meeting between Hezekiah and Micah which leads to Hezekiah's repentance. Vincent concludes that the editor of Jeremiah 26 has read the Isaianic and Mican traditions as complementing one another. His con clusion is significant: 'Diese Beobachtungen miissen uns zur Vorsicht mahnen, methodisch Jer 26 zur Frage der historischen Verankerung und zur Rekonstruktion der urspriinglichen Textgestalt von Mi 3, 12 unkritisch zu verwenden'.2 In light of the work of Reventlow and Vincent, it is advisable to consider the historical background of Micah's speech from the point of view of internal evidence. In particular, the objective factors of the rhetorical situation may provide information concerning the historical occasion of Mic. 3.1-4.8. Unfortunately, any proposal must remain tentative since the text itself refers to no king by name and only makes reference to the nation of Israel. The objective factors of the rhetorical situation indicate a time when some of the national leaders of Israel have chosen to disregard a particular decision, decree, or judgment. Although we are not told the exact nature of the decision it is safe to assume that their disregard for the judgment is related to their acts of violence against other Israelites. Also related to their refusal to abide by the decision are their attempts to 'build up' the power and prestige of Jerusalem. In addition, if my interpretation of 3.12 is correct, the refusal to abide by the decision has, in the opinion of the prophet, brought into effect the curses of the treaty by which Israel was bound. In the process of disregarding the treaty, these leaders have apparently found support among those prophets who were willing to 'sanctify war' against those from whom they derived no financial benefit. In addition, some of the religious and political leaders of Jerusalem appear to be supportive of the attempts of the 'heads' and 'rulers' to build up Jerusalem (3.11). The internal evidence of the rhetorical situation makes it possible to rule out certain dates. First, it seems quite unlikely that the occasion that prompted the prophet's speech was the period 705-701 BCE. It is 1. 2.
Vincent, 'Michas Gerichtswort', pp. 184-85. Vincent, 'Michas Gerichtswort', p. 185.
3. 'To Acknowledge the Decision?': Micah 3.1-4.8
125
true that Judah violated a treaty with Assyria during that time and that Jerusalem itself was threatened because of that violation. On the other hand, the actions of the national leaders against segments of Israelite society do not parallel any known events of 705-701 BCE. As far as we know Judah and certainly Jerusalem were united in supporting Hezekiah's actions, and there were no internal divisions associated with the rebellion against Assyria. Another occasion to which the speech is not suited is the time of Samaria's rebellion against Assyria. There can be little doubt that the Assyrians took action against Samaria in 728-727 and again in 725 BCE because Hoshea had violated the terms of Israel's vassal treaty with Assyria (see 2 Kgs 17.3-4). Micah's speech, however, focuses on the fate of Jerusalem, not Samaria. While Jerusalem may have felt threatened by the Assyrian actions against Samaria, there is no evidence that Judah rebelled against Assyria. In addition, the internal divisions with accompanying acts of violence which are presupposed by the discourse are not reflected in the historical sources for the events of 725-722 BCE. The most likely occasion for the discourse of Mic. 3.1-4.8 is the period prior to the Syro-Ephraimite siege of Jerusalem. Pekah probably seized the throne of Samaria in the autumn of 734 BCE.1 This coup was but the culmination of Syria's long struggle to bring Israel under the control of Rezin as a member of his anti-Assyrian coalition. With Pekah's takeover of Samaria, the entire northern kingdom was now firmly aligned with Rezin against Assyria (Isa. 7.2a). Moreover, Pekah's ascension to the throne of Samaria placed great pressure on Jerusalem to ally itself with Syria. Since Judah was subservient to Samaria, it could reasonably be assumed that Ahaz of Judah would follow any course of action pursued by Samaria. Adding to the pressure on Ahaz was popular Judean support for Pekah and Rezin (Isa. 8.6) as well as Philistine encroachment on Judean territory (2 Chron. 28.17-18). Nevertheless, Ahaz apparently decided very quickly to remain neutral and not follow the lead of Samaria. This decision was obviously not popular with those of Judah who 'rejoiced before Rezin' (Isa. 8.6). Moreover, Isa. 7.2b may indicate that Pekah's coup even 1. For this chronology and sequence of events see the study and proposals set forth by Irvine, Isaiah, Ahaz, and the Syro-Ephraimitic Crisis, pp. 161-79.
126
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
caused the 'resolve' of the members of the house of David to waver 'as trees of the forest waver before the wind'. In other words, some within Jerusalem and even within the royal court had second thoughts about Ahaz's course of action.1 Eventually Pekah and Rezin would attempt to replace Ahaz with a more co-operative king. This step was probably taken in the winter or spring of 733 BCE after it had become clear that Ahaz would not capitulate to the demands of Rezin and Pekah. The discourse of Mic. 3.1-4.8 may well reflect the situation in the period after Pekah's coup but before Pekah and Rezin embarked on a course of military action against Ahaz. The decision that the rulers and heads have refused to acknowledge may well be the decision of Ahaz that Judah would remain neutral and break with its policy of sharing a common international policy with Israel. If the heads and rulers are military officials appointed by the king to govern the country, their allegiance to the king was taken for granted. Micah's question in v. 2 thus takes on added meaning: it was without question the duty of the rulers and heads appointed by the king to abide by the king's decisions. Their refusal to acknowledge the decision was seen by Micah as not only a betrayal of their king but also disastrous for the country. They had chosen that which was evil over that which was good for the country. The imagery of butchering, dividing up and devouring 'my people' reflects Micah's view that the country was being carved up and taken over by these leaders. The possibility that the discourse concerns those rulers who have sided with Rezin and Pekah and refused to accept Ahaz's decision is supported by the observation that the goal of these leaders is to 'build up' the power and prestige of Jerusalem. Obviously, to join Israel and Syria in defying Assyrian power would be a sign of the power and might of Jerusalem. In addition, if, as seems likely, Judah was under obligation to pay tribute to Assyria, the end of such payments would serve to increase the wealth of Jerusalem.2 Co-operation with Syria may also have been seen as a means to regain valuable territory and 1. Irvine, Isaiah, Ahaz, and the Syro-Ephraimitic Crisis, pp. 242-43. 2. If Jerusalem was politically subservient to Samaria, it is reasonable to assume that she would have been expected to share in the tribute that Israel was required to pay Assyria.
3. 'To Acknowledge the Decision?': Micah 3.1-4.8
127
trade routes which may have been lost to Jerusalem during the long struggle with Rezin. Clearly, the hopes of building up Jerusalem's power, wealth and prestige was an inducement to join the antiAssyrian coalition. In Micah's view, however, the 'building up' of Jerusalem would be accomplished through acts of violence against those loyal to Ahaz. Such acts probably occurred throughout the country and may have culminated in an attempt to assassinate Ahaz and in the SyroEphraimite siege of Jerusalem. In any case, that the building up of Jerusalem involved that city's rebellion against Assyria is suggested by the possibility that Mic. 3.12 refers to the curses upon those cities that sin against the treaty with Assyria. Supporting the rulers who refuse to accept the decision are a number of prophets whom Micah accuses of accepting bribes. Significant for this interpretation is the fact that these prophets 'sanctify war' against those who refuse to pay them for their oracles. These prophets may have been calling for the assassination of Ahaz or for military action against the house of David, which had asserted its independence from Samaria. Their prophetic activities are leading astray the nation ('my people') and are not unlike the activities of those prophets who encouraged Ahab to go to war. Finally, if the resolve of the house of David wavered and many in Jerusalem itself had second thoughts about the wisdom of Ahaz's decision, it is understandable why Micah lashes out at the political and religious leaders of Jerusalem (v. 11). Micah characterizes their decisions and actions as those of people who have succumbed to bribery. From Mic. 3.12 we may infer that Micah believed that the heads and rulers would succeed in either pressuring Ahaz to follow Samaria or in removing Ahaz and bringing Judah into the anti-Assyrian coalition. Micah apparently looks beyond that event to the consequences of Jerusalem's participation in such a coalition: ultimately, the curses of the treaty with Assyria would overtake the city and Jerusalem would be destroyed by the Assyrians. This outcome is so certain to Micah that he already looks beyond the destruction to a Jerusalem transformed by Yahweh himself. Significantly, the prophet sees in that restoration a special place of power and honor for the Davidic dynasty of which Ahaz was a member (4.8).
Chapter 4
'THERE WILL You BE DELIVERED?' MICAH 4.9-5.14 Text and Translation (4.9)
(10)
(11)
(12)
Now why are you crying out? Have you no king? Has your counselor perished, that pains have seized you like a woman in labor?1 Writhe and bring forth,2 daughter of Zion, like a woman in labor. If now you go forth from the city and dwell in the open fields, or go as far as Babylon, there will you be delivered? There shall Yahweh redeem you from the hand of your enemy?3 For now mighty nations are assembled against you— those who say, 'Let her be defiled;4 let our eyes gloat over Zion.' But they do not know the thoughts of Yahweh, nor do they understand his plan;
1. For a similar construction of a triple question see Shalom Paul, 'Amos 3.3-8: The Irresistible Sequence of Cause and Effect', HAR1 (1983), p. 206. 2. The exact meaning of wagoM is uncertain, but the verb apparently has the meaning, 'to burst forth or bring forth' (BDB, p. 161). For a survey of the proposed emendations of this verse J.T. Willis, The Structure, Setting and Interrelationships of the Perlcopes in the Book ofMicah (dissertation, Vanderbilt University, 1966), p. 326, n. 1. The above translation follows that of Renaud, Formation, p. 196. 3. For a discussion of this translation see below under 'Unity and Date'. 4. Although the versions present a variety of readings, the MT is acceptable and does not need to be emended.
4. 'There Will You Be Delivered?': Micah 4.9-5.14
(13)
(14)
(5.1)
129
for he has gathered them like sheaves on the threshing floor. Arise and thresh, daughter of Zion, for I will make your horn into iron and I will make your hooves into bronze; and you shall trample mighty peoples, and you shall devote1 their booty to Yahweh, their wealth to the Lord of the whole earth. So now, gash yourself, daughter of a raid2 who has laid siege against us.3 With a rod they will strike upon the cheek the ruler of Israel. But you, Bethlehem Ephratha,4 small to be5 among the clans of Judah,
1. The verb is the old form of the second-person feminine singular rather than the first-person masculine. So Rudolph (Micha, p. 89) and the versions. 2. This verse has been the subject of much speculation and emendation. A majority of scholars have followed Wellhausen's suggestion (Kleinen Propheten, p. 145) and have emended MT to hitgoded hitgodgdi (e.g. J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 100; Marti, Das Dodekapropheten, p. 286; Hillers, Micah, p. 62). Nevertheless, the MT is understandable. As Rudolph notes, most explanations suffer from an attempt to give the verb (titgodedi) a meaning similar to the substantive (g&dud). It is best to see a play on the sound of the words rather than the meaning. Thus each word retains its normal meaning. For a discussion of this difficult text and a survey of proposed readings see Rudolph, Micha, p. 89; J.T. Willis, 'Micah IV, 14-V.5—A Unit', VT 18 (1968), pp. 529-47; S.J. Schwantes, 'A Note on Micah 5.1 (Hebrew 4.14)', AUSS 1 (1963), pp. 105-7). 3. This translation follows the suggestion of Rudolph that the clause is to be understood as a relative clause without 'aser (Micha, p. 89). 4. The LXX reading 'Bethlehem house of Ephratha' has led some to conclude that the original text read Beth-Ephratha and that Bethlehem was added as a gloss. It is more likely, however, that 'house' is an addition in the LXX since all other versions as well as Mur 88 support MT. So Renaud, Formation, p. 221; Hillers, Micah, p. 64; Rudolph, Micha, p. 89; Wolff, Micah, p. 131. The unique double name is evidently meant to distinguish this town from the Bethlehem in Zebulon. Wolff points out that a similar double name ('Bethlehem Judah') is found in 1 Sam. 17.12 (Micah, p. 144). 5. Many have deleted liheyot as dittography. (So Renaud, Formation, p. 222; Hillers, Micah, p. 64; Mays, Micah, p. Ill, n. b; Rudolph, Micha, p. 90.) The MT is awkward but not ungrammatical, and the meaning is fairly clear. The repetition of the word liheyot in the next line does not justify its deletion here. See Allen, Micah, p. 339, n. 2.
130
(2)
(3)
(4)
(5)
(6)
(7)
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis from you for me he goes forth to be ruler in Israel; and his origin is of old, from days of long ago. Therefore, he will give them up, until she who is in labor gives birth. Then what remains of his brothers shall return to1 the children of Israel. And he will take his stand and shepherd by the strength of Yahweh, in the name of Yahweh his God. And they will remain, for now he will be great to the ends of the earth. And he will be the One of Peace.2 As for Assyria, if3 he comes into our land, and if he treads upon our fortified palaces, then we will raise up against him seven shepherds and eight rulers of men. And they will rule the land of Assyria with the sword, and the land of Nimrod with drawn dagger.4 And he will deliver from Assyria, if he comes into our land, if he treads upon our territory. And the remnant of Jacob will be in the midst of mighty peoples, like dew from Yahweh, like showers upon grass which wait not for anyone, nor stay for human beings. And the remnant of Jacob will be among the nations, in the midst of mighty peoples, like a lion among the beasts of the forest, like a young lion among a flock of sheep;
1. Retaining MT 'al. See Renaud, Formation, pp. 226-27. 2. zeh salom is understood as the title of the ruler. See Willis, 'Micah IV, 14-V, 5', p. 544; Kevin Cathcart, 'Notes on Micah 5.4-5', Bib 49 (1968), pp. 511-14; Hillers, Micah, p. 65; W. Harrelson, 'Nonroyal Motifs in the Royal Eschatology', in Anderson and Harrelson (eds.), Israel's Prophetic Heritage, p. 159; D.J. Bryant, 'Micah 4.14-5.14: An Exegesis', ResQ 21 (1978), p. 224. For a survey of other proposed readings see Willis, 'Micah IV, 14-V, 5', pp. 543-44. 3. For this translation of ki see BDB, p. 473a. Also see Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 126, n. 2; Allen, Micah, p. 339. 4. Most scholars emend MT bipgtaheyha ('in its entrances') to bapMhah ('with the dagger'). Parallelism seems to justify this emendation which is accepted by Hillers, Micah, pp. 68-9; Renaud, Formation, p. 230; Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 127, n. 4; Rudolph, Micha, pp. 91-2; Mays, Micah, p. 118, n. c.
4. 'There Will You Be Delivered?': Micah 4.9-5.14
(8) (9)
(10) (11) (12)
(13) (14)
131
when it comes near and tramples and tears, there is no one that can deliver. May your hand1 be exalted over your adversaries; and may all your enemies perish! And it will be on that day, decrees Yahweh, that I will cut off your horses from your midst, and I will destroy your chariots. And I will cut off the cities of your land, and I will tear down all your fortresses. And I will cut off sorceries from your hand, and you shall have no more soothsayers. And I will cut off your carvings, and your pillars from your midst; so that you will no longer bow down to the work of your hands. And I will pull down your Asherim from your midst, and I will destroy your cities.2 Andin anger and wrath I will execute vengeance upon the nations which did not obey.
Unity and Date Generally, Mic. 4.9 (or 4.1)-5.14 has been understood as either a collection of oracles that are only superficially connected3 or a series of oracles from various times that have been arranged according to
1. Verbs in the MT are in the jussive. 2. On the basis of parallelism, many emend MT 'dreykd to 'asabeyka ('your idols'). However, K. Jeppesen has suggested that the parallelism between Asherim and 'cities' is not unlikely, if one takes into account the possibility that different aspects of Yahwism or Canaanite religion may have been associated with different cities ('Micah V 13 in the Light of a Recent Archaeological Discovery', VT 34 [1984], pp. 462-66). While the details of his argument should probably not be pressed too far, Jeppesen's observations do suggest that the MT can be retained. It is also possible that 'areyka refers to an enclosed area or quarter of the city. For example, the 'city of David' in Jerusalem apparently refers to the royal compound. The reference here may thus be to temple precincts in various towns. For other suggestions see Renaud (Formation, p. 263) and Bryant ('Micah 4.14-5.14', pp. 229-30). 3. J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 82; Marti, Das Dodekapropheten, p. 263; E.A. Leslie, 'Micah the Prophet', IDE, III, p. 371.
132
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
some proposed redactional scheme.1 In either case, the unity of Mic. 4.8-5.14 is viewed as the result of a redactional structure imposed upon the oracles. Recently, Cuffey has isolated five factors other than the arrangement of these oracles which mark Mic. 4.9-5.14 as a distinct unit.2 First, the material is integrated and distinguishable from other material in the book of Micah by the theme of the nations that defile and destroy. In contrast to 4.9-5.14, the preceding section of Micah has dealt with the peaceful pilgrimage of the nations to Jerusalem, while other sections have shown little interest in nations other than Israel or Judah. Second, Mic. 4.9-5.14 assumes and depicts a time of distress followed by a coming victory. Third, Cuffey notes that this section is unique in the way in which it pictures God or the Messianic figure as the source of victory for the people. A fourth element uniting this material is the repetition of unique and important vocabulary. In particular, the repeated occurrences of nasal should be noted (4.10; 5.5, 7). In addition, the fact that the vast majority of the occurrences of qereb and 'attah are found in this section suggests that Mic. 4.9-5.14 forms a fairly well-defined unit within the book of Micah. A final factor indicating the unity of Mic. 4.9-5.14 is a clear, progressive development of thought. The text moves from a description of present distress (4.9-11) to an announcement of salvation (4.12-13). The announcement of salvation is followed by descriptions of the way in which God will save through a Messianic figure and by allowing the people to raise up deliverers (4.14-5.4a). The remnant is thus made 1. While the particulars of the theories vary widely, all of the following believe that the present arrangement of the material in 4.9 (or 4.1)-5.14 is the result of a carefully conceived redactional scheme: J.T. Willis, The Structure of Micah 3-5 and the Function of Micah 5.9-14 in the Book', ZAW 81 (1969), p. 197; Lescow, 'Redaktionsgeschichtliche von Micha 1-5', pp. 46-85. R.E. Wolfe, 'The Editing of the Book of the Twelve', ZAW 53 (1933), pp. 90-130. Wolff suggests that the oracles were arranged for a service of lament and part of a larger scheme of 'Doom and Hope' (Micah, p. 22). Renaud finds the oracles to be arranged according to a chiastic structure (Structure et Attaches litteraires de Michee IV-V [Cahiers de la Revue Biblique 2; Paris: Gabalda, 1964], p. 11). Mays sees these chapters as 'a collection of oracles of salvation assembled to form the counterpart of the prophecies of judgment in chs. 1-3' (Micah, p. 26). 2. Cuffey, The Coherence ofMicah, pp. 350-56.
4. 'There Will You Be Delivered?': Micah 4.9-5.14
133
invincible (5.4b-8) and is purged by Yahweh who then judges the disobedient nations (5.9-14). Cuffey's arguments lead to the conclusion that at some level Mic. 4.9-5.14 is a deliberately structured unit within the book of Micah. Of course, the undeniable unity of this material does not lead to the conclusion that Mic. 4.9-5.14 is an originally unified speech from the eighth-century prophet, since such a structuring could have been accomplished by a later redactor.1 In fact, it is the conclusion of a significant number of scholars that most or all of the material in 4.95.14 could not have been composed before 586 BCE. Therefore, it is necessary to give attention to the question of the possible dating of this material. It will be impossible, however, to consider all the arguments concerning the dating of Mic. 4.9-5.14. Willis notes that for Mic. 5.9-14 alone at least 31 arguments for a pre-exilic dating have been proposed and 39 arguments for a later dating.2 Obviously, one can only consider those arguments that are representative or appear to be more convincing. For the sake of convenience in discussing the various proposals, the text will be sub-divided into smaller units. Mic. 4.9-10 has generally been denied to Micah because v. lOb is interpreted as a reference to exile in Babylon. If one assumes that this is a genuine reference two possible explanations have been proposed, however. Allen has argued that the reference to Babylon may not be an anachronism if the prophetic narrative of Isaiah 38 with its reference to exile to Babylon is authentic.3 More incisive is Rudolph's observation that Mic. 4.10b names Babylon as the place of exile and not the power which exiles.4 Moreover, 2 Kings 17 lists Babylon as one of the places to which the residents of Samaria were exiled following the Assyrian victory in 720 BCE. If one assumes that Mic. 4.10 was spoken after the defeat of
1. That the unity is redactional is the apparent conclusion of Cuffey, The Coherence of Micah, pp. 385-86. 2. Willis, 'The Authenticity and Meaning of Micah 5.9-14', p. 363, n. 50. 3. Allen, Micah, p. 246; A similar argument based on the authenticity of the Isaiah narratives is advanced by Gazelles, 'Historic et Geographic en MicheV, p. 87. Gazelles offers the unlikely explanation that 'to go to Babylon' refers to seeking assistance from Merodach Baladan in 705. 4. Rudolph, Micha, p. 87.
134
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
Samaria, it is not unlikely that the prophet could have named Babylon as a specific, distant place of exile. While Rudolph's explanation is possible, one must still admit that this interpretation of 4.9-10 sounds suspiciously like a vaticanum ex eventum. Not surprisingly, therefore, a number of scholars have proposed deleting all or part of 1 Ob as a gloss to an original eighthcentury oracle.1 A basic problem with the interpretations usually proposed for v. 10 is the conclusion that the verse is an announcement of exile. Two observations call this interpretation into question, however. The phrase 'you shall go to ['ad\ Babylon' is an unusual way of expressing the thought that the population of Jerusalem will be exiled to Babylon.2 More importantly, it is possible for v. lOb, c to be construed not as a statement but as two questions preceded by conditional clauses.3 Since the prophet's strategy at the opening of the speech is to use questions to reproach the audience (v. 9), it is possible that he continues to employ questions after the command that opens v. 10. The entire phrase could thus be rendered: 'If [ki\ you escape from the city and dwell in the country or go as far as [ 'ad] Babylon, is it there 1. Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 124, n. 5; Sellin, Das Zwolfprophetenbuch, pp. 285-86; Yehezkel Kaufman, The Religion of Israel (Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1960), p. 352; van Hoonacker, Les douze petits prophetes, p. 385. 2. If the expression ubo't 'ad-babel refers to exile, it is a unique designation. The closest parallels would be found in Jer. 20.6; 34.4 (ubabel tabo'), both of which refer to an individual going into exile in Babylon. The verbs more commonly used to designate going to Babylon in exile are the hiphil of bo' (2 Kgs 27.7; 2 Chron. 36.7, 18; Jer. 20.6; 28.3) or a form of galah (2 Kgs 24.25; 1 Chron. 9.1; 2 Chron. 36.20; Ezra 5.12; Jer. 27.20; 29.1, 4; 40.1, 7). Regardless of which verb is used, the prepositional phrase 'ad-babel never occurs to designate going into exile in Babylon. Most often a directive accusative or the directive ending - 'ah is used. Where a preposition is used, it is either / (1 Chron. 9.1; 2 Chron. 36.7; Ezra 5.12) or (once) 'el (2 Chron. 36.20). 3. That a question can be expressed in Hebrew merely by the intonation of the speaker is a recognized fact (see Williams, Hebrew Syntax, p. 91). It is interesting to note that many scholars see a similar question preceded by a conditional sentence in Isa. 1.18 (for references see O. Kaiser, Isaiah 1-12 [OTL; Philadelphia: Westminster Press, 1972], p. 17 n. b). In some cases such as Ruth 1.12 the particle ki can apparently refer to a condition contrary to fact. See Williams, Hebrew Syntax, p. 73, para. 448 and J. Muilenberg, 'The Linguistic and Rhetorical Usage of the Particle Jtf in the Old Testament', HUCA 32 (1961), p. 145.
4. 'There Will You Be Delivered?': Micah 4.9-5.14
135
that you will be delivered? Is it there that Yahweh will redeem you from the hand of your enemy?' The purpose of such a question would be to reproach those who are considering an escape from the city. The prophet may be arguing that deliverance will not be found by fleeing from the city. Even fleeing 'as far as' Babylon will not bring Yahweh's deliverance. Such an interpretation may be supported by the fact that the following verses exhort Zion to stand and defeat her foes. This summons to battle in v. 11 begins with the word we"attah which is often used when a conclusion is drawn from the preceding argument.1 If v. 10 announces exile, an exhortation to stand and fight would not be an appropriate or logical conclusion. However, if v. 10 is a series of questions which make the point that deliverance will not be found in fleeing from the city, the exhortation in v. 11 is a natural and logical conclusion. Like vv. 11-13, Mic. 4.10 may thus assume the tradition of Zion theology that deliverance is to take place on Zion where, with Yahweh's help, the foes of Jerusalem will be defeated (11-13).2 Such an interpretation of v. 10 removes what has been viewed as a contradiction within a possibly homogeneous, original unity. Renaud argues that the theme, meter, style and structure of Mic. 4.9-14 can only be explained realistically by the conclusion that these verses were an original unity.3 Although Renaud's arguments are quite convincing, his interpretation of v. 10 forces him to admit that there is a contradiction between 4.9-10, which speaks of deliverance after exile in Babylon, and 4.11-13, in which Jerusalem defeats the foes who are attacking her. The contradiction between a siege resulting in exile and a siege terminating in victory cannot be explained easily. Certainly, Renaud's explanation that there is in these verses a prophetic 'telescoping' is rather strained.4 On the other hand, interpreting v. 10 as a leading question eliminates the supposed contradiction between vv. 9-10 and vv. 11-13. Since a reference to Babylon is not unlikely in the eighth 1. See A. Laurentin, 'we 'attah-kai nun, Formule caracte"ristique des textes juridiques et liturgique (a propos de Jean 17.5)', Bib 45 (1964), pp. 168-97, 413-32. 2. For this motif of the Zion tradition, see Roberts, 'The Davidic Origin of the Zion Tradition', pp. 343-44. 3. Renaud, Formation, p. 213. 4. Renaud, Formation, p. 216.
136
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
century, and since the text may not even be a reference to exile, nothing prevents dating 4.9-10 to the eighth century. Many have suggested a late exilic date for the 'summons to battle' of Mic. 4.11-13 since the same motif of the defeat of the nations is found in Ezekiel 38-39.' In addition, the fact that the terms 'thought' and 'plan' also occur twice in parallelism in Jeremiah (49.20; 50.45) has been argued as indicating that Mic. 4.12 derives from the exilic period.2 Neither of these suggestions is convincing. Two occurrences of a particular parallelism in Jeremiah hardly justify the conclusion that 4.11-13 dates to the exile. Moreover, although there are undeniable similarities to Ezekiel 38-39, it is clear that the motif of the defeat of the nations in Israel in both Micah and Ezekiel is dependent on Zion theology.3 As noted in the previous chapter, it is quite possible that this Zion tradition was formed early in Jerusalem's history.4 If so, the appearance of this motif does not demand a post-exilic dating of Mic. 4.11-13. The material within Mic. 4.14-5.3 has been dated to a time near the end of the exile by many scholars.5 Renaud notes that Mic. 5.1, 3 have a number of similarities to Jer. 30.20-21.6 Since Jer. 30.20-21 is less ambiguous than Micah 5.1, 3, Renaud suggests that the latter texts must presuppose that its hearers were already familiar with the oracle
1. J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 97; Mays, Micah, pp. 107-9; Lescow, 'Micha 15', pp. 66-7. Wolff argues that all of the material in 4.9-5.6 originated shortly afte 586 BCE and not only presupposes the events of that time, but at places pictures in detail the Babylonian siege and deportation (Micah, pp. 136-38). 2. Renaud, Formation, pp. 211-12. Also see Mays, Micah, p. 110. 3. See Roberts, 'Zion Tradition', pp. 985-86. 4. Roberts, 'Zion Tradition', pp. 986-87. Especially see Roberts, 'The Davidic Origin of the Zion Tradition', pp. 343-44, where he argues that the defeat of the nations (vassals) on Zion is an idea that derives from the historical circumstances of David's reign. While Roberts' arguments are significant, one suspects that the Zion tradition might reflect ancient mythological and cultic motifs rather than a specific set of historical circumstances. Nevertheless, if one believes that the Zion tradition reflects historical circumstances, Roberts is correct in pointing to the DavidicSolomonic period rather than the exilic/post-exilic era as a likely time for the emergence of such traditions. 5. J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 102; Mays, Micah, p. 113. 6. Renaud, Formation, pp. 240-42.
4. 'There Will You Be Delivered?': Micah 4.9-5.14
137
of Jer. 30.20-21. The texts in Micah are thus thought to be later than the time of Jeremiah. In addition, Renaud finds in Mic. 5.1, 3 a number of allusions to 1 Sam. 16.12-13; 1 Sam. 17.12; 2 Sam. 7.8 and Isa. 11.1.1 These points of contact are taken to indicate that Mic. 5.1, 3 are anthological in nature and thus later than any of the texts to which they allude. Finally, Renaud suggests that an eighth-century BCE prophet would not have referred to the Davidic time as 'ancient'.2 Other scholars have been skeptical of the arguments for a late dating of Mic. 4.14-5.3. In the first place, the similarities with other texts may indicate that all of these texts are drawing upon a common tradition about kingship in Israel.3 If Micah's audience was familiar with this traditional material, the oracle of 5.1, 3 would not have been ambiguous to them. Second, it is entirely possible that an eighthcentury prophet could have characterized the time of David as 'ancient'. Weinfeld has noted that the emphasis on the ancient origins of the king in Mic. 5.1 parallels the court ideology of both Assyria and Babylon which emphasized the antiquity of the king's dynasty.4 Thus the reasons for dating any material in 4.14-5.3 to a later time are rather weak. In spite of the fact that Mic. 5.4b-5 refers to Assyria, the dominant power of Micah's day, some have suggested that the material is post
1. Renaud, Formation, pp. 240-42. Also puzzling is Wolffs explanation that 4.9-10 come from the time of the Babylonian siege of Jerusalem, but 4.11-13 derive from a time 'during and immediately after' the siege as a word of comfort to the defeated city (Micah, pp. 137, 142). It is difficult to see either the purpose of summons to battle after Jerusalem's defeat or how such a saying would offer much comfort. Also unlikely is the suggestion that we have an alternation of speakers engaged in a dispute (van der Woude, 'Micah in Dispute with the PseudoProphets', pp. 248-56) since there are no clear indications of changes of speakers. 2. Renaud, Formation, p. 245. 3. W. Beyerlin, Die Kulttraditionen Israels in der Vekiindigung des Propheten Micha (FRLANT 54; Gottingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 1959), pp. 77-78; Millers, Micah, p. 65. 4. M. Weinfeld, 'Zion and Jerusalem as Religions and Political Capital: Ideology and Utopia', in R.E. Friedman (ed.), The Poet and the Historian: Essays in Literary and Biblical Criticism (HSS 26; Chico, CA: Scholars Press, 1983), pp. 101, 103.
138
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
exilic.1 In particular it is argued that Assyria is used here as the prototype of Israel's enemies, and that any claim of military domination of Assyria is unlikely in the eighth century. In response, it can be noted that the burden of proof is clearly upon those who see Assyria as a euphemism for Israel's enemies in postexilic texts since there is no known text where this is clearly the case. Whether or not an eighth-century prophet would have imagined Israelite domination of Assyria is simply not possible to know. As we shall see, however, an even more basic question which must be explored is whether these verses really refer to Israelite domination of Assyria. In any case, the possibility must be kept open that Mic. 5.4-5 is an example of the prophetic imagination which envisioned a completely transformed future. Mic. 5.6-8 is generally thought to be a late post-exilic oracle because it assumes a unified, powerful remnant in the midst of the nations. 2 In response, it can only be noted again that the term 'remnant' was simply a military term denoting survivors after battle, which could be used at practically any period in Israel's history. With the annexation of Israelite territory by Syria and Assyria as well as conflicts with neighboring states, it must have been quite natural to refer to Israel in the late eighth century BCE as a remnant.3 Moreover, the phrase 'in the midst of mighty nations' does not necessarily assume an exile and dispersion. The phrase may simply indicate Israel as a nation alongside other nations. Finally, Mic. 5.9-14 has been denied a pre-exilic origin based on style, motifs and vocabulary.4 In particular, Mays notes that other oracles containing the description of a divine purge of horses and chariots are in the post-exilic works of Hag. 2.22 and Zech. 9.16.5 Others have noted that the condemnation of images, pillars and 1. J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 107; Wolff, Micah, pp. 136-37; Lescow, 'Micha 1-5', p. 78; Mays, Micah, p. 120. 2. Renaud, Formation, p. 262; Mays, Micah, p. 121; Lescow, 'Micha 1-5, p. 78. 3. Boogart, Reflections on the Restoration, p. 52; Hillers, Micah, pp. 54-55. 4. Jeremias, 'Deutung', pp. 344-46; Mays, Micah, pp. 124-25; Stade, 'Bemerkungen iiber das Buch Micha', p. 165; Duhm, Die Zwolf Propheten, p. XXXI; for others and a summary of arguments against a pre-exilic dating see Willis, 'Authenticity' p. 364. 5. Mays, Micah, p. 125; Lescow, 'Micha 1-5', pp. 77-78.
4. 'There Will You Be Delivered?': Micah 4.9-5.14
139
Asherah seems to presuppose the reform of Josiah.1 In response to these arguments Willis has noted that 'the fact that the Deuteronomistic Reform denounced graven images, pillars and Asherah does not prove that this was the first time that they were denounced'.2 Indeed, such passages as Hos. 3.4; 8.4-6; 10.1-2; 13.2; 14.4; Isa. 2.8; 10.10 and 37.7 contain at least implied censures against some cultic paraphernalia. It should also be noted that the motif of Yahweh's destruction of the weapons of war is found in Pss. 46.10 and 76.3-4, both of which most likely contain pre-exilic material.3 Although the idea of Yahweh's taking vengeance on the nations is found in post-exilic times, Luker has shown that a theophany in which Yahweh judges the nations has ancient parallels.4 It is thus doubtful that either 5.14 or 5.9-13 should be denied a pre-exilic dating based on motifs.5 Mic. 4.9-5.14 is thus seen to be a section displaying the marks of a distinct unit within the book of Micah. In addition, the arguments for assigning the material in this section to an exilic or post-exilic time are rather weak. A pre-exilic date for all the material in 4.9-5.14 is thus not improbable. Whether the unit can be understood as a unified discourse addressing a particular situation in the time of Micah depends upon a consideration of the rhetorical situation and the possible goals and strategy that unite the discourse. The Rhetorical Situation Objective Factors The major objective factor reflected in the present discourse is a siege of Jerusalem (4.9, 11, 14). Although this factor is obvious, both the identity of the attackers and the response of the population merit closer investigation. 1. Marti, Das Dodekapropheten, pp. 269, 290. 2. Willis, 'Authenticity', p. 365. 3. Mowinckel, 'The Psalms in Israel's Worship', I, pp. 152-53. 4. Luker, Doom and Hope, pp. 136-37. 5. Among those concluding the material is possibly Mican are: Wellhausen, Kleinen Propheten, p. 146; Sellin, Das Zwolfprophetenbuch, pp. 292-93; Weiser, Das Buch der zwolf Kleinen Propheten, p. 232; Killers, Micah, p. 74. Both J.M.P Smith (Micah, p. 114) and Renaud (Formation, pp. 357-61) are open to the possibility that the material is early.
140
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
The attackers of Jerusalem are not explicitly identified. Rather they are called 'the nations' or simply 'your enemies' (4.10b, 11, 13; 5.9, 14). Although it has been suggested that 'the nations' are the various national units that comprised the Assyrian army,1 it is unlikely that those laying siege to Jerusalem are to be identified as the Assyrians. In Mic. 5.4b-5 an Assyrian attack is seen only as a future possibility; nothing is stated that even implies a present siege by Assyria. It challenges credulity to assume that a prophet would have spoken only of a possible future confrontation with Assyria at the very moment that the Assyrian army was laying siege to Jerusalem. A clue to the identity of Jerusalem's attackers may be found in the enigmatic address in Mic. 4.14. Rudolph has suggested that 4.14 is addressed not to Jerusalem but to the armies laying siege to Jerusalem.2 If one assumes a relative clause without the relative pronoun it is possible to read 4.14, 'Now gash yourself, daughter of a raid who has laid siege to us'. Such a reading seems likely in light of the context of this verse. The prophet has just announced the defeat of those who are attacking Jerusalem (4.11-13). The announcement of the defeat of Jerusalem's enemies could logically be followed by a call to those enemies to perform acts of mourning. It is possible, therefore, that the disparaging title 'daughter of a raid' is being applied to those attacking Jerusalem rather than to the city of Zion itself. If Rudolph is correct that the title 'daughter of a raid' is to be applied to the army attacking Jerusalem, then one is also led to the conclusion that the 'judge of Israel' may be a leader of the army laying siege to the Judean capital. A call for the attacking army to mourn would hardly be followed by the announcement of the humiliation of the Judean king. It would be logical, however, to follow the call to mourning with a reason for mourning. If this interpretation of 4.14 is correct, one is thus led to the conclusion that those laying siege to Jerusalem include Israelites, since the prophet calls their leader the 'judge of Israel'. The seriousness of the present situation is underscored by an indication that part of the people has already been conquered. Mic. 5.2 seems to interrupt the oracle about the ideal ruler and may be understood as the prophet's own application of the traditional cultic oracle 1. 2.
Allen, Mica/i, p. 336. Rudolph, Micha, p. 94.
4. 'There Will You Be Delivered?': Micah 4.9-5.14
141
in 5.1, 3-4a. The subject of 'he will give them up' is generally agreed to be Yahweh, and the sense of natan is probably 'to deliver into the hands of the enemy'.1 While there is some disagreement about the antecedent of 'them', it is likely that the word refers to 'what remains of his brothers' in the next line. We have already observed cases in which the prophet (perhaps deliberately) places the pronoun before the antecedent (see 3.2-3). Allen has suggested that since in the Davidic tradition the northern tribes referred to David as their own flesh and blood (2 Sam. 5.1), the 'brothers' must here refer to the northern kingdom which is apparently in exile.2 Such an interpretation is problematic, however, since the text does not clearly presuppose an exile of any or all of Israel. The brothers do not return to the land of Israel, but to the children of Israel.3 What seems to be presupposed is the loss of a part of Israel to the enemy. Finally, the response of the audience to the siege must be noted. The questions of Mic. 4.9 make it clear that the population is in panic and distress. The conventional description of a woman in labor is applied to the city's reaction to the siege.4 Verse 9 appears to indicate that the population of Jerusalem also has serious doubts about the adequacy of its leadership in the face of such a crisis. During a siege it would be understandable for the people of the besieged city to question the wisdom of the ruler or even to contemplate deserting or overthrowing the king. Not surprisingly, such doubt and possible disloyalty is reflected in several places in the discourse where the prophet must remind the people of the significance and divine legitimation of the Davidic king. In particular, the leading questions of Mic. 4.9 can be understood as a reproach to the people for failing to understand the significance of the king in their midst. Generally two interpretations of Mic. 4.9 have 1. Wolff, Micah, p. 145; Hillers, Micah, p. 66. 2. Allen, Micah, p. 34; J. Coppens, 'Le cadre littdraire de Michde V, 1-5', in H. Goedicke (ed.), Near Eastern Studies in honor of W.F. Albright (Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press, 1971), p. 60. For a similar interpretation see Wolff (Micah, p. 145) and Mays (Micah, p. 117). 3. Hillers notes that the term 'remainder' 'should mean those left in the land, not the exiles; cf. Zech. 14.2' (Micah, p. 66). 4. See D. Hillers, 'A Convention in Hebrew Literature: The Reaction to Bad News', ZAW 11 (1965), pp. 86-90.
142
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
been followed. Some have understood Yahweh to be the king in whom the people are called to trust.1 Others have seen the questions as taunts at the people for trusting a human king whose policies have now failed.2 None has considered the possibility that these questions can quite naturally be understood as a reproach to the population for failing to take courage from the presence of the actual Davidic king currently reigning. If the questions are intended as such a reproach, they are indications that the prophet's audience has serious doubts about the adequacy of the leadership of the Davidic king. The severity of the audience's doubts and fears may be indicated by the questions of v. 10. Some apparently are considering 'fleeing' (tese'T) from the city in order to be delivered from the enemies who are laying siege to Jerusalem. Although the reference to fleeing to Babylon is probably not to be taken as a indication that some were seriously considering going to Babylon, the questions of v. 10 seem to reflect the audience's attitude that defeat is so certain that the best course of action is to abandon the city. Finally, Mic. 5.4b-5 notes that many in Micah's audience were concerned about the possibility of an Assyrian attack. As noted above, these verses view an Assyrian intervention as only a future possibility. Nevertheless, the fact that the prophet raises the issue suggests that, in the minds of many, Assyrian military action was considered to be likely even though it is not immediately clear why such action may be expected. It also seems likely that in these verses Micah is responding to some who were in favor of joining an anti-Assyrian coalition. Some have seen in the announcement that seven or eight rulers will dominate Assyria a contradiction to the idea of a single, ideal ruler.3 A number of commentators attempt to explain this apparent contradiction by a rather elaborate redactional scheme in which an editor imperfectly adapted the oracle.4 Others have suggested that rather than indicating 1. Renaud, Formation, p. 205. 2. Mays, Micah, p. 105; Killers, Micah, p. 59. 3. Mays, Micah, pp. 118-19; Wolff, Micah, pp. 147-48; Renaud, Formation, p. 250; J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 107; Stade, 'Bemerkungen iiber das Buch Micha', p. 168; For a survey of the problems and various solutions proposed for these verses see Willis, 'Micah IV, 14-V, 5', pp. 537-41 and Renaud, Formation, pp. 234-35. 4. Mays, Micah, pp. 118-19; Wolff, Micah, pp. 147-48; Allen believes that
4. 'There Will You Be Delivered?': Micah 4.9-5.14
143
a number of rulers, the numerical sequence simply means that the leadership of the ideal ruler will be sufficient. 1 This explanation is implausible in light of the fact that 5a clearly implies more than one ruler will dominate Assyria: 'They will shepherd [wgrd 'u] the land of Assyria...' Millers has attempted to resolve the apparent contradiction by suggesting that the text refers to an alliance of Israel with Aramean chiefs.2 While the textual emendation proposed by Millers has no versional support and cannot be accepted, his general interpretation of the verse is probably correct. It is unlikely that the prophet envisioned Israel not only defeating Assyria but also ruling over that nation. Indeed, it is never stated that the princes are Israelite, and the rulers are described as 'rulers of man'. The prophet may therefore have in mind the raising up of a multi-national coalition against Assyria in the event that Assyria attacks Jerusalem ('us').3 Deliverance from Assyria is thus the work of a coalition as well as the accomplishment of the ideal ruler (v. 5b).4 Micah thus does not dismiss the idea of participating in such a multi-national coalition, but he sets forth a specific set of conditions that would justify support of such an anti-Assyrian coalition. It would be necessary to raise up princes and rulers only if Assyria launches a direct attack on 'our land' and 'treads down our fortresses'. If this interpretation is correct, one may reasonably conclude that some in the prophet's audience were in favor of participation in a coalition at present even though an attack from Assyria was only a possibility and not a reality. The objective factors reflected in the situation can thus be stated concisely. Jerusalem is being besieged by enemies which apparently include Israelites. Related to this present crisis is the presupposition that part of the kingdom (Judah?) has been 'given up' or has 'gone Micah is using an old, national song of victory (Micah, p. 347). 1. Willis, 'Micah IV, 14-V, 5', pp. 541-42; Bryant, 'Micah 4.14-5.14', pp. 216-17. 2. Hillers, Micah, pp. 68-69. J.C. Peiser had previously suggested that 'adorn be emended to Edom ('Micha V, OLZ 20 [1917], p. 365). As is the case with Hillers' proposal, there is no textual evidence to support such an emendation. 3. Such is the suggestion of H. Gazelles ('Micah', EncJud, XI, p. 1481): 'The shepherd is capable of organizing a coalition against Assyria...' 4. This interpretation is similar to Cuffey's (The Coherence of Micah, p. 272).
144
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
over' to the hands of their enemies. The response of the prophet's audience is one of panic and fear. They lack confidence in their king and some are considering fleeing from the city. There also appears to be a concern about possible Assyrian intervention. The way in which Micah responds to this situation is determined by his own convictions and his evaluation of the situation. Subjective Factors The subjective factors reflected in the present discourse are comprised of the prophet's response to the siege of Jerusalem and, more specifically, to the fears and concerns of his audience. In contrast to the audience's assessment of the situation, Micah appears confident of Jerusalem's triumph and certain of the present king's ability to lead. In particular, the speaker is convinced that Jerusalem will be victorious, that the present king will emerge as the ideal ruler who will reunite the nation which will then be transformed. Furthermore, the prophet is confident of Jerusalem's ability to deal with a possible Assyrian intervention. First, in contrast to his audience, the prophet believes that the present siege of Jerusalem will result in victory rather than defeat. In particular, the presence of a king in Jerusalem is, for Micah, a sign that the city will be triumphant. The leading questions of 4.9 suggest that the prophet is reproaching his audience for not being encouraged by the presence of the king (presumably Davidic) in Jerusalem. In the Davidic-Zion theology the Davidic king was a living reminder of Yahweh's choice and, thus, his protection of Zion. As Moshe Weinfeld notes, there is a 'strong connection between the founding of the Davidic dynasty and the establishment of an eternal seat for God and his ark'1 (see especially Ps. 132). The presence of a Davidic king in Jerusalem was the sign of Yahweh's choice of Zion and a reminder of divine presence and protection. In addition, in the pre-exilic royal Psalms, Yahweh's choice of a king was associated with the defeat of the king's enemies (Pss. 2; 89.20-23; 110; 132). It is generally believed that Yahweh's pledge to defeat the king's enemies was part of the testimony (hoq) which was read at the king's enthronement (see Ps. 110 and especially Ps. 2).2 1. 2.
M. Weinfeld, 'Davidic Covenant', IDBSup, p. 189. De Vaux, Ancient Israel, I, p. 109.
4. 'There Will You Be Delivered?': Micah 4.9-5.14
145
The king was thus a living reminder not only of Yahweh's choice of Zion, but of Yahweh's pledge to defeat the enemies of the king and thus deliver Zion. The leading questions of Mic. 4.9 are grounded in the belief that the Davidic king was a sign of Yahweh's presence and pledge to defeat the enemies of the king. Confidence in Jerusalem's victory is further grounded in the prophet's acceptance of a Zion theology that expected the defeat of Jerusalem's enemies. It is generally recognized that Mic. 4.11-13 reflects a traditional motif of the Zion theology in which Yahweh gathers the nations to Jerusalem in order to defeat them.1 As noted above, the leading questions of 4.10 also assume the traditional theme that the defeat of the nations (deliverance) is to occur not in a distant place, but on Zion itself. Apparently, these leading questions are meant to remind the audience of this tradition which the prophet clearly articulates in the following section (vv. 11-13). Micah's assessment of the situation is thus dependent not only on the presence of the Davidic king, but also on traditional elements of a Zion theology. A second subjective factor is the prophet's high regard for the Davidic king. It is generally assumed that Mic. 5.1-4a constitutes a 'tribal oracle' addressed to Bethlehem.2 The oracle reflects the common motif of Yahweh's choice of a great ruler from a small or insignificant place (2 Sam. 9.21; Judg. 6.15). The relationship between Yahweh and the ideal ruler is further defined by the oracle: the ruler's will is subordinate to Yahweh's since he stands forth 'for me' (i.e., for Yahweh) and will rule 'by the strength of Yahweh' (5.1, 3).3 The oracle concludes with a descriptive name of the ideal ruler: 'This one shall be the one of peace' (cf. Isa. 9.4). Unfortunately, the ambiguity of the oracle has led some to conclude that the prophet is actually rejecting the Davidic dynasty. A number of scholars have concluded that the coming ruler is a new David or David redivus.4 Indeed, the oracle does contain direct allusions to the 1. See above, p. 135 n. 2. 2. See Mays, Micah, p. 102. 3. For a complete survey as well as a different interpretation of li see J.T. Willis, 'Mimekattyesem Micah 5.1', JQR 58 (1967-68), pp. 317-22. 4. G.A. Smith, Twelve Prophets, pp. 442-43; Mays, Micah, p. 113; Wolff, Micah, pp. 144-45; Hillers, Micah, p. 66; Rudolph, Micha, p. 96; Renaud, Formation, p. 242.
146
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
Davidic ideology reflected in the oracle of Nathan in 2 Sam. 7.6-17 Common to Micah 5.1-2 and 2 Sam. 7.6-7 are the themes of the humble origins of David, the peaceful rule of the king, and an emphasis on the divine initiative. In addition, both texts contain the verb liheyot and avoid the word 'king'. The oracle in Mic. 5.1-2, however, is often interpreted as a 'revision' of Nathan's oracle: the emphasis on the origins of David rather than the promise to David's descendants is assumed to suggest both a rejection of the Davidic dynasty and a new beginning signaled by the rise of a new David. On the other hand, some have pointed out that far from rejecting the Davidic dynasty, the oracle announces that an ideal ruler will come from among the descendants of David.2 The reference to Bethlehem, the allusion to the Davidic traditions, and the statement that the ruler's origins are 'from days of old' indicate that the future monarch will be of the old, established line of David. It is further suggested that the emphasis on the smallness of Bethlehem may be intended as a analogy for the low state of the Judean monarchy which will yet produce an ideal ruler.3 Logic appears to be on the side of those who interpret the oracle of Mic. 5.1, 3-4a as an affirmation that the Davidic line will produce a great ruler. If the prophet intended to reject the Davidic dynasty it is unlikely that he would have utilized traditions about the founder of that dynasty and have made such an ambiguous statement about that rejection. In fact, the use of such traditions might have been selfdefeating since the royal psalms indicate that the Davidic tradition was used to legitimize the rule of David's descendants (e.g. Ps. 132). It seems best to conclude that the oracle does envision a Davidide as the ideal ruler. The quotation of this oracle is thus a reminder to a doubting people that the present ruler is a member of the line that has
1. See Renaud, Formation, pp. 242-45; Beyerlin, Die Kulttraditionen, pp. 77-78. 2. J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 104; Bryant, 'Micah 4.14-5.14', pp. 218, 221 Beyerlin, Die Kulttraditionen, pp. 77-78; Coppens, 'Le cadre litte'raire de MicheV, pp. 60-61; J. Mauchline, 'Implicit Signs of a Persistent Belief in the Davidic Empire', VT 20 (1970), p. 292; Allen, Micah, p. 343, n. 23. Lescow, 'Das Geburtsmotiv in den Messianischen Weissagungen bei Jesaja und Micha', ZAW79 (1967), p. 197. 3. Lescow, 'Das Geburtsmotiv', p. 197; Allen, Micah, p. 143.
4. 'There Will You Be Delivered?': Micah 4.9-5.14
147
divine legitimation 'from ancient times' and which will yet produce a great ruler. Some may object that rather than bolstering confidence in the Davidic king, Mic. 4.14 announces the defeat of the king in Jerusalem. To 'strike on the cheek' is a figurative way of depicting the humiliation of an individual.1 As we have seen, however, this verse is probably directed not at the king in Jerusalem, but at a leader of those laying siege to Jerusalem. If this interpretation is correct, the contrast between 4.14 and 5.1 is not a contrast between the present ruler of Jerusalem and the future ruler; rather the contrast is between the 'judge of Israel' who is attacking Jerusalem and the Davidic king in Jerusalem. One is to be humiliated, but the other rules by divine choice and will emerge ('stand forth') as the ideal ruler. That the prophet views the present Davidic king as the one who will emerge as the ideal ruler is plausible if it is remembered that such oracles of royal Messianic hope had a two-fold meaning: ... every king of the Davidic line is a figure and shadow of the ideal king of the future. In fact none of these kings attained the ideal, but at the moment of their enthronement, at each renewal of the Davidic covenant, this same hope was expressed...2
Micah could thus be reminding his audience of the fact that at the king's enthronement (or annual anniversary of the enthronement) the belief was expressed that the present ruler was the ideal ruler from the line of David. It may be that Micah sees in the present crisis the opportunity for the monarch to fulfill the role of the ideal ruler who will re-unite Israel and restore its former greatness. The quotation of a traditional oracle may thus show the prophet's high regard not only for the Davidic line in general but also for the present ruler in particular. A third subjective factor is the prophet's assessment of the outcome of a possible conflict with Assyria. As noted above, the prophet specifies in these verses the conditions that would justify participation in an international coalition against Assyria. If Assyria attacks, Micah is convinced that a coalition would be able not only to repel such an assault, but to dominate Assyria. The role of the people of Yahweh in such a coalition is apparently 1. 2.
See 1 Kgs 22.24; Job 16.10; Ps. 3.7; Lam. 3.30. De Vaux, Ancient Israel, I, p. 110.
148
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
described in the following verses. A number of scholars have interpreted these two sayings as a description of Israel's dual role of blessing and cursing.1 Such a sharp contrast in meaning is open to question, however. Wolff notes that in 2 Sam. 17.2 dew represents not blessing, but that which is mysterious and unexpected.2 Wolff thus concludes that Mic. 5.6 concerns the miraculous origin of the remnant of Jacob. Verse 6 emphasizes the fact that the remnant exists not by human effort and thus vulnerable to human strength (6c), but only by the power of Yahweh (6b). The following verse (v. 7) uses the lion simile to emphasize the irresistible power of the remnant. Together these verses convey the idea that the power of the survivors of Jacob will come from Yahweh. As a result, 'no one can deliver' from the remnant which is like a lion among sheep. The last phrase of v. 7 is significant. Allen points out that the words 'no one can deliver' are frequently used in connection with Yahweh's punishment of his enemies (Deut. 32.39; Job 10.7; Ps 50.22; Hos. 5.14).3 The thought of Mic. 5.6 may thus be that the remnant of Jacob serves as 'a representative of the divine Victor'.4 It is on Yahweh's behalf that the remnant assumes the role of a lion among the nations, and it is from Yahweh, rather than military might, that the remnant ultimately derives its power. The prophet thus is convinced that if Assyria attacks Jerusalem, the remnant of Jacob will assume its place among the mighty nations of the coalition as a nation empowered by Yahweh himself, and thus be able to repel an Assyrian attack. Finally, the prophet believes that a triumphant Jerusalem will lead to a transformed Israel. Although Mic. 5.9-14 clearly implies som accusation and judgment these verses also suggest that, stripped of weapons, certain religious artifacts and inferior religious practices, Israel will be better able to trust Yahweh alone. Weinfeld has noted that the motif of the elimination of weapons is associated both with the coming of the ideal ruler and with Yahweh's triumph over his 1. Renaud, Formation, p. 258; Allen, Micah, p. 352. For a survey of proposed interpretations see Bryant, 'Micah 4.14-5.14', p. 226. 2. Wolff, Micah, pp. 155-56. Similar conclusions are reached by Mays (Micah, p. 123), Killers (Micah, p. 71) and Bryant, 'Micah 4.14-5.14', p. 227. 3. Allen, Micah, p. 354. 4. Allen, Micah, p. 355.
4. 'There Will You Be Delivered?': Micah 4.9-5.14
149
enemies on Mount Zion (Ps. 76; 28; Zech. 9.9-10; Isa. 11.1-10).1 Apparently, from ancient times the royal city was associated with peace, and the ideal Davidic ruler was one who brought peace and eliminated weapons of war. This royal ideology probably lies behind the prophet's announcement that a dramatic transformation of Israel will occur with Yahweh's triumph and the emergence of the ideal ruler. The prophet thus has an optimistic assessment of the outcome of present events. He does not deny the difficulty of the present but views the situation in light of well-established traditions concerning David and Zion. These traditions lead to the conviction that Jerusalem will triumph and that the present ruler will emerge as the ideal ruler of Israel. Ultimately, the prophet looks ahead to a time when the whole of Israel is transformed and trusts solely in Yahweh. Goals and Strategy The objective and subjective factors of the rhetorical situation result in a discourse with a single purpose: to persuade the audience to stand firm and repel the attack on Jerusalem. While the population of Jerusalem appears to be paralyzed by fear and panic, the prophet is convinced that the present crisis is part of Yahweh's plan for the triumph of Jerusalem and the restoration of Israel. The challenge before Micah is to convey his convictions persuasively to an audience that doubts that victory is possible. In meeting this challenge Micah produces a discourse which exhorts and encourages the audience. The goal of the discourse and the means of persuasion are made evident by an outline of Mic. 4.9-5.14. I.
II.
III.
1.
Introduction (4.9) A. Indirect accusations through questions (4.9a) B. Description of panic (4.9b) Thesis A. Exhortation: Labor and bring forth (4.10a) B. Reason: Will Yahweh deliver you if you flee? (4.1 Ob, c) Confirmation A. Zion tradition promises victory (4.11-13) Weinfeld, 'Zion and Jerusalem', pp. 102-104.
150
IV.
V.
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis B. Summons for Zion's enemies to mourn (4.14) C. Oracle promises restoration under Davidic ruler (5.1-4a) Refutation (5.4b-7) A. Response to possible Assyrian intervention (5.4b-5) B. Description of a united Israel's part in an international coalition (5.6-7) C. Exhortation to victory (5.8) Conclusion: Recapitulation and synthesis A. Transformation of Israel (5.9-13) B. Judgment upon the nations (5.14)
Although rather brief Mic. 4.9 is a remarkably effective introduction to the discourse. By opening with leading questions, the prophet immediately captures the attention of his audience and involves them in the persuasive process.1 The rapid succession of questions heightens the impact and further pushes the audience to take an active role in the persuasive process. The opening series of questions also functions to accuse his audience of irrational fear. By accusing his audience indirectly, however, the prophet is careful not to turn his audience against him. Like a good introduction, Mic. 4.9 catches the audience's attention and makes the audience willing to hear the message of the speaker.2 The introduction also makes clear the prophet's relation to his audience and his attitude toward his subject: unlike his audience the prophet does not see the crisis as a cause for despair. Like the introduction the thesis is stated in concise terms (4.10). The imperative 'bring forth like a woman giving birth' adds an urgent tone to the prophet's message. In addition, the use of the imperative establishes an authoritarian mood and further defines the relation of the speaker to the audience. Thus use of such an authoritarian mood 'establishes a social relationship between the two locutors: one gives
1. For the effect of such leading questions, see above, p. 54 n. 2. 2. Corbett notes that the introduction functions to inform the audience of the subject of the discourse, and to dispose the audience to be receptive to what is said (Classical Rhetoric, p. 303).
4. 'There Will You Be Delivered?': Micah 4.9-5.14
151
orders, the other obeys'.1 Micah thus takes the stance of one in authority who commands the obedience of his audience. The use of the childbirth simile in an unexpected way commands the attention of the audience. The prophet first reproaches the people for allowing distress to overtake them so that they act 'like a woman in labor'. He then uses the childbirth imagery in an unexpected way by commanding his audience to 'labor and bring forth like a woman giving birth'. This latter command should probably be understood in a very positive sense. The prophet calls not for a labor of futility and panic, but a fruitful labor which 'brings forth' victory.2 Luker's observation is incisive: 'It is a time of pain, but the necessary pain will bear the future in which the tables will be turned'.3 This masterful use of a simile in an unexpected way serves to negate the former simile which equates labor with despair.4 The prophet exhorts the audience to turn their fruitless labor into productive labor. This transformation of the metaphor of a woman in labor is unexpected and thus functions to capture the audience's attention. In spite of the authoritarian stance of the prophet such a bold thesis must be supported with reasons. Once again the prophet uses a series of questions to involve the audience and to lead them to the conclusion that deliverance will not come from fleeing from Jerusalem. In this case the questions do not accuse; rather they serve as reminders of the tradition that Yahweh will defeat Jerusalem's enemies on Zion. This appeal to traditional beliefs accepted by his audience is made explicitly in the confirmation. In 4.11-13 it is impossible to know if Micah is directly quoting a traditional oracle about Zion or simply adapting elements of the Zion tradition. In any case, it is reasonable to conclude that he is utilizing material that was familiar to his audience. The citation of traditional material functions to support the prophet's thesis in two ways. First, an allusion to a well-known and accepted tradition serves as an appeal to authority.5 In addition, the appeal to authority is made more emphatic since Yahweh himself is 1. A. Goldschlager, Towards a Semiotics of Authoritarian Discourse', Poetics Today 3 (1982), pp. 12-13. 2. The LXX literally reads, 'Act the man and draw nigh'. See the comments by Killers, Micah, p. 58. 3. Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 177. 4. Gitay, Prophecy and Persuasion, p. 70. 5. Corbett, Classical Rhetoric, p. 138.
152
The Speeches of Micah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
the speaker in this oracle. While previously Micah had stated the thesis that deliverance was assured, Yahweh himself now promises deliverance and commands the city to take action. Second, the use of ancient traditions about Zion gives to the city an aura of mystery which allows the audience to conclude that with Zion the seemingly impossible is indeed possible: Rhetorically considered, Mystery is a major resource of persuasion. Endow a person, an institution, a thing with the glow or resonance of the Mystical, and you have set up a motivational appeal to which people spontaneously respond. In this respect, an ounce of Mystery is worth a ton of argument. Indeed, where Mystery is, we can be assured that the arguments will profusely follow, as intellectus flows from fides.1
Micah's argument is thus based on both an appeal to authority and an appeal to the mystery associated with Zion itself. Obviously the prophet's use of mystery is an appeal to the emotions of his audience. The quotation of words attributed to Yahweh and the Zion tradition itself are meant to evoke a certain emotional response toward the city and toward the present crisis. It is clear that Micah is attempting to apply to the present situation the motifs of the nations' assault on Jerusalem and Yahweh's deliverance. Verse 14 indicates that in light of Yahweh's promise to Jerusalem, those who now lay siege to the city should mourn since their defeat is divinely assured. Moreover, their ruler will be humiliated (struck on the cheek) as Yahweh has promised he would do to those who attack Jerusalem (see Ps. 2.9). The summons to mourning in v. 14 thus serves to apply the Zion tradition to the present situation and to create a sense of certainty about Jerusalem's victory since the attacking army is summoned to act as if it were already defeated. All of v. 14 also serves to establish a sharp contrast between Jerusalem and her enemies. Jerusalem is the 'daughter of Zion' (4.13) while the enemy is the daughter of a 'raid' (or 'raiding party'), a term that usually has a pejorative sense (Hos. 6.9; 7.1; Gen. 49.19; Jer. 18.22). 2 The former is commanded to thresh but the latter is commanded to mourn. Moreover, as a link to what follows, 4.14 1. K. Burke, 'Mysticism as a Solution to the Poet's Dilemma', in S.R. Hopper (ed.), Spiritual Problems in Contemporary Literature (New York: Harper, 1957), p. 105. 2. Wolff, Micah, p. 131.
4. 'There Will You Be Delivered?': Micah 4.9-5.14
153
contrasts the commander of the attacking army to the king in Jerusalem: the former is the judge of Israel destined to be humiliated; the latter is the ruler who comes forth for Yahweh and is destined to be 'great to the ends of the earth'. The contrasts established by 4.14 are an effective means of defining the special nature and destiny of Jerusalem and her king.1 At the same time the weakness of the enemy is defined: they are but raiders whose ruler will be struck down. The negative definition of the enemy is reinforced by the puns of v. 14. While paranamosia often are used simply to reinforce an idea, in 4.14 the puns may add a tone of sarcasm and taunting. Mic. 4.14 thus uses a number of persuasive devices to define the enemy in negative terms and, by means of contrast, to give a positive sense of special identity to Jerusalem. Mic. 5.1-4a functions in much the same way as does 4.9-13. The quotation of a traditional oracle spoken by Yahweh himself appeals to an accepted authority while simultaneously giving an air of mystery to the Davidic king and dynasty. By his interpretive statement in 5.2 the prophet applies the ancient oracle to the present situation. Those who are now separated from the children of Israel will return as soon as the one in labor gives birth. The exact meaning of this reference in 5.2 is debated. Some have seen in v. 2a a parallel to a Ras Shamra myth which tells that a woman will bear a son to the moon god.2 Others have interpreted the verses as a prophecy of the birth of an ideal ruler3 or an allusion to Isa. 7.144 Although each of these interpretations has its merits, within the context of the discourse the 'one who is in labor' probably refers to Jerusalem, which in 4.9-10 is described as a woman in labor.5 Thus in 5.2 the prophet is probably proclaiming that the defeat of some within Israel will continue until the time that Jerusalem's labor has ended; that is, until she has defeated her enemies. 1. According to Aristotle,'... things are known by opposition, and are all the better when the opposites are placed side by side' (Rhetoric 3,9.1410a). See the discussion in Corbett (Classical Rhetoric, pp. 40-421). 2. Kapelrud, 'Eschatology', p. 400. 3. For example, J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 100. 4. Bryant, 'Micah 4.14-5.14', p. 223; Rudolph, Micha, p. 96; Allen, Micah, p. 395. 5. This is the approximate conclusion of Mays, Micah, pp. 116-17; Lescow, 'Das Geburtsmotiv', pp. 199-205; Hillers, Micah, p. 66.
154
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
The prophet's application of the traditional oracle thus serves to encourage and exhort his audience. Since the restoration of Israel will come when the one in labor gives birth, the day of restoration depends on how quickly Jerusalem brings forth victory (see. 4.10). Micah not only supports his argument through an ancient oracle, but also applies the oracle in such a way that his audience is exhorted to take action. Mic. 5.4b-8 can be understood as a refutation. Even if one were convinced that the present crisis could result in victory for Jerusalem and the re-unification of Israel, some were concerned that Assyria would intervene, leaving the people no better off than at present. Micah responds to this concern in two ways. First, he makes an ethical appeal. The use of the first-person plurals in 5.4b identifies the prophet closely with his audience. Such a solidarity between the audience and speaker helps to persuade the hearers that the prophet is not encouraging them to take an unrealistic or dangerous course of action since his fate is the same as theirs. Second, Micah describes a scenario in which 'the remnant of Jacob' responds to an Assyrian invasion through participation in a multinational coalition which is able to check Assyrian power. Such a description of an Assyrian defeat undoubtedly had a strong emotional appeal to a large portion of his audience who had anti- Assyrian feelings. The nationalistic appeal is continued in vv. 6, 7 where the prophet declares that Israel will assume a place of strength among the nations. The emotional appeal is further reinforced by Micah's designation for the restored kingdom, the 'remnant of Jacob'. The fact that Israel is addressed with the title 'Jacob' reminds the audience of the nation's origins and their identity as the chosen people.1 Mic. 5.4b-5 is thus a remarkably well-crafted refutation. The prophet anticipates the objection that Assyria will have the last word concerning Jerusalem's fate. In addition, he acknowledges the sentiment of some that they should join in a coalition against Assyria. In response, Micah describes the circumstances in which anti-Assyrian action might be justified. He then paints a vivid picture of a powerful, restored Israel which is able to turn back an Assyrian invasion and which is unchallenged among the nations. The picture is made persuasive by its appeal to national and religious pride in addition to the ethical appeal which the prophet incorporates. The climax of the 1.
G.E. Mendenhall, 'Election', IDB, II, p. 78.
4. 'There Will You Be Delivered?': Micah 4.9-5.14
155
refutation is the exhortation of v. 8, which once again calls for Israel's victory over all her enemies. The inclusive phrase 'all your enemies' serves to bring the hearers' attention to the present crisis as well as the future possible encounter with Assyria. Mic. 5.9-14 functions as a conclusion which unites and recapitulates a number of themes in the discourse.1 First, the verses restate the prophet's assertion that Yahweh himself will punish the nations. In 4.11-13 it is Yahweh who gives Jerusalem the resources to defeat 'the nations'; in 5.14 Yahweh again states his intention of punishing 'the nations'. Second, 5.9-13 unites two ideas that have furnished the proof for Micah's discourse. As noted previously, both the ideology of Jerusalem and the royal ideology of the ideal ruler include the motif of the destruction of weapons and the coming of peace. Yahweh's declaration in 5.9-14 that the weapons of war will be eliminated draws together the concept of the tradition of the ideal ruler and the tradition of Zion and points to the result of Jerusalem's victory and the emergence of the Davidic ruler. Third, these verses unite the themes of judgment and transformation. The discourse has proceeded from the call for the defeat of Jerusalem's enemies (4.9-5.1) to the description of a transformed Israel, united and secure among the nations and protected by Yahweh's power (5.1-7). Mic. 5.9-14 implies accusation and judgment, but also points to the transformation of the nation into one that trusts solely in Yahweh. In addition to recapitulation and synthesis, the conclusion functions to create the emotion and attitude which the prophet has sought to evoke throughout the discourse.2 Throughout the discourse the prophet has based his exhortation to Jerusalem on his belief that Yahweh intends to bring both victory to Jerusalem and transformation to Israel. The use of Yahweh's words as an appeal to authority is found in both the Zion and Davidic traditions, but is present in its strongest form in Mic. 5.9-14. The explicit identification of Yahweh as the speaker and the repeated use of the first person provide an emphatic appeal to authority. The prophet thus concludes with a 1. Recapitulation and application are included among the functions of a conclusion (Corbett, Classical Rhetoric, pp. 328-37). 2. On emotional appeal as a part of the conclusion, see Corbett, Classical Rhetoric, pp. 334-36.
156
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
statement in the strongest terms possible that judgment on the nations and the transformation of Israel are the purposes of Yahweh himself. Historical Possibilities If Mic. 4.9-5.14 is to be read as an originally unified discourse, what historical circumstances are indicated by the objective and subjective factors? As noted above, a large number of scholars deny most or all of the material in this section to the time of Micah, and suggest either the year 586 or a more indefinite 'exilic' or 'post-exilic' setting for the material. Since I have already suggested that there is no reason to deny an eighth-century date to this section, however, we can turn our attention to a consideration of the historical background suggested by those scholars who do find Mican material in 4.9-5.14. Most of those who believe the section contains Mican material date that material to the Assyrian siege of Jerusalem in 701.1 Such a date is supposedly suggested by the fact that a situation of siege is assumed in 4.9-14. Moreover, the reference to the Assyrians in 5.4b-5 has led commentators to conclude that this material presupposes the Assyrian invasion of 701 BCE. Finally, the indication in 5.2 that part of Israel or Judah has been conquered seems to correspond to Sennacherib's invasion in which much of the Shephelah succumbed to the Assyrian army. The above examination of objective factors raises serious doubts that any of this material should be dated to the 701 Assyrian invasion of Judah. First, the Assyrian threat is raised by the prophet totally in terms of a potential possibility in 5.4b-5, not as a present reality. Second, the proposed reading of Mic. 4.14 suggests the possibility that the attackers are Israelites since their leader is addressed as the 'judge of Israel'. These two factors alone suggest that the historical background 1. Hillers suggests that much of the material (4.14; 5.4-5,9-14) presupposes the events of 701 (Micah, pp. 63, 69, 74). Bryant dates 4.14-5.14 to a time after 721 and before 701, but emphasizes the Assyrian threat as the main factor in the unit ('Micah 4.14-5.14', p. 226). Similarly, Kapelrud ('Eschatology', p. 401) dates 5.1-4 to a time after 722 BCE. Willis dates 4.14-5.5 to 701 BCE ('Micah IV, 14-V 5', p. 545) and 5.9-14 to the time of Hezekiah ('Authenticity', pp. 366-68). Allen suggests that throughout this section the threat is of an imminent Assyrian invasion (Micah, p. 349).
4. 'There Will You Be Delivered?': Micah 4.9-5.14
157
addressed and assumed by Mic. 4.9-5.14 is not an Assyrian (or Babylonian) siege of Jerusalem. Instead they suggest a situation similar to the Syro-Ephraimite siege of Jerusalem in late 734 or early 733 BCE. Indeed, the attack on Jerusalem by Rezin and Pekah may account for the complex matrix of factors evident in the discourse. In the first place, Israel participated in the attack on Jerusalem in 734. Although Syria is the only other power said to be directly involved in the assault on Jerusalem, the western anti-Assyrian coalition was probably supported by a number of other nations including Philistia, Edom, Tyre and even a large part of Judah itself.1 The probability that a number of nations were aligned with Syria and Israel against Jerusalem may explain how Micah can speak of 'the nations' who wish to see Jerusalem profaned and at the same time single out the 'judge' of Israel for punishment (4.14). The judge of Israel who is to be humiliated would appear to be Pekah. As noted above, the purpose of 4.14 is to provide a contrast between the ruler of Israel and the Davidic king. It is worth noting that Isaiah employs this same strategy of contrast when he reminds Ahaz that 'the head of Samaria it the son of Remaliah' (Isa. 7.9). In addition to contrasting the Davidic king with Pekah, it may also be significant that Isaiah never refers to Pekah by name, nor does he designate him 'king' of Israel. Micah may also deliberately be avoiding bestowing the authority of kingship on Pekah by referring to him only as the 'judge' of Israel who is to be struck with a rod. Micah's attijude toward the 'judge of Israel' is thus quite similar to the attitude which Isaiah displays toward the 'son of Remaliah' during the SyroEphraimite siege of Jerusalem. The events of the Syro-Ephraimite campaign against Jerusalem may also explain the division assumed in Mic. 5.2. The 'brothers' whom Yahweh has 'given up' could refer to those who have either allied themselves with Pekah or to those who have been subjected to Pekah through his coup in Samaria. The brothers may also include Judeans loyal to Pekah and the anti-Assyrian coalition (see Isa. 8.6). In any case, in Micah's view they have left 'the children of Israel' by their willing or forced support of Pekah. The questions concerning the king in Jerusalem (4.9) take on an added significance if this passage dates to late 734 or early 733. 1.
On the participants in the coalition, see Irvine, Isaiah, Ahaz, pp. 101-103.
158
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
According to the proposed historical reconstruction followed in this dissertation, 734-733 was not only the year of the Syro-Ephraimite siege of Jerusalem, it was the year of Uzziah's death. Although he had been forced to surrender the office to Jotham earlier, Uzziah probably was regarded as the 'elder statesmen' until his death during the reign of Ahaz. The loss of an experienced leader at such a crucial moment no doubt shook the confidence of the people and raised concerns about the ability of Ahaz to lead without Uzziah. In part, this crisis of confidence prompted Micah to remind the people that there was indeed a king in their midst even though Uzziah had died. Their king had not perished and Ahaz was to be the rallying point for the people of Jerusalem. In addition, one must remember that the siege of Jerusalem was a response to Ahaz's refusal to co-operate with Pekah, the king of Israel. As suggested in the previous chapter (in the section entitled 'Historical Possibilities'), Ahaz's decision marks the first time in generations that the Davidic king in Jerusalem had not submitted to the king in Samaria. The questions of v. 9 may thus reflect Micah's attempt to persuade the inhabitants of Jerusalem to follow the Davidic king rather than the king in Samaria. The prophet proclaims that Ahaz was not only the king and counselor to whom they must look, but also that Ahaz embodied the ideals of the Davidic monarchy. Ahaz's refusal to join Israel in support of the anti-Assyrian coalition signaled Jerusalem's rejection of its subservient role to Samaria. More importantly, if Ahaz could defeat Pekah, the possibility was open for him to assume rule of both Judah and Israel, thus uniting the divided kingdom. In the crisis of the moment the prophet apparently saw the opportunity for the recovery of the Davidic empire. Micah's assessment of Ahaz is strikingly similar to Isaiah's. Irvine has argued that Isa. 9.6-7 and 11.1-5 refer to Ahaz and hail his break with Samaria: 'Ahaz's break with Pekah marked the realization of the ideal claims of royal theology. He no longer ruled in the shadow of an Israelite king, but rather as a fully independent king with divine legitimation'. 1 Like Isaiah, Micah may have seen in Ahaz's decision to break with Samaria the fulfillment of the royal ideology of the Davidic king. For Micah, Ahaz is the ideal ruler who, according to a 1.
Irvine, Isaiah, Ahaz, p. 393; also see pp. 486-92.
4. 'There Will You Be Delivered?': Micah 4.9-5.14
159
traditional oracle, is to 'stand forth' or 'emerge' (yese"; cf. Isa. 11.1) and lead a united and transformed Israel. He is designated as "The One of Peace' (zeh salom; cf. Isa. 9.5, sar salom). If the events of 734-33 provide the background for Mic. 4.9-5.14, the audience's concern with Assyrian intervention is understandable. As noted in the previous chapter (in the section entitled 'Historical Possibilities'), there were probably some in Jerusalem itself who questioned the wisdom of Ahaz's refusal to join the coalition against Assyria. In addressing this sentiment, Micah specifies the conditions in which participation in such a coalition would be justified. Furthermore, a significant portion of the population not only of the northern kingdom, but also of Judah itself had engaged in or supported anti-Assyrian activities. Assyrian retaliation not only against Judah, but possibly against the capital city of Jerusalem was thus not out of the question. Micah's argument that if an invasion came, the 'remnant of Jacob' would assume its place in a coalition is thus probably to be interpreted as addressing the audience's concern over potential Assyrian retaliation. Finally, the historical circumstances of 733 may explain what at first appears to be a dramatic shift in Micah's message. While Micah had previously declared that Jerusalem would be destroyed (3.12), in 4.9-5.14 he proclaims that Jerusalem will triumph over her enemies who are threatening to destroy her. It must be remembered, however, that in 3.1-4.8 the prophet was primarily addressing those who were refusing to abide by Ahaz's decision not to join the anti-Assyrian forces. In Micah's view, to overturn the king's decision and to participate in the anti-Assyrian coalition was to invite the destruction of Jerusalem by the Assyrian armies. In contrast, in Mic. 4.9-5.14 Jerusalem is being attacked not by Assyria but by Israelites determined to overturn Ahaz's decision not to bring Judah into the anti-Assyrian coalition. In Micah's view, the city had not violated the terms of the treaty with Assyria and thus would not be punished. He therefore encourages his audience to stand fast with Ahaz to defeat the foes of Jerusalem who had rebelled against Assyria. In both 3.1-4.8 and 4.9-5.14, the constant factors are Micah's support of the Davidic king (3.1; 4.8; 5.1-4a) and the conviction that present participation in any actions against Assyria is unacceptable
160
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
(3.1; 5.4b-5). The different expressions these constant factors assume is a testimony to changed circumstances and to the fact that every prophetic speech was originally directed to the particulars of a distinct situation.
Chapter 5 'A ROD—AND WHO HAS APPOINTED IT AGAIN?' MICAH6.1-7.7
Text and Translation (6.1)
(2)
(3) (4)
(5)
Hear now what Yahweh is saying: 'Arise, argue your case in the presence of the mountains,1 and let the hills hear your voice.' Hear, O mountains, the contention of Yahweh, you primeval ones, you everlasting streams;2 for the contention of Yahweh is with his people and with Israel will he dispute. 'My people, what have I done to you? How have I wearied you? Answer me! Surely I brought you up from the land of Egypt, and from the house of slavery I redeemed you. And I sent before you Moses, Aaron, and Miriam. My people,3 remember now what Balak, king of Moab plotted; and remember how Baalam, son of Beor, answered him. [Remember what happened]4 from Shittim to Gilgal
1. It has been suggested that 'et should be emended to 'el (see J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 119). The word 'et can be retained, however, with the meaning 'in the presence of, or 'before' (Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 107, n. 1; Rudolph, Micha, p. 107; Killers, Micah, p. 7$). 2. Although a number of scholars have emended the MT to 'improve' the parallelism, the MT presents no real problems and can be retained without emendation. See Rudolph, Micha, p. 107; Hillers, Micah, p. 75. Allen points out the occurrence of this phrase in Isa. 23.12 (Micah, p. 36, n. 15). 3. Some have emended 'ammi to 'immo and attached the word to the preceding verse (Mays, Micah, p. 128; Rudolph, Micha, p. 107). Nothing necessitates or justifies such an emendation, however. 4. Evidently the beginning of the line is either lost or, more likely, the command 'Remember what happened' is implied. Proposed reconstructions are surveyed by
162
(6)
(7)
(8)
(9)
(10) (11)
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis in order that you may acknowledge the righteous acts of Yahweh.' With what should I come before Yahweh, and bow down before God on high? Shall I come before Him with whole burnt offerings, with calves a year old? Will Yahweh be pleased with thousands of rams, with ten thousand rivers of oil? Shall I give my first-born for my transgression— the fruit of my body for the sin of my life? He has told you, O man, what is good. And what is Yahweh seeking from you, but that you establish justice, love kindness,1 and walk wisely2 with your God? The voice of Yahweh calls to the city (and wise is the one who looks for your name!).3 Listen! A rod—and who has appointed it again?4 Can I tolerate5 in the house of the wicked6 treasures of wickedness and the cursed scant ephah? Shall I approve one with false scales,
J.M.P. Smith (Micah, p. 122) and Killers (Micah, p. 76). 1. No single word adequately translates the Hebrew term hesed. See the discussion below, The Rhetorical Situation'. 2. The Hebrew term hasenea' occurs in other texts apparently with the meaning 'cautiously' or 'wisely'. See the discussion in J.P. Hyatt, 'On the Meaning and Origin of Micah 6.8', ATR 34 (1952), pp. 232-39. 3. This line interrupts the flow of thought and may well be a gloss. On its possible significance see the discussion under 'Historical Possibilities' below. There is no need to emend the MT since it is understandable. See Margolis, Micah, pp. 65-66. 4. The MT is difficult but understandable and extensive emendation is not required. The proposed translation assumes a pause after sime'u and includes the first word of v. 10 with the last phrase of 9b. For a discussion of this translation see below, 'The Rhetorical Situation'. 5. Some have suggested that ha'is can be understood as a form of hayes (Killers, Micah, p. 80; Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 128, n. 8). The point of the resulting question is unclear, however, and there is a lack of parallelism with the following line and no clear progression to the following questions. It is thus preferable to emend to ha'essah. See Renaud, Formation, pp. 328-29; B. Duhm, 'Anmerkungen zu den Zwolfpropheten', ZAW31 (1911), p. 90; Lindblom, Micha, p. 116. 6. It is not necessary or justified to emend bet to bat since the MT is understandable.
5. 'And Who Has Appointed It Again?': Micah 6.1-7.7 (12)
(13) (14)
(15)
(16)
163
and a bag of deceitful weights? O you whose1 rich ones are filled with violence and whose leaders speak lies, whose tongue is deceitful in their mouths. Indeed I have made you sick with smiting,2 making you desolate on account of your sins. You shall eat, but not be satisfied, and you shall take in, but be consumed by dysentery.3 And you will rescue, but will not escape, and whoever would flee, I will give to the sword. You will sow, but you will not reap; you will tread olives, but you will not anoint yourself with oil. You will tread grapes, but you will not drink wine. For the statutes of the house of Omri are observed,4 and all the works of the house of Ahab; and you5 have walked according to their counsel. Thus61 turn you into a wasteland, and make her leaders into something to hiss at;
1. A majority of commentators understand the antecedent of 'User to be 'city' in v. 9, and a variety of proposals, none very convincing, have been put forth to rearrange these verses. See Killers, Micah, p. 80; Mays, Micah, p. 143; Renaud, Formation, p. 330. The proposed translation follows Luker who argues that 'aser brings the listener back to the 'city' of v. 9: 'These verses are not out of order as is commonly argued, though the logic is not Western, but Hebrew-poetic' (Doom and Hope, p. 128, n. 10). 2. Most emend to read with the LXX, 'I have begun to smite...' The MT can be retained, however. Allen points to the 'idiomatic juxtaposition of the two roots for "be sick" and "strike" in Jer. 10.19; 14.17; 30.12; Nah. 3.19...' as justification for retaining the MT (Micah, p. 376, n. 58). 3. The meaning of this verse is obscure and the versions provide little help. The above translation follows that proposed by Albert Ehrman, 'A Note on Micah VI, 14', VT 23 (1973), pp. 103-5. For a survey of proposed readings see Renaud, Formation, pp. 331-34, and Margolis, Micah, pp. 65-66. 4. The MT third, masculine singular is to be understood as the impersonal. See Allen, Micah, p. 376, n. 3. 5. Luker notes that the alternation between the singular and the plural is not unusual when addressing a general audience (Doom and Hope, p. 129, n. 14). 6. This reading follows Luker who understands the first word of the line to be the lema'an of result (Doom and Hope, p. 129, n. 15).
164
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
(7.1)
(2)
(3)
(4)
and she shall bear the scorn of my people. Woe is me! For I have become as after the summer fruit has been gathered,1 after the vineyard has been gleaned. There is no cluster to eat, no ripe fig which my appetite desires. The righteous one has perished from the land and there is none righteous among mortals. All of them lie in wait for blood; each hunts his brother with a net. Their hands are good at doing evil;2 The prince and also the ruler ask for a bribe,3 and the great one speaks the evil desire of his soul; and they twist it together.4 The best of them is like a briar bush;5 the most upright is like a hedge.6 The day of your watchmen, of your divine visitation has come; now their confusion7 is at hand.
1. The MT is to be retained since the particle of comparison often has a temporal sense. See J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 140; Renaud, Formation, p. 347; Allen, Micah, p. 383, n. 1; Bo Reicke, 'Liturgical Traditions in Mic 7', HTR 60 (1967), pp. 352-53. 2. The MT is awkward but the meaning is clear. 3. Rather than assume that part of this verse is missing it is better to take uhasopet as a second subject to the verb. See Renaud, Formation, pp. 346-47. 4. The verb 'dbat is a hapax legomenon so its precise meaning is uncertain. Nevertheless, its possible derivation from 'abot (rope) suggests a meaning such as 'weave' or 'twist'. Later rabbinic interpretation understood the verb in this way. I have assumed the meaning 'weave' and taken the pronominal suffix as an indefinite neuter object. See Margolis, Micah, p. 71. 5. The superlative is expressed by the pronomial suffix. See Williams, Hebrew Syntax, p. 17. 6. Although somewhat awkward, the MT is not ungrammatical and parallelism with the preceding line makes the sense clear. See Renaud, Formation, pp. 350-51. 7. The suffixes are supported by the versions and should be retained. As noted above, changes of pronouns are not unusual in addressing a general audience. See Allen, Micah, p. 387; Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 131, n. 9.
5. 'And Who Has Appointed It Again?': Micah 6.1-7.7 (5)
(6)
(7)
165
Do not rely on a neighbor; do not trust a friend; From her who lies in your bosom guard the door of your mouth. For a son treats a father like a fool, daughter rebels against her mother, daughter-in-law against mother-in-law, And the enemies of a person are those in his own house. But as for me—I will watch for Yahweh; I will hope in the God who saves me. My God shall hear me.
Unity and Date Mic. 6.1-7.7 is generally divided into at least three independent units: 6.1-8 (a rib); 6.9-16 (an oracle of judgment); and 7.1-7 (a lament).1 There are, of course, a number of scholars who offer various subdivisions of these three units.2 Although at least three different genres are present in this material, a number of factors in the rhetorical situation appear to define Mic. 6.1-7.7 as a single speech unit. In particular, throughout this material a breakdown in the social order is presupposed in which even the most basic social obligations are being neglected. Mic. 6.1-8 addresses a situation in which there is an emphasis on the sacrificial cult concurrent with a neglect of basic obligations to justice, kindness, and obedience. Similarly, Mic. 6.9-16 presupposes a situation in which justice is lacking and the people walk not with their God, but according to the statutes of Omri and Ahab. It is this same absence of basic social obligations that the prophet laments in 7.1-7, where we are told the righteous one (hasid) has perished from the land, the rulers of society are conspirators, and family relationships are destroyed. 1. J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 129; B. Stade, 'Streiflichter auf die Entstehung der jetzigen Gestalt der alttestamentlichen Prophetenschriften', ZAW 23 (1903), p. 168; Vuilleumier, Michee, p. 75; Allen, Micah, p. 363; Wolff, Micah, pp. 168, 188, 202-3; Renaud, Formation, pp. 301, 318, 340; Killers, Micah, pp. 77, 85, 88. 2. Lescow divides chapter 6 into four units: 1-5; 6-8; 9-12; 13-16 ('Redaktionsgeschichtliche Analyse von Micha 6-7', p. 183). Mays sees three units in 6 (2-5; 6-8; 9b-15) and understands 7.1-6 to be original with 7.7 a later addition (Micah, pp. 10-11). Wolfe also subdivides 6.1-8 into two units: 1-5, 6-8 (Micah, p. 936).
166
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
While the motif of the breakdown of the social order unites 6.1-7.7 into a single discourse, this material is distinguished from what precedes and follows by a number of factors. The preceding material was built upon Davidic and Zion traditions which are lacking in 6.1-7.7. Moreover, 4.9-5.14 expects the defeat of the nations laying siege to Jerusalem. In contrast, nothing in 6.1-7.7 suggests that the nations will be defeated by the besieged. Indeed, 6.1-7.7 assumes judgment upon an unnamed city and the triumph of that city's enemies. Mic. 6.1-7.7 is also separated from the preceding by a clear new beginning in 6.1. Luker has drawn attention to possible connections between 5.14 and 6.1 and has suggested that these connections show that 6.1-7.7 belongs with the previous material as part of a single unit. 1 The link with preceding material, however, is nothing more than the repetition of the word 'hear' (sam'a). Since the word in 5.14 clearly means 'obey' while in 6.1 it functions as a summons to hear, the connection is at best superficial. It therefore seems more likely that the summons to hear in 6.1 marks the beginning of a new unit. Mic. 6.1-7.7 is also separated from the material that follows in 7.820 by many factors. First, in 6.1-8 Yahweh contends with his people, while in 7.8-20 Yahweh is expected to contend on behalf of Israel. Second, within 6.1-7.7 a preliminary judgment has already come, but 6.11-12 makes it clear that the prophet expects more judgment to follow. In contrast, in Mic. 7.8-20 the prophet looks beyond possibl destruction to some sort of divine intervention and restoration. Moreover, in 6.16 the city is to be put to shame, while in 7.16 the nations are to be made ashamed of their deeds. Finally, 7.7 can be understood as a conclusion to the prophet's lament which began in 7.1. A number of scholars have noted the change in tone between 7.6 and 7.7 and have suggested that 7.7 actually begins a new unit.2 In fact, the change in tone from pessimism to optimism is typical of laments3 and the beginning of v. 7 suggests continuation of the preceding material. Finally, while some lament
1. Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 185. 2. Hermann Gunkel, The Close of Micah, a Prophetical Liturgy', in What Remains of the Old Testament (New York: Macmillan, 1928), pp. 115-49; O. Eissfeldt, 'Ein Psalm aus Nord-Israel; Micha 7, 7-20', ZDMG 112 (1962), p. 264; J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 145. 3. Allen, Micah, p. 383. See Pss. 5; 13; 22; 31; 55; 71.
5. 'And Who Has Appointed It Again?': Micah 6.1-7.7
167
psalms do begin with an expression of trust similar to that of v. 7, Lindblom has noted that a number of psalms also begin with the mention of an enemy as in v. 8 (Pss. 3; 35; 59; 79).' Thus the syntactical continuity with the preceding material and the function of v. 7 as a typical conclusion to a lament suggests that a break should be made between Mic. 7.7 and 7.8. As is the case with Mic. 4.9-5.14, a number of scholars argue that all or a large part of the material in Mic. 6.1-7.7 could not have originated in the eighth century BCE. Although it is neither possible nor necessary to examine all of the arguments for a post-eighthcentury dating of this material, a number of the arguments must be considered. First, it is argued that Mic. 6.1-8 cannot be Mican since the purpose and situation presupposed by this unit is quite different from the 'authentic' oracles in Micah 1-3.2 In particular, the complaint of the audience that Yahweh has 'wearied' them stands in sharp contrast to the confidence which Micah's audience placed in Yahweh (Mic. 2.7; 3.11). In addition, the purpose of Micah 1-3 is to proclaim judgment while the purpose of 6.1-7.7 is to bring all Israel to a knowledge of Yahweh's righteous deeds. It is also noted that Micah 1-3 consists of concrete complaints and settings in contrast to the more general instruction found in Mic. 6.1-8. Second, a few scholars have interpreted the reference to 'man' ('adani) in Mic. 6.8 as an example of the universalizing and individualizing tendencies of the post-exilic period.3 They thus conclude that not only did Mic. 6.1-8 not originate in the eighth century, but also that the oracle must be post-exilic. The most important considerations for a dating of Mic. 6.1-8 are its similarities in style and vocabulary to Deuteronomistic paraenesis and the longer speeches of the Deuteronomistic history.4 For example, the word 'ransom' (v. 4) is used for the exodus in Deut. 7.8; 13.6; 9.26; 15.15; 21.8; 24.18; 2 Sam. 7.23 and a few other supposedly late texts. Also, the phrase 'house of bondage' is a phrase commonly found in 1. Cited in Allen, Micah, p. 383. 2. Mays, Micah, p. 130; Wolff, Micah, p. 169. 3. Lescow, Micha 6, 6-8: Studien zu Sprache, Form undAuslegung (Arbeiten zur Theologie 1/25; Stuttgart: Calwer Verlag, 1966), p. 57; J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 124. 4. In particular see Mays, Micah, p. 130; Wolff, Micah, pp. 172-79.
168
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
Deuteronomistic material (Deut. 7.8; 13.6) and the expression 'in order to know' (Mic. 6.5) is found only in the Deuteronomistic history (Josh. 4.24; Judg. 3.2; 1 Kgs 8.60) and Ezek. 38.16. Moreover, the call to remember, coupled with the motif of salvation history in order to enforce Israel's relation to Yahweh, is a typical feature of Deuteronomic paraenesis (e.g. Deut. 5.15; 7.18; 8.2; 9.7; 15.15; 16.3; 24.9, 18, 22). Finally, the phrase 'Shittim to Gilgal' (Mic. 6.5) refers to the events recorded by the Deuteronomistic historian (Josh. 3-5). Wolff has found particularly close similarities between Mic. 6.1-8 and the structure, motifs, vocabulary and style of three of the longer speeches of the Deuteronomistic historian.1 Specifically, 1 Sam. 12.6, like Mic. 6.1-8, includes references to the righteous acts of Yahweh, the 'sending' of Moses and Aaron to 'go up' from the land of Egypt, and references to the king of Moab. The second speech, Josh. 24.2-15, includes references to the sending of Moses and Aaron, and refers to 'Baalam, son of Beor', Balak, and the 'house of bondage'. The final speech, Deut. 10.12-22, contains striking structural and vocabulary parallels to Mic. 6.8. As impressive as these arguments appear, they are not to be accepted without close scrutiny. First, it is extremely difficult to deny authenticity based on style and the situation presupposed by the speech. Obviously, both the message and the style would vary according to the situation and the audience being addressed. Underlying the attempt to deny this material to Micah is the questionable assumption that Micah was only active for a short period of time and could not have proclaimed anything but unconditional judgment. The second argument, that the word 'adam represents simultaneously a universalizing and individualizing tendency of the post-exilic age, is simply not persuasive. An examination of all the occurrences of 'adam reveals that the word could be used in even the oldest sources in an inclusive sense: 'The use of the word 'adam in the Old Testament presents one of the strongest evidences for ancient Israelite universalism'.2 In addition, as we shall see, it is possible that in Mic. 6.8 'adam refers not to humanity in general nor to every Israelite, but to a particular individual. While there are undeniable similarities with the Deuteronomistic 1. Wolff, Micah, pp. 170-72. 2. F. Maaz, 'adham', TDOT, I, p. 83.
5. 'And Who Has Appointed It Again ?': Micah 6.1-7.7
169
speeches, it is difficult to draw conclusions about the date of Mic. 6.18 based on these similarities. Unfortunately, the date and origin of the traditions and sources that ultimately produced Deuteronomy and the Deuteronomistic history are far from certain. Some have now concluded that the school that produced Deuteronomy had its beginnings in the late eighth century BCE.1 Blenkinsopp has even suggested that the preaching of Micah himself contributed to the rise of this school.2 While certainty is not possible, it is quite probable that the Deuteronomistic school has roots that go back into the eighth century. In addition, at places the vocabulary of Mic. 6.1-8 differs in important ways from typical Deuteronomistic speech. For example, where Wolff sees striking similarities between Mic. 6.8 and Deut. 10.12, Renaud notes several significant differences in vocabulary.3 First, in place of the terms sa'al and me'immak, Micah uses the words daras and mimm?ka. Second, Deut. 10.12 uses the phrase 'walk in the ways of God' while the corresponding phrase in Micah is 'walk with your God'. Renaud also correctly observes that the emphases of the two texts differ: the emphasis of Deut. 10.12 is theological while Mic. 6.8 emphasizes the ethical. Renaud points to some other differences between Mic. 6.1-8 and Deuteronomic texts. The phrase 'house of bondage' is not found parallel to 'land of Egypt' except in Deut. 13.6. Yet even here, it is important to note that Micah uses the verb 'alah, while Deut. 13.6 uses the verb yasa' which in Deuteronomy is always used with the expression 'house of bondage'. This use of a different verb with the same phrase may be significant since it has been argued that the verb 'alah is a characteristic term of pre-Deuteronomistic material.4 Indeed, the phrase 'house of bondage' is found in pre-Deuteronomistic texts 1. Hillers, Micah, p. 79; E.W.Nicholson, Deuteronomy and Tradition (Philadelphia: Fortress Press, 1967). H. Spieckermann (Juda unter Assur in der Sargonidenzeit (Gottingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 1982) argues for the formation of the deuteronomistic school in the early seventh century. D.N. Freedman ('Deuteronomistic History', IDBSup, p. 227) and N. Lohfink ('Deuteronomy', IDBSup, p. 229) both point to the eighth century under Hezekiah as a possible time of origin of the Deuteronomistic school. 2. J. Blenkinsopp, A History of Prophecy in Israel (Philadelphia: Westminster Press, 1983), pp. 143-46. 3. Renaud, Formation, pp. 319-26. 4. T.R. Hobbes, 'Amos 3,lb and 2,10', ZAW 81 (1969), pp. 384-87.
170
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
accompanied by the verb 'aldh rather than the typical Deuteronomic verb, yasa' (Exod. 13.3, 4). In light of his insightful observations, it is curious that Renaud does not go beyond the tentative suggestions that Mic. 6.1-8 is pre-exilic, and was possibly composed in Judah after the introduction of the law code of Deuteronomy.1 Actually, the differences he has noted lend support to the possibility that Mic. 6.1-8 is not only pre-exilic, but also pre-Deuteronomistic. In light of the differences between Mic. 6.1-8 and typical Deuteronomistic speech, and in light of the possibility that the school which produced Deuteronomy had its origins in the eighth century, the probability must be left open that this oracle does in fact date to the time of Micah. Mic. 6.9-16 has been assigned to a time later than Micah based upon considerations of vocabulary and possible historical allusions within the text. First, it is noted that it was not until the time of Jeremiah that Jerusalem was referred to as 'the city' (e.g. Jer. 6.6; 8.16; 17.24; Ezek. 4.3; 5.2; 7.15).2 Second, certain phrases also seem to presuppose the time of Jeremiah. The phrase 'give to the sword' in Mic. 6.14 is found in Jer. 15.9, and the phrase 'a horror, a thing to be hissed at' (Mic. 6.16) occurs in Jer. 19.8; 25.9, 18 and 29.18.3 Third, the passage could allude to the situation during the Babylonian siege of Jerusalem. The supposed reference to a citizen's assembly in Mic. 6.9 may presuppose the Babylonian crisis when no king ruled.4 In addition, the phrase 'I have begun to smite you' in Mic. 6.14 is also interpreted as a reference to the Babylonian crisis around 600 BCE.5 Finally, Mays has asserted that the literary setting and distance from the certain authentic material in the book of Micah argue against the authenticity of Mic. 6.9-16.6 The arguments for a late dating of Mic. 6.9-16 are quite weak, however. In the first place, it is not certain that 'the city' refers to Jerusalem. As we shall see below, there are a number of factors which suggest that 'the city* in Mic. 6.9 is Samaria rather than Jerusalem. In addition, one would hardly assume that such a general expression as 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6.
Renaud, Formation, pp. 319-26. Wolff, Micah, p. 190; Jeremias, 'Die Deutung', p. 342. Wolff, Micah, p. 190. Mays, Micah, p. 145. Wolff, Micah, p. 190. Mays, Micah, p. 144.
5. 'And Who Has Appointed It Again?': Micah 6.1-7.7
171
'the city' could have had a specific time of origin. Second, similarities of two phrases to passages in Jeremiah hardly demand that Mic. 6.916 derives from the time of Jeremiah. Moreover, neither of the two phrases finds exact parallels in Jeremiah. The apparent allusions to a Babylonian siege are actually quite problematic. First, both of the alleged allusions to the Babylonian crisis are derived from emendations of the text which are not required. In addition, even if these emendations are accepted it is not clear that they must refer only to the events associated with the fall of Jerusalem in 586. Finally, the assertion that Mic. 6.9-16 is literarily distant from the 'authentic' oracles of Micah is valid only if one assumes a priori that the authentic material of Micah is found only in Micah 1-3. Moreover, even if one assumes that Mican material is found only in Micah 1-3, one cannot ignore the fact that Mic. 6.9-16 is similar in content and spirit to the oracles of judgment in the early chapters of the book. The lack of compelling evidence for a later date, and the similarity to Micah 1-3 thus open the possibility of assigning Mic. 6.9-16 to the time of Micah.1 Finally, the material in Mic. 7.1-7 has been denied to the time of Micah. James L. Mays has claimed that the lament in Mic. 7.1-6 'expresses the anguish of a hasid (faithful one) at circumstances which are probably those of the late exilic or post-exilic community'.2 In addition, Wolff has suggested that the style of speech and subject matter of Mic. 7.1-6 are found mainly in the early exilic times, but especially in Trito-Isaiah (Isa. 57.1-2; 59.4-8; Jer. 9.1-5; 12.6).3 Once again, there are several serious problems with these arguments for a late date. It is certainly not clear that the breakdown in the social order presupposed by Mic. 7.1-7 dates to the post-exilic community. A general depiction of social chaos could apply to any number of situations in Israel's history, including the traumatic events of the last half of the eighth century.4 In addition, it is difficult to 1. A date in the time of Micah is supported by Allen, Micah, p. 250; Killers, Micah, p. 82; Renaud, Formation, p. 342; Wolfe, Micah, p. 941; Lindblom, Micha, p. 150. 2. Mays, Micah, pp. 31, 150. 3. Wolff, Micah, p. 204. 4. J.T. Willis suggests that the social chaos is a reflection of conditions in the northern kingdom from the time of Zechariah to Hoshea ('A Reapplied Prophetic Hope Oracle', VTSup 26 [1974], p. 70). Eissfeldt suggests that the catastrophe of
172
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
make any firm conclusions based on similarities of style and content. The language used in Mic. 7.1-7 and later sources appears to be stereotyped descriptions found in even quite ancient, non-Israelite texts that depict the collapse of social order.1 Leslie Allen is thus justified in his assertion that Mic. 7.1-7 'reveals no features which do not fit with Micah and his time'.2 The Rhetorical Situation Objective Factors A careful reading of Mic. 6.1-7.7 can reveal the identity, attitudes, actions and circumstances of the audience Micah addresses. In particular, four objective factors seem to have shaped the discourse. First, the speech assumes a time when catastrophe in the form of a military invasion appears to be imminent. Mic. 7.4b reveals that immediate disaster is expected: 'The day of your watchmen, of your divine visitation has come; now is their confusion at hand'. It may be that the 'day of your watchmen' refers to the destruction proclaimed by the prophets, who were often described as the watchmen of Israel.3 On the other hand, the verse may simply be a metaphorical designation for the time of battle or siege. It was the function of the watchmen to warn a city of approaching danger and also to report on the progress of military encounters (1 Sam. 14.16; 2 Sam. 13.34; 18.2427; 2 Kgs 9.17-20). The 'day of your watchmen' may thus be a reference to a time when the watchmen of the city must sound the alarm to warn of approaching danger and provide reports concerning the progress of combat in the field. If this interpretation of Mic. 7.4 is
732 or 722 is presupposed ('Ein Psalm aus Nord', p. 264). 1. Egyptian and Babylonian parallels are cited by Killers (Micah, pp. 85-86), Reicke ('Liturgical Traditions', pp. 358-61), and M. Weinfeld, 'Ancient Near Eastern Patterns in Prophetic Literature', VT 27 (1977), pp. 178-95. For later Rabbinic sources see Margolis, Micah, pp. 72-73. 2. Allen, Micah, p. 250. Others who conclude that Micah 7.1-7 is Mican include Killers, Micah, p. 85; van Hoonacker, Les douze petits prophetes, p. 353; Sellin, Das Zwolfprophetenbuch, p. 260; Lindblom, Micha, p. 124; Wolfe, Micah, p. 942; Rudolph, Micha, p. 126. For others see Schibler, Le Prophete Michee, pp. 66-67, n. 10. 3. Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 201; Margolis, Micah, p. 71.
5. 'And Who Has Appointed It Again ?': Micah 6.1-7.7
173
correct, the speaker sees that destruction from a military assault is about to begin. Another suggestion that a military invasion is imminent may be found in Mic. 6.9b. Most commentators, citing the LXX, have concluded that the MT in 9b and lOa is a corruption of a Vorlage which originally read 'Hear, O tribe and assembly of the city'.1 The evidence from the LXX does not presuppose the word 'assembly' and although the noun 'city' is present in the LXX, it may be nothing more than an interpretation of the feminine pronominal suffix on the verb ya'ad.2 It is also important to note that 'tribe' is only one possible interpretation of matteh. The noun also has the meaning 'rod [of punishment]'.3 A few commentators have accepted this latter interpretation of matteh and have concluded that the subsequent feminine pronominal suffix designates the city referred to in 9a.4 It is possible, however, that the feminine suffix should be understood as a neuter pronoun which takes the masculine noun matteh as its antecedent.5 The entire verse could thus be translated: 'Hear! A rod—and who has appointed it again?' If this translation of v. 9b is correct one may reasonably assume that the 'rod' could be identified as Assyria since the prophet Isaiah, a contemporary of Micah, also designated Assyria as the rod of Yahweh's anger (Isa. 10.5). If Assyria is to be identified as the rod that Yahweh has appointed to punish Israel, there can be little doubt that the judgment which Micah's audience expects is a military invasion or siege. That destruction is expected in the near future is also suggested by the so-called 'futility curses' in Mic. 6.14-15. In particular, v. 15 indicates that disaster will come quickly: before that which is sown
1. Wellhausen, Kleinen Propheten, p. 128; Allen, Micah, p. 375; Hillers, Micah, p. 80; Mays, Micah, p. 143; J.M.P. Smith, Micah, pp. 130-31. Similarly, Renaud assumes a haplography of the y and repoints MT to read 'and whoever assembles in the city' (Formation, p. 328). This latter emendation is also accepted by Wolff, Micah, p. 186. 2. See K. Jeppesen, The verb ya'ad in Nahum 1.10 and Micah 6.9', Bib 65 (1984), p. 574. 3. BOB, p. 641. 4. Jeppesen, 'The verb ya'ad', p. 573; Rudolph, Micha, pp. 114-15. 5. Rudolph, Micha, p. 115; Margolis, Micah, p. 66.
174
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
can be harvested or that which is harvested can be enjoyed, destruction will overtake the nation. It should be noted that the approach of disaster is evident not only to the prophet, but also to the audience. Mic. 7.4-7 depicts a breakdown in the order of society which would accompany the approach of war. More importantly, the accusing questions of Mic. 6.6-7 suggest a sense of desperation. In an effort to gain the favor of Yahweh increasingly costly sacrifices, perhaps including child sacrifice, have been offered or planned. Some have suggested that the question regarding child sacrifice in Mic. 6.7 does not necessarily imply that such human sacrifice was being practiced when this prophetic word was delivered.1 Rather, the inclusion of human sacrifice in this list of offerings is meant to demonstrate the shocking and absurd outcome of the attempt to win Yahweh's approval through increasingly costly sacrifices. Although certainty cannot be attained, the possibility must remain open that the prophet is addressing the practice of child sacrifice. 2 Kings claims that human sacrifice was practiced during the reigns of Ahaz and Mannasseh in Judah (2 Kgs 16.3; 21.6) and in Israel near the end of the northern kingdom (2 Kgs 17.17). In addition, Hos. 13.2 may allude to the practice of human sacrifice.2 If, as I have argued, Mic. 6.1-6 is pre-exilic, then it is not unlikely that the prophet is referring to the practice of child sacrifice, which in either theory or practice is the outcome of increasingly costly sacrifice. Human sacrifice apparently tended to appear at times of great distress and adversity.3 Certainly a non-Israelite example of adverse circumstances prompting human sacrifice is found in 2 Kgs. 3.27. It is quite possible that Ahaz's sacrifice of his son was a reaction to the distress caused by the siege of Jerusalem. Similarly, it has been suggested that the human sacrifices mentioned by Jeremiah may have resulted from the Babylonian crisis.4 Even within Mic. 6.1-8, the offering of the first-born appears to be a response to distress and a great sense of sin and guilt ('the sin of my life'). In fact, if Mic. 6.17.7 is a unified speech, a cause for extreme distress may be found in 1. 2. 3. 4.
Allen, Micah, p. 369; Hillers, Micah, p. 78; Wolff, Micah, pp. 178-79. See the discussion by Wolff, Hosea, p. 225. See Gray, Kings, p. 631. Gray, Kings, pp. 631, 638.
5. 'And Who Has Appointed It Again?': Micah 6.1-7.7
175
the expectation that a harsh and severe situation is about to fall upon the audience. The elaborate and costly sacrifices may thus be a desperate response to the imminent invasion. In any case, the questions clearly betray the attitude that extraordinary measures are necessary to win the favor of Yahweh. While disaster appears to be imminent, there are also indications that the audience to whom Micah speaks has recently experienced great misfortune. In particular, in v. 13 Yahweh declares, "Therefore, I have made you sick with smiting, making you desolate on account of your sins'. Moreover, the statement in v. 9 that the rod of punishment has been appointed again implies that similar punishment has already been experienced by the audience. Finally, the question in v. 3 may indicate that the people have suffered for a prolonged period of time since the audience apparently feels 'wearied'. The speech thus reflects a situation in which catastrophe has recently been experienced but is also expected to recur in the near future. A third factor which has prompted the prophet to speak is the failure of some in his audience to fulfill their responsibilities (6.8). The first and last requirements of Mic. 6.8 are fairly clear. To 'establish justice' is 'to uphold what is right according to the tradition of Yahweh's will, both in legal proceedings and in the conduct of life'.1 'To walk wisely with your God', involves obedience and 'the employment of discretion, prudence, and wisdom in the religious life'.2 Unlike the other two terms, the exact meaning of kindness (hesed) has been the subject of much discussion and disagreement. Nelson Glueck's study of the occurrences of the word hesed in the Old Testament led him to conclude that it refers to the conduct demanded of both parties in a covenant relationship.3 Consequently, it would follow that the term in Mic. 6.8 refers to Israel's failure to do those things required by her covenant with Yahweh. Such an interpretation is open to question, however. First, Glueck's 1. Mays, Micah, p. 142; see similar comments by Wolff (Micah, p. 181) and Allen (Micah, p. 372). 2. Hillers, Micah, p. 78. Also see Mays, Micah, p. 142. 3. N. Glueck, Das Wort hesed im alttestamentlichen Sprachgebrauche als menschliche und gottliche gemeinschaftgemasse Verhaltungsweise (Giessen: Topelmann, 1927) = E.L. Epstein (ed.), Hesed in the Bible (trans. A. Gottschalk; Cincinnati: Hebrew Union College Press, 1967).
176
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
thesis has been called into question by the fact that in both secular and sacred contexts in the Old Testament the term refers not to conduct required or demanded by a covenantal relationship but to 'goodness or kindness.. .beyond what is expected or deserved, based solely on ready magnanimity toward others'.1 In a recent survey of the occurrences of hesed in the Old Testament, Francis Andersen reached the conclusion that 'the heart of the matter is a generous and beneficial action, not at all required'.2 In addition, it has been noted that only in a very few texts is hesed explicitly connected with the term or concept of a covenant.3 Even in these cases, however, it can be argued that an act of hesed results in the making of a covenant and is not the conduct required by a prior covenant. 4 Thus, both the nature of the usage of hesed in the Old Testament and the lack of a specific connection to a covenant concept raise doubts that the term must always refer to covenant obligations of conduct. While hesed may not be the conduct required by a specific covenant, there is no denying that in Mic. 6.8 it is stated that Yahweh requires hesed. It is thus possible to suggest that in a paradoxical way hesed is both the conduct Yahweh expects of his people and at the same time a mode of conduct involving spontaneous, unexpected acts of kindness. Wolff summarizes the combination of spontaneity and obligation that hesed entails: the word 'denotes the kindhearted action that, by spontaneous love and the faithful meeting of responsibilities, creates or establishes a sense of community'.5 If hesed is in fact kindness beyond what is normally expected or deserved, then it follows that Mic. 6.8 requires not acts of hesed directed to Yahweh, but acts of kindness toward others. Zobel 1. H.J. Stoebe, 'Die Bedeutung des Wortes Hasad im Alten Testament', VT 2 (1952), pp. 244-54. A similar conclusion is reached by Buss, Hosea, pp. 106-7. 2. F.I. Anderson, 'Yahweh, the Kind and Sensitive God', in P.T. O'Brien and D.G. Peterson (eds.), God Who is Rich in Mercy (Grand Rapids: Baker, 1986), p. 44. Similar conclusions have been reached by M.V. Fox ('Jeremiah 2.2 and the "Desert Ideal'", CBQ 35 (1973), pp. 441-50) and R.C. Bailey (A Critical Investigation of 2 Samuel 10-12 and Its Implications for the So-Called Throne Succession Narrative (dissertation, Emory University, 1987), pp. 137-47). 3. A. Jepsen, 'Gnade und Barmherzigkeit im AT', KD 7 (1961), pp. 261-71. 4. For examples see Anderson, 'Yahweh', pp. 44-80. 5. Wolff, Hosea, p. 59.
5. 'And Who Has Appointed It Again ?': Micah 6.1-7.7
177
correctly points out that there cannot be 'any possibility that human beings...could repay Yahweh in turn the divine kindness they have experienced or do him an act of kindness'.1 This is not to say that Yahweh's hesed does not require of his people acts of kindness, however: 'God's kindness toward an individual places that individual in a new relationship with his neighbor, a relationship based on Yahweh's kindness; in his daily contacts with others he must keep the kindness he has experienced, he must practice righteousness and justice, kindness and mercy'.2 It is therefore likely that the hesed required by Yahweh's saving acts in Mic. 6.1-8 are deeds of kindness to other members of the community as a response to the deeds of kindness that Yahweh has shown (Mic. 6.3-5). Of whom is justice, kindness, and obedience required? Although the evidence is open to more than one interpretation, Mic. 6.8 may be addressed primarily to the reigning king. The vocative 'adam is generally taken to be a designation for any Israelite or for humanity in general. Such an interpretation is open to question, however. One may ask if it is reasonable to conclude that every Israelite, much less every mortal, was actually expected to 'establish justice' and 'love deeds of kindness'. Rather, the requirements found in Mic. 6.8 are similar to the responsibilities assumed by the king at his installation or at the celebration of his coronation. Not only in Israel, but also throughout the ancient Near East, kings were charged with the duty of upholding justice and dealing kindly with the poor and weak.3 Psalm 72 is a prayer that the king will 'judge thy people with righteousness and thy poor with justice' (bemispat, v. 2).4 Even more significant is Psalm 101, which may have been spoken by the king at the celebration of his coronation.5 The king vows to adhere to certain moral and religious standards and promises to follow a wise and perfect way. Significantly, these vows are introduced with the declaration, 'I will sing of kindness and justice' (hesed-umispai). It is reasonable to infer that the entire code 1. T. Zobel, 'hesed', TDOT, IV, p. 63; See also Andersen, 'Yahweh', p. 81. 2. Zobel, 'hesed', p. 63. See similar comments by Renaud, Formation, p. 298. 3. The Ugaritic legend of Keret makes it clear that the king was responsible for defending the poor and the widow (ANET, p. 149). See the discussion of the king's duties by S. Szikszai, 'King, Kingship', IDB, III, pp. 12-13. 4. See de Vaux, Ancient Israel, I, p. 111. 5. See Mowinckel, The Psalms in Israel's Worship I, pp. 65-67.
178
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
of conduct set forth for the king in Psalm 101 is summarized by the phrase mispat and hesed. One is thus led to the conclusion that hesed and mispat were viewed as the special responsibilities of the king. While exact parallels to Mic. 6.8 are lacking, the duties of the king enumerated in Psalms 72 and 101 may indicate that Mic. 6.8 was addressed to the king rather than each member of society. The term 'adam may thus be a circumlocution for the title 'king' rather than a designation for humanity in general. If this interpretation is correct, the phrase, 'he has declared to you what is good' may be an allusion to the instruction given to the king at the time of his installation.1 In addition, the question of vv. 6-7 could be a reference to sacrifices offered at the enthronement festival (cf. 1 Kgs 1.9). In any case, it seems likely that Mic. 6.6-8 addresses not society in general, but the king. Micah also holds other leaders responsible for the catastrophe which is about to overtake society. Mic. 6.12 is generally thought to be an accusation against the 'inhabitants' (yoseb) of the city. While this interpretation is possible, it should be noted that in some cases the term yoseb refers to the leaders of a city.2 Thus, Mic. 6.12 may accuse the rulers of the city of deceit and violence. It is generally assumed that vv. 10 and 11 show that the misdeeds with which the prophet is concerned include economic fraud accomplished through false weights and measures. The information in these verses must be evaluated carefully, however, since the obvious nature of the answer to these questions suggests that they are to be taken as 1. Mays (Micah, p. 141) suggests the prophet has in mind the teachings of earlier prophets. On the other hand Allen (Micah, p. 362, n. 6) believes the reference is to priestly instruction. Wolff (Micah, p. 179) points out that the oracle could refer to priestly prophetic and even Deuteronomic teaching. However, see 2 Kgs 14.11 where Joash at his coronation is handed the 'protocol' (ha'edut). Deut. 17.18 also makes reference to the king being given the law at the time of his enthronement. See de Vaux, Ancient Israel I, pp. 102-3. Babylonian and Egyptian sources indicate that the king was given instruction by the priest at the celebration of his enthronement (Mowinckel, The Psalms in Israel's Worship I, pp. 66-67). 2. P.M. Cross and D.N. Freedman ('The Song of Miriam', JNES 14 [1955], pp. 248-49) suggest that the noun has this meaning in Judg. 5.23. An extensive study of the term and its possible meaning of 'ruler' is found in N.K. Gottwald, The Tribes ofYahweh: A Sociology of the Religion of Liberated Israel (Maryknoll: Orbis Books, 1979), pp. 512-30. See also W.G.E. Watson, 'David Ousts the City Ruler of Jebus', VT 20 (1970), pp. 501-2.
5. 'And Who Has Appointed It Again?': Micah 6.1-7.7
179
leading questions. Obviously, Yahweh cannot approve of false weights or forget ill-gotten treasures. Neither, therefore, can he forget or approve of the violent and dishonest deeds of the leaders of the city which parallel those of dishonest commerce. A related accusation against the city (and thus against its leaders) is that it has kept the statutes of Omri and walked in the counsels of Ahab. Most commentators interpret this accusation as a reference to the legal and economic abuses attributed to Ahab in the story of Naboth's vineyard or as a reference to apostasy and idolatry as suggested by 2 Kgs 10.18; 21.3.l Certainly both of these are possible interpretations. Another possible interpretation should not be excluded. Under Omri and Ahab Israel reached the zenith of its power through a series of alliances with Phoenicia, Damascus and Judah.2 The marriage of Ahab to Jezebel no doubt reflects the alliance between Israel and Phoenicia. It may also be inferred from Assyrian inscriptions that one of the purposes of these ninth-century alliances was to counter the Assyrian military threat to the region. The precepts of Omri and statutes of Ahab can thus be a reference to the policy of alliances followed by Israel under these two kings. If so, the accusations against the city suggest that it has pursued international alliances intended to counteract Assyrian military might. Finally, the failure of leadership is evident in Mic. 7.3 which describes how the actions of the prince (sar), the judge (sopet) and the great one (hagadol) have contributed to the collapse of justice and order. The word sopet indicates one who exercises the legal function of rendering a judgment. Since the word sar is used for almost any official subject to the king it is impossible to know with certainty the particular kind of leader indicated by this term.3 Unfortunately, it is also impossible to know whether Micah meant to indicate a particular individual, a kind of official, or rulers in general by the word hagadol. In other texts the term refers to administrative officials who serve the king (2 Sam. 3.38; 2 Kgs 10.6). In any case these three 1. Killers, Micah, p. 82; Allen, Micah, p. 381. 2. For an assessment of the strength of Israel under Omri and Ahab see C.F. Whitley, The Deuteronomic Presentation of the House of Omri', VT2 (1952), pp. 137-51; Miller, 'The Elisha Cycle', pp. 441-55. 3. BDB, p. 978. Wolff notes that sar is a civilian or military leader, while the 'great one' may refer to high administrative officials (Micah, p. 206).
180
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
groups of leaders are singled out as responsible for the chaotic conditions in society. A final question that will influence the interpretation of Mic. 6.17.7 is the question of the identity of the city in 6.9-16. A majority of scholars has suggested that the city in question must be Jerusalem.1 As we have seen however, this assumption is based on highly questionable arguments and a doubtful emendation of the text. On the other hand, a number of commentators have argued that the city addressed in 6.9-16 is Samaria.2 Among the arguments for the identification of the city as Samaria, the most persuasive is the observation that the reference to Omri and Ahab would have been more significant for a north Israelite audience than an audience in Judah. One may also add that the lack of any reference to Davidic or Zion traditions in this material is striking and stands in contrast to other parts of the book of Micah which, in addressing Jerusalem, rely heavily upon such traditions (3.11; 4.1-4; 4.9-5.4). The reference to Omri and Ahab along with the absence of traditions associated with Jerusalem may thus indicate that the city in question in Mic. 6.9-16 is Samaria rather than Jerusalem. Subjective Factors The above consideration of the objective factors has indirectly touched on the subjective factors that shaped the discourse. The most important of these subjective factors include the prophet's own convictions concerning the reasons for judgment and the role of the sacrificial cult. First, the prophet is convinced that both the disasters that have come as well as those that are now coming are the just judgments of Yahweh. Mays notes that the question of v. 3 suggests that the people 'live in circumstances which have exhausted their patience and [they] hold YHWH responsible'.3 In contrast to the people who complain that Yahweh has wearied them, Micah suggests a clear cause and effect relationship between judgment and the actions of the leaders. Indeed, 1. For example, Mays, Micah, p. 148; Allen, Micah, p. 377; J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 131; Wolff, Micah, p. 190; Margolis, Micah, p. 65. 2. Van Hoonacker, Les douze petits prophetes, p. 351; Lindblom, Micha, p. 150; Eissfeldt, The Old Testament, p. 411; van der Woude, Micah, pp. 22223. For other references and a summary of arguments for a northern audience see Willis, 'Hope Oracle', pp. 64-76. 3. Mays, Micah, p. 133.
5. 'And Who Has Appointed It Again ?': Micah 6.1-7.7
181
Mic. 6.12-13 states that the judgment which has already come (v. 13) is a direct result of the deeds of violence and deceit of the rulers of the city. Another cause and effect relationship is established in v. 16 where it is stated that the city is to be made a wasteland because its inhabitants have kept the statutes of Omri. In any case, it is clear that, unlike his audience, Micah draws a clear connection between the coming judgment and the actions of the leaders of society. It is this contrast between the prophet's conviction that there are obvious, justifiable reasons for judgment and the people's conviction that Yahweh has unfairly wearied them that ultimately prompt Micah to speak. A second subjective factor is the prophet's attitude toward the sacrificial cult. Mic. 6.6-8 has often been understood as the prophet's rejection of the cult.1 Such an interpretation is questionable, however, since the sacrifices named in these verses are only the most costly and elaborate. The whole burnt offering was by its nature the most demanding sacrifice (see Lev. 9.3; 22.27), and the costliness of the sacrifice of rams and oil is intensified by the vast quantity of these items. Obviously, the giving of the first-born child represents the ultimate sacrifice in terms of its cost. What Micah is rejecting is not sacrifice per se, but the belief that Yahweh's favor is to be obtained by the offering of costly and elaborate sacrifices. In contrast to the attitude that Yahweh can be pleased through cultic means alone, the prophet is convinced that Yah wen's favor also demands the faithful execution of the responsibilities of leadership (6.8, 12, 16; 7.4). Goals and Strategy The factors in the rhetorical situation make it clear that Micah's task was to interpret a misfortune that was about to recur. The audience apparently believes that Yahweh has 'wearied' them without cause. In contrast, Micah understands that what pleases Yahweh is honest and faithful conduct by those in positions of power. The gulf between the point of view of the audience and the point of view of the prophet indicates that the prophet's task is to persuade his audience of his interpretation of the judgment while simultaneously refuting their interpretation of events. 1.
Killers, Micah, p. 78; Mays, Micah, p. 137.
182
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
To accomplish his task Micah takes a confrontational approach and casts his speech in the general form of a dispute. There is a consensus among commentators that Micah 6.1-8 in particular is a rib. While scholars do not agree on whether this form is derived from the secular, legal sphere, the cult, or is patterned after international treaties of the ancient Near East, it is generally agreed that the rib, as a prophetic lawsuit speech, is occasioned by Israel's violation of its covenant (presumably the Sinai covenant) with Yahweh.1 While these issues are too complex to deal with in detail in the present study the theory that Mic. 6.1-8 is a prophetic or covenant lawsuit appears doubtful. In a recent article Michael de Roche surveys the usages of the term rib in the Old Testament and concludes that it is a general term which only indicates that one party has a grievance against another.2 The dispute can be resolved either bilaterally (the two parties argue the case between themselves, perhaps even resorting to force) or trilaterally (a third party mediates the dispute or a judge decides the case). It is only appropriate to speak of a lawsuit when there is a trilateral resolution of a rib resulting in a binding decision by a judge. Mic. 6.1-8 is obviously not a lawsuit, but a dispute in which Yahweh as the harmed party 'takes it upon himself to seek an acceptable solution to his quarrel with Israel'.3 While de Roche suggests that the solution Yahweh seeks is found in the description of desired behavior, it is more likely that the actual resolution is found in the continuation of Yaweh's judgment upon Israel (vv. 9-16) since, as de Roche himself notes, force is indeed a way to resolve a bilateral dispute.4 1. The literature on this subject is vast. For a survey of each proposal with bibliographical references see D.R. Daniels, 'Is There a "Prophetic Lawsuit" Genre?' ZAW 99 (1987), pp. 339-60; K.Nielsen, Yahweh as Prosecutor and Judge: An Investigation of the Prophetic Lawsuit (Rib Pattern) (JSOTSup 9; Sheffield: JSOT Press, 1978); March, 'Prophecy', pp. 165-68. 2. Michael de Roche, 'Yahweh's Rib Against Israel: A Reassessment of the So-called "Prophetic Lawsuit" in the Pre-exilic Prophets', JBL 102 (1983), pp. 56374. 3. De Roche, 'Yahweh's Rib\ p. 570. 4. Goetze observes that the Hittites viewed warfare as a means of allowing the gods to decide a dispute between two countries: 'In other words, the controversy which had arisen between the two parties was considered as a legal case. Now, a
5. 'And Who Has Appointed It Again?': Micah 6.1-7.7
183
It is preferable to classify Mic. 6.1-16 as a dispute. It should be noted that the prophet does not identify or assume a specific YahwehIsrael covenant that has been violated. Certainly, the audience has failed to live up to well-known norms of conduct which Yahweh has revealed (6.8). It is unnecessary, however, to posit the violation of a specific, formal covenant similar to treaties of the ancient Near East. Mic. 6.1-7.7 may best be described as a dispute in which Yahweh as the harmed party accuses Israel of specific acts against him. The judgment that has overtaken the audience represents Yahweh's action to resolve the dispute. The entire speech may be outlined as follows: I.
II.
III.
IV.
Introduction A. General summons (6.la) B. Yahweh's charge to the prophet (6.1b) C. The prophet's announcement of the dispute (6.2) The elements of the dispute A. Implied accusation: Yahweh has wearied us (6.3) B. Yahweh's response: His deeds of kindness (6.4, 5) C. Implied accusation: It is virtually impossible to please Yahweh (6.6, 7) D. Prophet's response: Yahweh's requirements of justice, kindness and obedience are well known (6.8) Yahweh's resolution of the dispute A. Identification of speaker and addressee (6.9a) B. How Yahweh will resolve his dispute: A 'rod' of punishment has been appointed (6.9b) C. Justification of Yahweh's judgment (6.10-12) 1. Premise stated by leading questions: Yahweh cannot tolerate deceit and dishonesty (6.10-11) 2. Accusation: The city's inhabitants have practiced deceit and dishonesty (6.12) 3. Conclusion: Therefore judgment has come (6.13) D. Description of continuing effects of judgment (6.14-15) Recapitulation: Accusation and announcement of judgment
lawsuit between two ordinary individuals may turn out too difficult for the highest court to judge so that it must be turned over to the gods to decide by ordeal. In the same way, the lawsuit pending between two kings neither of whom conceded himself to be in the wrong must be brought before the gods who will decide by the ordeal of war' ('Warfare in Asia Minor', pp. 126-27).
184
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
V.
against the city (6.16) Epilogue (7.1-7) A. Description of situation and prophet's reaction (7.1-4a) B. Announcement that judgment has arrived (7.4b) C. Advice to audience (7.5-6) D. Prophet's exemplary faith (7.7)
Mic. 6.1-2 functions as an introduction to the entire speech. The repeated summons to hear as well as the announcement of the subject of the speech (6.2) intends to attract the attention of the audience.1 Whatever the exact significance, the calling of natural elements as witnesses adds a dramatic quality which holds the attention of the audience.2 These verses also fulfill the rhetorical function of establishing the relationship between the speaker and the audience. The audience is identified as the accused with whom Yahweh has a dispute. In contrast, 6.2 can best be understood as addressed to the prophet, charging him with the task of contending with Israel on behalf of Yahweh. Verse 2 thus functions to establish an adversarial relationship between the prophet and the audience. In addition, Mic. 6.2 serves as an ethical appeal since it establishes the prophet's authority and credentials. The above outline suggests that Mic. 6.3-8 can be understood as a description of the elements of the dispute. More precisely, these verses set forth the positions and attitudes of the participants in the rib. The use of dialogue in these verses heightens the dramatic effect and thus holds the attention of the audience.3 The opening question by Yahweh (v. 3) is a defensive question which is to be understood as a response to the people's attitude that Yahweh has wearied them. The use of the phrase 'my people' adds an 1. Some see v. la as a redactional addition meant to introduce the final chapters of the book (e.g., Mays, Micah, pp. 32, 128; Renaud, Formation, p. 308; WilliPlein, Vorformen, p. 97). The interpretation proposed here follows Lescow, who understands the multiple summons as a summons to the general audience, followed by a specific summons to the prophet ('Micha 6-7', p. 283). See also J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 119; Wellhausen, Kleinen Propheten, p. 143. 2. For a discussion of the function of the appeal to the natural elements see Daniels, 'Prophetic Lawsuit', pp. 356-68. Daniels' own conclusion is that 'heaven and earth are called upon as entities directly affected by the people's actions and not as judges or witnesses to a previous covenant' (p. 358). 3. For the dramatic effect of dialogue in Deutero-Isaiah see Gitay, Prophecy and Persuasion, p. 74.
5. 'And Who Has Appointed It Again ?': Micah 6.1-7.7
185
emotional appeal to Yahweh's defense by emphasizing the intimate nature of Israel's relationship with Yahweh. As Allen notes, the phrase contains 'a whole volume of reproof.1 The emotional impact is intensified by the repetition of questions, followed by a demand for an answer which compels the audience to become involved as active participants in the persuasive process. Yahweh's actual defense takes the form of a recitation of his deeds of kindness toward Israel, particularly the deliverance of Israel from foreign oppressors. This presentation of evidence concerning Yahweh's dealings with Israel functions as a rational appeal since it sets forth the facts so that the audience can evaluate them and reach their own conclusions. Instead of a direct response to Yahweh's questions or an analysis of the evidence, the prophet puts into the mouth of the audience a series of questions which demonstrate Israel's attitude that pleasing Yahweh was an impossibility. The questions are skillfully crafted and cast in the form of an 'entrance liturgy'.2 The use of a form familiar to the people serves to involve them in the speech. The prophet's conviction that present efforts to obtain Yahweh's favor are both desperate and misplaced is conveyed by increasing either the quantity or the costliness of the sacrifices in each succeeding question to the point of absurdity. This movement to increasingly costly and eventually absurd sacrifices suggests that the prophet is ridiculing the entire notion that Yahweh's favor can be obtained by elaborate sacrificial rituals. It is also possible that Micah is ridiculing the practice of human sacrifice as the absurd outcome of such a line of reasoning.3 Thus we should note that even while the prophet sets forth the people's complaint that Yahweh cannot be appeased, he ridicules that complaint. As one charged with the task of contending with Israel the prophet himself offers his own response to the complaint against Yahweh 1. Allen, Micah, p. 365. 2. For the function and purpose of the entrance liturgy see K. Koch, Tempeleinlassliturgien und Dekalog', in Studien zur Theologie des alttestamentlichen Ueberlieferung (Neukirchen-Vluyn: Neukirchener Verlag, 1961), pp. 45-64. That the prophet has adapted this familiar form is suggested by the fact that the vocabulary and content are not typical of the priestly entrance liturgy. See Millers, Micah, p. 78; Mays, Micah, p. 137. 3. On the effectiveness of ridicule as a rhetorical tool see above, p. 90 n. 1.
186
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
(v. 8). The response functions as an appeal to authority. As noted above, v. 8 may allude to the instruction or law which was given to the king at the time of his enthronement. In any case, Micah is not setting forth a new and unheard-of requirement; rather he is appealing to a teaching or tradition with which his audience was familiar. Any attempt by the audience to refute or reject the prophet's words is effectively cut short by the sudden announcement in v. 9 that Yahweh is speaking once again. The announcement that Yahweh is calling to the city and the command 'Hear!' focus the attention of the audience and add a new intensity and authority to the message. The unparalleled line in 9b is probably a rhetorical device meant to emphasize the content of the verse.1 The purpose of the question in 9b is to announce that the approaching disaster is Yahweh's just resolution of his dispute with his people. Verses 10-12 can be understood as a series of leading questions whose purpose is not to accuse, but to establish a premise. In each case the answer to the question is obvious: Yahweh cannot forget ill-gotten treasure, nor can he accept the use of unjust weights. In short, through these questions Micah has his audience assent to the basic principle that dishonesty, deceit and violence are violations of Yahweh's will. Using the basic principle to which they have assented, Micah then entraps his audience: 'Your rich are full of deceit...therefore I have made you sick... ' 2 Through such entrapment Micah is attempting to demonstrate for his audience a clear cause and effect relationship between their deeds and the judgment that has overtaken them. In so doing he successfully refutes the charge that Yahweh has wearied Israel without reasonable cause. Rather than end with the refutation of the complaint against Yahweh, Micah shocks his audience by announcing that judgment and its effects will not abate. The repetitive, formulaic nature of vv. 1415 heightens the emotional impact and paints a vivid picture of the allencompassing nature of the results of the coming judgment. In v. 16 Micah recapitulates his arguments, giving both accusations and reasons for judgment. Whatever the exact meaning of the reference to Omri and Ahab, it is clear that the prophet is inviting his audience 1. See Gitay, Prophecy and Persuasion, p. 106. 2. On the rhetoric of entrapment see Alter, The Art of Biblical Poetry, pp. 142-46.
5. 'And Who Has Appointed It Again ?': Micah 6.1-7.7
187
to view the inhabitants and rulers of the city in the same way they view the house of Omri. The reference to a once-great, but now extinct dynasty hints at the fate of the leaders and king of the city which will become a desolation. Finally, Mic. 7.1-7 can be understood as an epilogue. Classical writers noted that an epilogue should fulfill four functions.1 First, it should make the audience favorably inclined to the speaker and illdisposed to his opponents. Second, an epilogue should magnify those things in favor of the speaker while minimizing those things against his case. Third, it should have the appropriate emotional impact on the audience and, finally, it should refresh their memories. By the criteria of classical rhetoricians, Mic. 7.1-7 functions well as an epilogue. In these verses Micah emphasizes his sadness and despair at the moral collapse of society (7.1) as well as his faith in Yahweh (7.7). The advice he gives also presents him as one concerned about the welfare of his hearers. In short, the prophet here presents an ethical argument by showing himself to be an individual whose words can be trusted. Clearly the intention is to make the audience well-disposed toward Micah. Mic. 7.1-7 also magnifies the case against his opponents. Through the use of metaphor and simile Micah paints a vivid, haunting picture of a moral wasteland. His search for a righteous individual is like a search for fruit after the harvest when even the gleanings are gone. In fact, even the best leaders of society are briers and thorns instead of the desired fruit. The picture of society as an empty, thorn-infested field tends both to magnify Micah's case through its vividness and to create an emotional response of horror in his audience. Finally, the depiction of the lack of righteousness recalls a number of elements in the speech and thus refreshes the minds of his hearers. The search for a hasid (righteous one) recalls Yahweh's demand for hesed while the description of the behavior of the society's leaders is meant to recall the actions described in 6.12. Finally, the harvest imagery of 7.1 echoes the picture of judgment in 6.11. The prophet thus closes his speech by skillfully recalling the images and arguments that have played a crucial part in the discourse as a whole.
1.
See Gitay, Prophecy and Persuasion, p. 105.
188
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
Historical Possibilities It has already been argued that there is no evidence that compels one to deny Mic. 6.1-7.7 to the time of Micah. Unfortunately, among those who date this material to Micah's time there is no consensus concerning the historical circumstances reflected in the material in these chapters. Indeed, a wide range of suggestions concerning the historical background of Mic. 6.1-7.7 has been proposed. A number of scholars have argued that Micah's ministry extended into the reign of Manasseh and that the material in chapters 6 and 7 date to the time of that seventh-century ruler.1 It is argued that the pessimistic attitude of these chapters reflects the kinds of conditions which are assumed to have been widespread in the time of Manasseh. In particular, the reference to child sacrifice in Mic. 6.7 is interprete as an allusion to Manasseh's participation in such rites (2 Kgs 21.6). The evidence for a seventh-century date is quite weak, however. While it is true that Manasseh is said to have participated in child sacrifice, one must not overlook reports that human sacrifice occurred in both Israel and Judah during the last decades of the eighth century. Further, the generally pessimistic tone could be a reflection of the succession of assassinations, conspiracies, rebellions and wars of the last few decades of the eighth century. In other words, both the tone of the discourse and the allusion to child sacrifice can be explained satisfactorily by events that occurred in the eighth century, and nothing demands a date during the reign of Manasseh. A second group of commentators has concluded that some or all of the material in Mic. 6.1-7.7 reflects the cultic reform of Hezekiah. Rudolph has suggested that Mic. 6.1-8 presupposes a situation in which Israel's political situation has not improved in spite of 1. Vuilleumier (Michee, pp. 77-82) believes that all of Micah 6-7 is the work of Micah during the reign of Manasseh while Duhm ('Anmerkungen zu den Zwolf Propheten', pp. 90-91) assigns only 6.1-8, 9-16 to Micah's supposed activities in the seventh century. Others think that only 6.1-8 is Mican material from Manasseh's time (G.A. Smith, The Book of the Twelve Prophets [Expositor's Bible; N.Y. Armstrong, 1908], p. 372; Lindblom, Micha, p. 115). Weiser limits the material to 7.1-7 (Kleinen Propheten, p. 286). It should be noted that some scholar believe that the historical background of some or all of this material is the reign of Manasseh, but they deny that it is Mican (Stade, 'Bemerkungen iiber das Buch Micha', p. 162; Nowack, Die Kleinen Propheten,p. 205).
5. 'And Who Has Appointed It Again ?': Micah 6.1-7.7
189
Hezekiah's reform of the cult. 1 On the other hand, R.E. Wolfe believes that 6.6-8 reflects the sacrifices of Hezekiah described in 2 Chron. 30.34.2 While there is a certain probability to both of these suggestions, both fail to take into account other elements of the discourse which indicate the situation at hand is a desperate reaction to an imminent invasion. More often scholars have seen the events of 701 BCE as the historical background for most of the material in 6.1-7.7.3 Such a date is appealing since Sennacherib's invasion of Judah and siege of Jerusalem could be understood as the judgment that 'the city' has experienced. In addition, the distress caused by a siege could be presupposed by 6.3-8, and the aftermath of the invasion could be reflected in the desolation pictured in 7.1-6. Finally, the above survey of objective factors in the rhetorical situation suggests that by analogy with Isaiah's preaching, the 'rod' of punishment which Yahweh has appointed should be identified as Assyria. It must be remembered, however, that invasion and siege were experienced by the northern kingdom at least two or three decades before the Assyrian campaign against Jerusalem in 701. Moreover, the objective factors of the discourse suggest the possibility that the city addressed is Samaria rather than Jerusalem. A more likely historical background for Mic. 6.1-7.7 may be found in the north before the fall of Samaria in 722. The rhetorical factors further narrow the time presupposed by the discourse to a period after the Assyrian suppression of Rezin's coalition in 732-31. If the proposed interpretation of Mic. 6.9b is correct, this text indicates that the 'rod' of punishment has been experienced on at least one previous occasion. That occasion may have been 732-31 when Israel incurred the wrath of Assyria and witnessed the conversion of former territories into Assyrian provinces.4 The events which 1. Rudolph, Micha, pp. 110, 113-14. 2. Wolfe, Micah, p. 939. 3. Willis ('Micha 6, 6-8', p. 277) places Mic. 6.1-16 during 701 BCE while Weiser (Kleinen Propheten, pp. 79, 239) limits the 701 material to 6.1-8. Allen concludes that it is 'reasonable to assume' that 7.1-7 comes from 701 (Micah, p. 250; similarly Lindblom, Micha, p. 150) and Wolfe (Micah, p. 941) believe that 6.9-16 reflects Sennacherib's invasion. 4. For the probability that territory claimed by Israel was made into an Assyrian province after of the Syro-Ephraimite crisis see Chapter 6, 'Historical Possibilities'.
190
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
Micah addresses in 6.1-7.7 must be after this hostile Assyrian incursion into Israel. On the other hand, if Mic. 6.6-8 is an address to a king, it is reasonable to conclude that the discourse presupposes a time no later than the 725 arrest of Hoshea, the last known king of Samaria. While it is quite possible that the people of Samaria designated another person as king after Hoshea's arrest,1 it is not certain that Micah would have recognized him as a legitimate ruler. In contrast, Mic. 6.6-8 does not question the right of the king to rule, but accuses the king of a failure to execute the duties of his office. If the discourse dates to a time between 731 and 725, the king addressed in 6.8 would be Hoshea since he was the only king in Samaria during this time. Although Hoshea ascended the throne of Samaria with Assyrian approval,2 it is likely that he rebelled against Assyria on two different occasions. First, 2 Kgs 17.3 reports that Shalmaneser came up against Hoshea, and Hoshea submitted and paid tribute to the Assyrian. The occasion of Hoshea's submission was probably in 727 when Shalmaneser was concluding an Assyrian campaign which had been initiated in 728 by his predecessor, TiglathPileser III.3 The target of this campaign was apparently Damascus, and one may reasonably assume neighboring states, including Israel, were involved in the rebellion. As a result of this first rebellion, Hoshea would have reassumed the status of vassal to Assyria and to Shalmaneser in particular. A second rebellion is apparently alluded to in 2 Kgs 17.4 where it is reported that Hoshea discontinued the payment of tribute and sought the aid of 'So, king of Egypt'. Unfortunately, the identity of the 1. It may be significant that Sargon notes that in 720 the Samarians revolted against him with a king hostile to them (see C.J. Gadd, 'Inscribed Prisms of Sargon II from Nimrud', Iraq 16 [1954], pp. 173-201). It is not known if the king was a ruler in Samaria or a foreign king. 2. Tiglath-Pileser III claims that he designated Hoshea as king of Samaria (ANET, p. 284). 3. Although the text is fragmentary and the name of the city is lost, the campaign reported in the Eponym list for 728-27 is probably against Damascus. See G. Smith, 'On a New Fragment of the Assyrian Canon Belonging to the Reigns of Tiglath-Pileser and Shalmaneser', TSBA 2 (1873), pp. 321-22. The succession of Shalmaneser is reported for the next year (727-26). The Babylonian Chronicle dates the death of Tiglath-Pileser to the month of Tebet (ABC, p. 72).
5. 'And Who Has Appointed It Again ?': Micah 6.1-7.7
191
Egyptian ruler is not certain.1 Nevertheless, the report that Hoshea was negotiating with an Egyptian ruler suggests that his rebellion was part of a co-ordinated, multi-national coalition against Assyria. As a result of his activities, Hoshea was arrested: 'the king of Assyria shut him up and bound him in prison' (2 Kgs 17.4). The exact circumstances of Hoshea's arrest are not known, nor is it clear what other actions were taken against Samaria at the time of Hoshea's arrest. After Hoshea's capture, however, Samaria apparently revolted again with the result that Assyria invaded the land and laid siege to Samaria (2 Kgs 17.5). The siege culminated in the capture of Samaria in 722-21. The discourse in Mic. 6.1-7.7 could be related to Hoshea's rebellion of 727 or 726-25. For a number of reasons, the more likely occasion was 726-25, however.2 The indication that the audience is 'wearied' and that judgment has recently been experienced (6.12) may suggest a time shortly after the Assyrians had intervened and forced Hoshea's submission in 727. Further, the expectation of serious consequences including the destruction of the city (v. 16) may have been seen as more likely if the present ruler had already been involved in a rebellion. A date near the 725 rebellion of Hoshea could explain a number of elements in the discourse. The statutes of Omri and Ahab may be a reference to the international coalition in which Samaria was participating. The impending conquest of the city is the direct result of pursuing the Omride policies of building alliances to counter Assyrian might. Rebellion against Assyria could have meant the breaking of an oath of allegiance possibly sworn in Yahweh's name.3 Thus, the leaders of the city are those who are 'filled with violence' and who 'speak lies, whose tongue is deceitful in their mouths' (6.12). Moreover, by 1. See the discussion by Herbert Donner, The Separate States of Israel and Judah', in J.H. Hayes and J.M. Miller (eds.), Israelite and Judaean History (Philadelphia: Westminster Press, 1977), pp. 432-33. A recent, detailed discussion is given by D.L. Christensen, The Identity of "King So" in Egypt (2 Kings XVIII 4)', VT39 (1989), pp. 140-53. 2. Lindblom (Micha, p. 150) dates Micah 6.9-16 to 725 BCE. Willis ('Hope 'Oracle', p. 70) and van Hoonacker (Les douze petits prophetes, p. 465) assign 7.1-7 to 721 BCE. 3. See especially M. Tsevat, The Neo-Assyrian and Neo-Babylonian Vassal Oaths and the Prophet EzekieP, JBL 78 (1959), p. 199.
192
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
his deceit and the breaking of his oath, Hoshea had failed to 'establish justice' and to 'walk wisely' with God. Since the oath that has been violated was sworn in Yahweh's name, Yahweh himself assumes the responsibility of punishing the guilty (6.13-16). It is of interest that in Mic. 6.14-15 the punishment is cast in the form of 'futility curses' which could have been attached to a treaty to describe the punishment to be inflicted upon the one who violates the terms of the treaty.1 These indications that a treaty of loyalty has been broken may well reflect the situation in 726-25 BCE when Hoshea ceased to be a loyal vassal of Assyria by conspiring with other nations and withholding tribute from Assyria. Finally, the recitation of the 'righteous acts' of Yahweh (6.5-6) would have been especially appropriate to the situation of 725. At a time when Hoshea looked to 'So, king of Egypt' for deliverance, Micah reminds his audience of how Yahweh had delivered them from Egypt. Similarly, at a time when Israel was relying upon coalitions with neighboring states, the prophet reminds his audience of the wellknown story about the harm that these same states once intended (Mic. 6.5a; cf. Num. 23.1-6) and the danger of involvement with these same states (Mic. 6.5b; cf. Num. 25.1-12). The particular deeds of Yahwe that Micah chooses are thus well-suited to demonstrate the folly of coalitions and the wisdom of trusting Yahweh. Of course, certainty is not possible. Nevertheless, the factors reflected in Mic. 6.1-7.7 appear to point to a time when Samaria was in rebellion against Assyria. The reference to a king further suggests that Hoshea had not yet been arrested. Indeed, the reference to sacrifices and the declaration to a king may indicate that Micah was speaking during or shortly after the annual celebration of Hoshea's enthronement. The expectation of immediate military retaliation may point to a time shortly after the enthronement festival of 726, before the Assyrian arrest of Hoshea. In any case, it is clear that Micah skillfully argues that the impending disaster is the result of the failure of leaders who have chosen to pursue the policies of Omri and Ahab and who have thus failed to execute their duties faithfully.
1. For the purpose and form of the futility curses see the discussion in Wolff, Micah, pp. 196-97.
Chapter 6 'THAT DAY THE DECREE WELL BE RESCINDED!' MICAH 7.8-20
Text and Translation (8)
(9)
(10)
(11)
Rejoice not over me, O my enemy! Though I have fallen, I shall rise.1 though I sit in darkness Yahweh is a light to me. I will bear the rage of Yahweh for I have sinned against him! until he pleads my cause and executes justice for me. He will bring me out to the light, and I shall behold his righteous deeds. Then my enemy will see, and her shame will cover hershe who said to me: 'Where2 is He, Yahweh3 your God?' My eyes will gloat over her; now will she be trodden down like mud in the streets. A day for building your walls!
1. Although the verb is in the perfect, the context calls for a future meaning. A waw may have dropped out since the LXX appears to have read a 'converted perfect' See Killers, Micah, p. 88, n.a. 2. The MT 'ayyo can be retained. The 3rd masculine suffix anticipates the noun to which it refers. See Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 132, n.13; Killers, Micah, p. 88, n.c; J.M.P. Smith, Micah, p. 147. 3. Some have suggested that the divine name is inappropriate in a taunt spoken by the enemies of Israel and have thus suggested that its occurrence in this verse is either a deliberate gloss or a scribal error (Renaud, Formation, p. 359; Wolff, Micah, p. 213). This proposed deletion of the divine name is speculative and unnecessary, however, and the MT should be retained.
194 (12)
(13)
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis That day1 the decree2 will be rescinded!3 On that day they4 will come to you from Assyria and the cities of5 Egypt,6 from Tyre7 and as far as the River and the sea; from the sea and the loftiest mountain.8 And the land will be desolate on account of its rulers,
1. Although the MT is unusual, its sense is clear and may be defended as grammatical (Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 132, n.15). Renaud (Formation, p. 359) and Wolff (Micah, p. 213) note the unusual construction, but offer a translation essentially the same as the one proposed here. Killer's redivision of the verse does not solve the problem (Micah, p. 88, n.e). 2. Since the noun hoq does not usually mean 'borders' I have adopted a more common and equally plausible reading (BDB, p. 349). Other proposed interpretations are surveyed by Margolis, Micah, p. 75. See the discussion below under 'Objective Factors'. 3. For this meaning of the verb rhq see below under 'Objective Factors'. 4. The 3rd masculine singular is generally taken as a collective. 5. Most assume a confusion of r and d and emend we 'are to we 'ad (e.g. Allen, Micah, p. 391, n.38; Wolff, Micah, p. 213; Mays, p. 160, n.e; Renaud, Formation, p. 36). If one assumes that these verses throughout are based on the common construction min.,. 'ad the text must be emended to conform to this construction. Such an assumption is unfounded and not supported by the rest of v. 12 in the MT, however. The MT may thus be retained. See also Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 133, n.18; Margolis, Micah, p. 75. 6. In this case masor is another form of misrayim (2 Kgs 19.24; Isa. 37.26; Isa. 19.6). P. Calderone (The Rivers of "Masor"', Bib 42 [1961], pp. 423-32) emends the phrase to read 'and the city of the rock'. This textual emendation is not supported by the versional evidence, however, and more importantly, the MT presents no real problem. 7. The repetition of masor combined with the fact that the LXX presupposes the reading 'from Tyre' makes it likely that the MT should be emended at this point See Renaud, Formation, p. 361 and the comments by Calderone, 'The Rivers', pp. 423-32. 8. The MT literally reads 'sea from sea and mountain of the mountain'. Scholars have usually resorted to emendations to obtain the reading 'from sea to sea and mountain to mountain'. Once again, emendations are based on the assumption that the verses contain a geographical formula based on the construction min... 'ad. The proposed reading simply rearranges the punctuation, reading the athnah on weyam rather than nahar so that the first word of 12d ('and sea') is joined with the preceding phrase. The resulting phrase in 12d can be read 'from the sea to the loftiest mountain'. Luker (Doom and Hope, p. 133, n.19) and Renaud (Formation, p. 359) read harhahar as the superlative genitive.
6. 'That Day the Decree Will Be Rescinded!': Micah 7.8-20 195 (14)
(15) (16)
(17)
(18)
(19)
because of the fruit of their deeds. Shepherd your people with your staff, the flock of your inheritance, the ones dwelling1 alone in the forest, in the midst of forest land.2 Let them feed in Bashan and Gilead as in days of old. 'As when you came out of the land of Egypt I3 shall cause him to see wonders.' Nations will see4 and be ashamed of all their power. They will clasp their hands over their mouths, their ears will be deaf; they will lick the dust like a snake, like those that crawl on the ground; they will come trembling from their strongholds to Yahweh our God; and they will tremble and be afraid because of you.5 Who is a God like you, forgiving iniquity, and passing over rebellion for the remnant of his inheritance? He will not hold his anger forever, for he delights in kindness. He will again6 have compassion on us; He will tread down7 our iniquities.
1. The word sokeni is to be taken as a participle with the yod compaginis (cf. Deut. 33.16; Jer. 49.16; Obad. 3). So Wolff, Micah, p. 214; Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 134, n.21; Renaud, Formation, p. 362; Killers, Micah, p. 88. 2. Whether karmel is to be taken as a proper noun or a common noun is a debated point For the translation adopted here, see below under 'Objective Factors'. 3. Many have emended the first-person verb to a third person (e.g. Allen, Micah, p. 392, n.43; Killers, Micah, p. 88; Wolff, Micah, p. 214; Mays, Micah, p. 163, n.b). If one takes this verse as a divine response, however, no emendation is necessary. See Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 134, n. 22; Renaud, Formation, p. 362. 4. The verbs could be taken as jussives (Mays, Micah, p. 163; Wolff, Micah, p. 212) but most commentators understand them as third-person imperfects. 5. The second person refers to Yahweh even though the speaker refers to the deity in the third person in the preceding line. See Killers, Micah, p. 88; Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 134, n.23. 6. Literally, 'He will return to have compassion on us'. 7. Some (e.g. Rudolph, Micha, p. 129; Eissfeldt, 'Ein Psalm aus Nord-Israel', p. 267; Sellin, Das Zwolfprophetenbuch, p. 303) have proposed emending yikbos to yikab ('wash away'). Although such a reading is supported by a few Greek manuscripts, the MT should be retained since it is supported by the LXX and the
196
(20)
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis Then you will cast into the midst of the sea all of their sins. You will show faithfulness to Jacob, kindness to Abraham, just as you swore to our fathers from days of old.
Unity and Date Mic. 7.8-20 is usually divided into four distinct units: 8(7)-10, a song of trust; vv. 11-13, an oracle of salvation; vv. 14-17, a lament; and vv. 18-20, a hymn of praise.1 There is a consensus that this material should be understood as a unity even though this unity is generally considered to be redactional.2 Indeed, a number of factors support the probability that Mic. 7.8-20 forms a unified block of material. Renaud has noted the stylistic features that unite these verses.3 For example, 'heritage' occurs both in v. 14 and v. 18, and the word 'sin' (hatta'f) occurs in vv. 9 and 19. Moreover, the phrase 'days of old' (v. 20) echoes the phrase 'ancient days' of v. 14, and the verb 'see' (r'ah) occurs four times distributed throughout the poem (vv. 9, 10, 15, 16). Renaud also demonstrates how the recurrence of meter, the constant reprise of themes, and a natural connection between motifs lend unity to these verses. A second factor indicating the unity of Mic. 7.8-20 is the structure of this section. Gunkel noted that although the four units are of different
versions and because it is the more difficult reading. More importantly, R.P, Gordon has noted that Akkadian KABASU occurs in both Neo-Babylonian and Neo-Assyrian texts with the idiomatic meaning 'to forgive/pardon' ('Micah VII 19 and Akkadian Kabasu\ VT 28 [1978], p. 355). It is thus uncertain if 'sin' is personified here or if the phrase is an idiomatic expression. 1. This general division and identification of the various parts is followed by Gunkel (The Close of Micah', pp. 115-49); Mays (Micah, pp. 154-56); Wolff (Micah, pp. 215-17); Allen (Micah, p. 393); Millers (Micah, p. 89); Rudolph (Micha, p. 131); and Eissfeldt (The Old Testament, p. 251). Of course, others have divided the section into two or three units, but these proposed divisions have not convinced a majority of commentators. For other proposals see Schibler, Le Prophete Michee, p. 70, notes 20 and 21. 2. A possible exception is Luker, who discusses the possibility that 'the prophet' is the one who 'produced' such a lament (Doom and Hope, pp. 214-15). 3. Renaud, Formation, pp. 369-70.
6. 'That Day the Decree Will Be Rescinded!': Micah 7.8-20 197 genres, they are arranged into two balanced pairs: the song of trust (vv. 8-10) is answered by a divine oracle (vv. 11-13) and the lament (vv. 14-17) is balanced by a hymn of assurance (vv. 18-20).1 This clearly discernible structure suggests that the material was deliberately arranged into a whole either by the author or an editor. More important than the balanced structure of these verses is the fact that all of these units are typical components of the genre of the lament.2 Although the arrangement and number of these components may vary3 the lament may include a confession and expression of confidence (vv. 8-10), a divine oracle (vv. 11-13, 15), a plea for restoration (vv. 14-17) and a vow or exclamation of praise (cf. vv. 18-20). The four sub-units of Micah 7.8-20 are therefore typical components of the larger form of the lament and thus express the unity of that form. Finally, the unity of Mic. 7.8-20 is supported by the fact that a similar situation is assumed throughout the poem. Each section presupposes that the community is defeated and is powerless to act on its own behalf. Indeed, Yahweh alone is able to intervene for Israel's vindication and restoration. Thus, one day Yahweh will vindicate his people and defeat her enemies who now rejoice. Unlike the preceding section which anticipates defeat and destruction, all of Mic. 7.8-20 assumes that defeat and destruction have occurred and anticipates restoration. The fact that Mic. 7.8-20 is comprised of elements typical of the lament genre coupled with the assumed situation of national defeat suggests that the poem was a liturgy meant to be used on an occasion of lamentation and confession.4 Although we cannot be certain that the author was not merely modelling his work after such a liturgy, the possibility that Mic. 7.8-20 was used in a liturgical setting suggests 1. Gunkel, The Close of Micah', pp. 142-49. 2. See the discussion by Luker, Doom and Hope, pp. 197-209. For the component parts of the lament genre see E. Gerstenberger, 'Psalms', in J.H. Hayes (ed.), Old Testament Form Criticism (San Antonio, TX: Trinity University Press, 1977), pp. 200, 206. 3. Gerstenberger, 'Psalms', p. 200. 4. Among those who have proposed a cultic setting for Mic. 7.8-20 are Gunkel, The Close of Micah', pp. 115-49; Reicke, 'Liturgical Traditions', pp. 349-67; Kapelrud, 'Eschatology', pp. 25-28. Similar liturgical settings are apparently assumed by Eissfeldt, The Old Testament, p. 251; Allen, Micah, p. 393; and Hillers (Micah, p. 89), who refers to the material as a 'liturgy'.
198
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
that a final factor lending unity to this section is its liturgical function and possible Sitz im Leben in the cult. With very few exceptions scholars have assigned Mic. 7.8-20 to the exilic or post-exilic period.1 Support for this date comes from two basic arguments.2 First, it is suggested that the themes and motifs of Mic. 7.8-20 reflect the exilic or post-exilic theological concerns similar to those found in the book of Lamentations. The motifs usually cited include the admission of responsibility for sin which has brought punishment (Mic. 7.9; Lam. 1.8-9, 17-18; 5.15-18), the belief in Yahweh's pardon (Mic. 7.18-20; Lam. 3.31-33), and the taunts of the enemies (Lam. 1.21; 2.15-16; 3.31-33; Mic. 7.8). Additional motifs common to Mic. 7.8-20 and Lamentations include the imagery of darkness (Mic. 7.8; Lam. 5.17) and the reference to solitude (Lam. 1.1; 3.8; Mic. 7.14a). Finally the prayer for a renewal of the 'ancient days' is found in both Micah and Lamentations (Mic. 7.14, 20; Lam. 5.21). Similar lines of connections are also found between Mic. 7.8-20 and Isa. 59.9-15 and 63.7-64.12.3 In particular this portion of Trito-Isaiah contains the form-critical elements of confession, complaint before Yahweh, and an appeal to the marvels of ancient days. In addition, it is pointed out that Isa. 63.16 refers to the promise to Abraham (cf. Mic. 7.20) which is not found in the pre-exilic prophets. Finally, an exilic or post-exilic date is supported by the assumption that the speaker in Mic. 7.8 is Jerusalem after the destruction of 586 BCE (cf. Lam. l.l). 4 The address to the enemies is assumed to be Jerusalem's address to Edom (Lam. 4.21; Ps. 137.7; Isa. 34.5-17; Obadiah), and the walls which are to be rebuilt are assumed to be the walls of Jerusalem. In spite of the evidence, the case for an exilic or post-exilic date for 1. Notable exceptions include Smith, The Twelve Prophets, p. 734; van Hoonacker, Les douze petits prophetes, p. 353; and Eissfeldt, 'Ein Psalm aus NordIsrael', pp. 359-68; Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 214. Willis concedes that the poem could have originated in the eighth century ('Hope Oracle', p. 76). Hillers believes that Mic. 7.8-20 'fits conditions in Micah's time...' (Micah, p. 89). 2. Both of these arguments are presented in detail by Renaud (Formation, pp. 276-77) and Wolff (Micah, pp. 217-20). 3. See Renaud, (Formation, p. 376); Wolff (Micah, p. 219). 4. In addition to Renaud and Wolff see Mays (Micah, pp. 163, 167) and Allen (Micah, pp. 393-94).
6. 'That Day the Decree Will Be Rescinded!': Micah 7.8-20 199 Mic. 7.8-20 is not particularly strong. First, one must be cautious in drawing conclusions concerning the date based on similar elements in Lamentations and Trito-Isaiah. Some of the supposed similarities are quite questionable. For example, does Lam. 5.17 ('our eyes have grown dim') really use the same theme of darkness and light found in Mic. 7.8 ("Though I sit in darkness...')? In addition, the imagery of darkness and light is employed in Isaiah 59 in a way quite different from its use in Mic. 7.8. In the former text darkness refers to injustice while in the latter text darkness refers to a military defeat. Such distant similarities suggest very few valid conclusions concerning the date of Micah 7. Similarly the occurrence of the name 'Abraham' forms at best a distant parallel to post-exilic prophetic works. The post-exilic prophets always referred to Abraham as an individual. In contrast, Mic. 7.20 uses the name to designate the entire community.1 It is questionable that far-reaching conclusions regarding the date of material should be drawn upon the use of the same term in significantly different ways. More importantly, a large number of the motifs and theological themes common to Mic. 7.8-20, Lamentations and Trito-Isaiah are poor indicators of a specific date since these elements are typical of the lament genre in a wide variety of settings over an extended period of time.2 For example, the admission that punishment is deserved is the equivalent to the confession of sin found in laments such as Pss. 26.4-6 and 51.5-7. Laments in the Psalms also routinely contain expressions of confidence in Yahweh's mercy and pardon (Ps. 13.6; 22.10-11; 31.2-6; 142.6) and include allusions to the taunts of the sufferer's enemies (Ps. 42.4, 11; 79.10). Other elements Mic. 7.8-20 shares with the lament genre are the plea for vindication and the defeat of one's enemies (Pss. 17.6-9; 80.14-17; 83.9-18), and a reference to Yahweh's mighty acts (Pss. 9.2; 26.7; 86.10; 71.17; 77; 83.10). We may thus conclude that Lamentations, Trito-Isaiah and Mic. 7.820 contain a number of motifs and elements that are typical of the lament genre. Such stock elements certainly are used to express a situation of national distress, but their occurrence in a variety of 1. 231. 2.
This unique use of the term 'Abraham' is noted by Wolff, Micah, pp. 219, See Luker, Doom and Hope, pp. 197-209.
200
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
Psalms suggests that their usage was not limited to the time after the destruction of Jerusalem in 586 BCE; rather, they could be employed in any lament when the situation was appropriate. Finally, it is important to remember that Lamentations repeatedly identifies the fallen city and community as Jerusalem and Judah. In contrast, the feminine figure who speaks in Mic. 7.8-10 is never specifically identified as Jerusalem. It may also be significant that there is no reference to the temple or altar as is found in Lamentations (2.6-7.20), nor is the enemy identified as Edom. In addition, although the word for 'walls' in Mic. 7.11 is only rarely used of the walls of a city,1 it is not certain that the city walls of Jerusalem are meant. It thus remains nothing more than an assumption that the speaker in Mic. 7.8-20 is the city of Jerusalem after its destruction in 586 BCE. Whether or not this assumption is a valid one can only be decided by a closer examination of the objective factors of the rhetorical situation. The significant conclusion to be noted here is that the evidence for dating Mic. 7.8-20 is open to more than one interpretation. In the absence of strong evidence to the contrary the possibility must be left open that the poem dates to the time of Micah and reflects the conditions of that time. The Rhetorical Situation Objective Factors The presence of typical elements of the lament genre in Mic. 7.8-20 presents a unique challenge to one attempting to isolate the factors that constitute the rhetorical situation. Nevertheless, while it may be difficult to isolate the particular situation presupposed by the poem, it is logical to assume that the outline of the general situation can be determined. In other words, it is safe to assume that a lament over a military defeat would not be used on the occasion of a natural disaster. The typical elements are therefore reliable in defining the general outline of the particular situation. Further insight into the rhetorical situation can be gained by careful attention to the unique features contained in Mic. 7.8-20. The
1.
Hillers, Micah, p. 90.
6. 'That Day the Decree Will Be Rescinded!': Micah 7.8-20 201 particular aspect of the rhetorical situation may well be revealed in those very elements which appear not to fit the expected pattern of the lament genre. As we shall see, the difficult and enigmatic contents of vv. 11-13 may be the key to discovering the situation that prompted the composition of this lament. Taken together, the typical features along with the unexpected elements can provide insight into those factors which produced the lament of Mic. 7.8-20. The most obvious factor that is presupposed throughout this material is that the community has suffered a military defeat. In traditional language the community is described as 'fallen' (v. 8) and humiliated by the taunts of her enemies (v. 10). The plea for the defeat and humiliation of the enemies (v. 10, vv. 16-17) also suggests that these same enemies are responsible for the defeat of the community that laments. The helpless condition of the defeated community is underscored by the emphasis on the need for miraculous, divine interventions similar to the exodus to bring about restoration and renewal (vv. 14-17). Two further indications that Yahweh's people have suffered a military defeat appear in v. 11. First, v. l l a clearly indicates that walls are in need of repair. Since the word used for 'walls' is not the typical term designating the wall of a city, it has been suggested that the reference is a metaphorical allusion to the defences of the land.1 Support for such a conclusion appears to be found in v. 1 Ib if one translates the verse, 'On that day your borders will be enlarged'.2 Thus v. lla apparently stands parallel to a description of an enlargement of national boundaries rather than the restoration of a particular city. Nevertheless, it is reasonable to assume that v. lla refers to the walls of a city. Though not common, the term is used for city walls in Ezra 9.9, Jer. 49.3, and Ps. 89.41. In addition, it is far from certain that the following verse refers to the extension of the boundaries of the nation. Indeed, when used alone, the noun hoq never refers to the
1. Willi-Plein, Vorformen, pp. 107-8; Hillers notes that the term may indicate 'walled towns in general' (Micah, p. 90). Reicke makes a similar observation ('Liturgical Traditions', p. 363). 2. Such an interpretation is given by Wolff, Micah, p. 212; Mays, Micah, p. 160; Hillers, Micah, p. 87; Reicke, 'Liturgical Traditions', p. 363; Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 104.
202
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
borders of a nation although it may refer to natural limits.1 What then is meant by the phrase yirhaq hoql Some have concluded that the MT is corrupt and must be emended to yield an intelligible meaning. Most often it is suggested that hoq be interpreted as 'the appointed time' and yirhaq be emended to some form of dahaq so that the verse conveys the meaning 'the appointed time presses near'.2 Others have suggested that the MT should read yirhaqhaq? The verse could then read 'The day for building your walls, even that day should be far removed'. While these emendations are possible they have no textual support since the versions appear to presuppose the MT. The simplest solution may be to assign the common meaning of both the noun and the verb in v. lib. The noun hoq used alone generally refers to a decree, statute, or ordinance,4 and the verb yirhaq usually means 'to become distant', or 'to remove'.5 Apparently, the root of the verb also conveyed the idea, 'to rescind' or 'renounce'. In the Elephantine texts, the Aramaic expression spr mrhq designates a 'deed of renunciation'.6 The MT of Mic. 7.11 could thus be rendered, 'The day when the decree will be rescinded/renounced'. In the context of Mic. 7.8-20 the 'decree' may well be a reference to the terms imposed upon the defeated community by the conquering enemies.7 Such an interpretation is plausible since the reversal of these terms would coincide with the rebuilding of fortifications destroyed by enemy armies. It may be significant that a sentence or decree was pronounced on a rebellious vassal by a conquering king (cf. 2 Kgs 25.6). In any case, it is reasonable to conclude that vv. 11 and 12 refer to the rebuilding of fallen defenses and the end of the subjugation or political arrangements decreed by the conquerors. The community thus finds itself defeated and helpless, but looking for a day of restoration. 1. Willi-Plein, Vorformen, pp. 107-108. 2. Eissfeldt, 'Bin Psalm aus Nord-Israel', p. 266; Gunkel, The Close of Micah', p. 129; Rudolph, Micha, p. 128. 3. Cited by Margolis, Micah, p. 75. 4. BDB, p. 349, especially number 6. 5. BDB, pp. 934-35. 6. Cowley, Aramaic Papyri, p. 16, no. 6, line 22. 7. Similarly, Margolis suggests the decree is a 'decree of destruction' (Micah, p. 75). This is how the phrase is understood by most of the versions. See Rudolph, Micha, p. 128, n. e.
6. 'That Day the Decree Will Be Rescinded!': Micah 7.8-20 203 A second objective factor concerns the geographical situation of the community: is either the community or a part of the community in exile? Some have interpreted Mic. 7.12 as a description of the return of people from a 'widely spread diaspora'.1 Others have suggested that the verse depicts not a return from exile, but the pilgrimage of the nations to an exalted Zion.2 Such an interpretation of v. 12 is suggested by the fact that the motif of the pilgrimage of the nations is a stock element in the Zion tradition.3 Another possible interpretation has been proposed by Margolis, who understands v. 12 as a description of an assault by the enemies of Israel.4 A number of factors appear to support this interpretation. First, the verb in the MT is the third masculine singular rather than a plural. While the singular may be a collective, it may also refer to the 'enemy' as in Mic. 5.4-5. More importantly, Margolis correctly points out that v. 13 yields no satisfactory sense if v. 12 refers to a return from exile: why should a return coincide with a desolation of 'the land' whether it is the land of Palestine or foreign lands? Mays has suggested that vv. 12-13 are meant to picture a 'complete contrast between Zion and the rest of the world...' 5 Such a contrast is not found in other traditions about the exaltation of Zion, however, and supposed parallels (e.g. Obad. 16; Joel 4.18-20; Zech. 14.10-11; Jer. 24.1-6) are at best distant since none contrasts the destruction of the land to the exaltation of Zion. Also, the most natural interpretation of 'the land' {ha'ares) is not 'the rest of the world', but 'the land of Israel'. The difficulty posed by v. 13 may be explained by classifying v. 13 as a gloss,6 but it is difficult to understand why a gloss would be added that results in confusion rather than clarity. Verse 13 thus appears to stand in contradiction to the concept of a return from exile or a pilgrimage of the nations. On the other hand, if v. 12 is understood as a reference to an enemy attack, the destruction or desolation 1. Mays, Micah, p. 161. Also Wellhausen, Kleinen Propheten, p. 149; Wolff, Micah, p. 224; Rudolph, Micha, p. 133. 2. Eissfeldt, 'Bin Psalm aus Nord-Israel', pp. 259-68. 3. See above, Chapter 3, 'Objective Factors'. 4. Margolis, Micah, pp. 75-76. 5. Mays, Micah, p. 162. 6. So Renaud, Formation, p. 366. Wolff (Micah, p. 216) argues that all of vv. 11-12 is a later addition, and v. 13 is an even later gloss.
204
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
of the land of Palestine would be a logical result. A final clue that v. 12 does not refer to a diaspora is the difference between this verse and other texts that describe a return from exile. Isa. 11.11-16; 27.12 and Zech. 10.8-12 are often cited as parallels to Mic. 7.11-12.1 Yet, in all of these supposed parallels, it is stated explicitly that Yahweh himself will 'gather' his people from various distant lands. In Mic. 7.12, however, there is no gathering of the people by Yahweh; rather, the text states that 'he will come to you' from the distant places of the earth. Whatever the subject of the verb, it is clear that what is depicted in Mic. 7.12 is not a divine act, but an act initiated by human will. A profound theological difference thus exists between Mic. 7.12 and those texts that clearly describe a return from exile. This difference may be explained by the possibility that Mic. 7.12 is not a description of a return, but a declaration of a movement of people which will accompany the desolation of the land. While the proposal of Margolis is closer to the meaning of the verse there remain some obstacles to his interpretation. First, Margolis himself acknowledges that an enemy would not be described as coming 'to' ('ad) the speaker, but as coming 'against' ('at).2 His suggestion that the text be 'corrected' at this point cannot be accepted since there is no support for such an emendation. In addition, it must be remembered that there is nothing to prevent one from interpreting the singular verb as a collective. Indeed, in this case it is quite natural to understand the verb not as a reference to a specific enemy but to an indefinite 'they'. A third possibility must be considered. Mic. 7.12 may refer to the settlement of people from other countries in the land of Israel as a result of rebellion. Indeed, in the eighth century it was Assyrian policy to deal with rebellious vassals through deportation of the population and resettlement of other peoples in the area.3 Such a policy of deportation and resettlement was no doubt well known to most nations who had experienced any dealings with Assyria. It may well be that this policy is what the prophet has in mind in v. 12. Such an interpretation explains how people from every possible direction would 'come 1. Mays, Micah, p. 162; Wolff, Micah, p. 224. 2. Margolis, Micah, p. 76. 3. Donner, 'The Separate States', p. 419; B. Oded, Mass Deportations and Deportees in the Neo-Assyrian Empire (Wiesbaden: Reichert Verlag, 1979).
6. 'That Day the Decree Will Be Rescinded!': Micah 7.8-20 205 to' the speaker and at the same time how the land itself could be described as desolate or 'empty'. The proposed reading of v. 12 indicates that those who are settled in the land will come from all directions. 'Assyria and the cities of Egypt' represents the northern and southern extremes from which the people will come. Verse 12b indicates the eastern and western points from which the people will come: Tyre lies to the west, and the 'river' and the 'sea' probably represent the Euphrates and the Persian Gulf in the east.1 Finally, v. 12c indicates another east-west axis, slightly to the south of the preceding one. In this case, the 'sea' is probably the Mediterranean2 and the 'loftiest' mountain may be Mount Hermon, the highest mountain in Syria-Palestine. It is difficult to determine how to evaluate the geographical information in v. 12. On the one hand, if the people who are to be settled in the land come from these places it is logical to assume that they are occupied or controlled by the enemy. On the other hand, the prophet may simply use these places to emphasize his belief about the diversity of the population that will inherit the land. In any case, the text probably does not present a picture of a return from exile or an attack by the nations; rather it describes both the movement of foreign people into the land of Israel as well as the desolation of the land. While a widespread diaspora is not presupposed by vv. 11-13, the community apparently dwells in a much reduced territory. The plea that God's people may dwell in Bashan and Gilead (v. 14c) is generally taken as an indication that these Transjordanian areas have been lost to Israelite control. The community is clearly confined to the territory west of the Jordan. If v. 14c is clear, v. 14b presents a number of difficulties to the interpreter. First, the participle at the beginning of the line does not agree in gender with the preceding noun. This apparent grammatical difficulty led Eissfeldt to theorize that the verse is a descriptive title for Yahweh: 'He who dwells alone in the forest in the midst of Carmel'.3 Little support has been given to Eissfeldt's interpretation, however, since there is no evidence that such a title was ever applied 1. For this identification of the 'sea' and the 'river' see Rudolph, Micha, p. 133 and Margolis, Micah, p. 76. 2. Rudolph, Micha, p. 133; Margolis, Micah, p. 76. 3. Eissfeldt, 'Bin Psalm aus Nord-Israel', pp. 259-68.
206
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
to Yahweh. Moreover, most commentators have recognized the participle as a collective which takes as its antecedent the masculine noun 'people' in the preceding verse.1 The apparent grammatical difficulties are thus not great enough to justify the kind of interpretation proposed by Eissfeldt. A second problem is the interpretation of the noun karmel. In the Old Testament the term occurs both as a common noun meaning 'forested land' and as a proper noun referring to the Carmel ridge which divided the Plain of Acco and the Plain of Sharon.2 It is difficult to determine whether Mic. 7.14b designates the Carmel ridge or refers to fertile upland. In support of interpreting karmel as a common noun it has been pointed out that there is no proper noun in parallelism with Carmel in this verse.3 In addition, there is no situation known in which the people of God were confined to the area of Mount Carmel.4 The verse may thus be rendered: 'Who dwell alone in a forest, in the midst of forest land'. The image intended is one in which the people are confined to scrub and forested upland which is surrounded by fertile land inhabited by others. One is thus able to make two observations about the geographical situation addressed by Mic. 7.8-20. First, there is no evidence for a widespread diaspora if Mic. 7.12 does not refer to a return from exile. Rather, v. 12 appears to refer to the arrival of foreigners in the land of Israel. Second, the country itself is reduced in size with the Transjordanian areas beyond access to God's people. Indeed, the community can be described as isolated and living on land comparable to a wilderness that is not suitable for human habitation. A final objective factor which must be determined is the identity of those addressed by this poem. As I have noted in the previous section, the conclusion that the speaker in vv. 8-10 is Jerusalem amounts to nothing more than an assumption. Indeed, a significant number of scholars have suggested that the city who speaks in these verses may well be Samaria.5 Two arguments support the possibility that the 1. Killers, Micah, p. 88; Wolff, Micah, p. 214; Renaud, Formation, p. 362. 2. G.W. Van Beck, 'Mount Carmel', IDB, I, p. 538. 3. Rudolph, Micha, p. 129; Renaud, Formation, p. 362. 4. Hillers, Micah, p. 91. 5. Smith, Twelve Prophets, p. 534; van Hoonacker, Les douze petits prophetes pp. 392,394, 409; F. Burkitt, 'Micah 6 and7: a Northern Prophecy', JBL 45 (1926), pp. 159-60; Reicke, 'Liturgical Traditions', pp. 349-67; Kapelrud, 'Eschatology',
6. 'That Day the Decree Will Be Rescinded!': Micah 7.8-20 207 poem concerns Samaria and the northern kingdom.1 First, it is often noted that the places named in Mic. 7.14 are all located in territory generally assigned to the northern kingdom. This evidence must be weighed carefully, however, since Bashan and Gilead may be 'explained as geographical references chosen for their fertile grazing lands and their location at the northern extreme of Israel's territory when she was at her largest'.2 In other words, the restoration of these Transjordanian areas was not an exclusively northern interest since a renewal of the Davidic kingdom would encompass Bashan and Gilead. Nevertheless, even with this caution about the significance of the references to Bashan and Gilead, Kapelrud's observation about this material is still valid: It is geographically outside the Judean perspectives of Ezekiel and Nehemiah, and does not mention Babylon and Jerusalem, but Assyria in v. 12 and Carmel, Bashan and Gilead in v. 14. These names refer to the historical and geographical horizon of the Northern Kingdom.3
Thus while the reference to Bashan and Gilead provides no conclusive evidence concerning the identity of the audience, the interest in these areas along with an absence of any references to Jerusalem or Judah does create at the least a 'northern perspective'.4 A second argument for identifying the audience as a northern one is the absence of any references to Davidic or Zion traditions.5 If the p. 405; Eissfeldt, 'Bin Psalm aus Nord-Israel', pp. 259-68; J. Dus, 'Weiteres zum nordisraelitischen Psalm Micha 7.7-20', ZDMG 115 (1965), pp. 14-22; Willis ('Hope Oracle', p. 69. For other scholars, see Willis, 'Hope Oracle', p. 69, n. 1. 1. Willis, ('Hope Oracle', pp. 69-71) lists three. The third argument, based on the proximity of Mic. 7.8-20 to the supposed northern material in 6.1-7.4 carries little weight, however. 2. Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 212. 3. Kapelrud, 'Eschatology', p. 363. This observation is valid even though Carmel is probably not to be taken as a proper place name. 4. It should be noted that this author is not suggesting a northern origin for this material; rather arguing that the liturgy deals with the northern kingdom and was intended for a northern audience. See below, 'Historical Possibilities'. 5. While some have suggested that the traditions in this section are 'northern', it is doubtful that one can identify exclusively northern traditions which would not have been known by a prophet in Judah. Hillers notes that even if the traditions were originally northern, they may have quickly assumed an all-Israel perspective (Micah, p. 90; also see Luker, Doom and Hope, p. 212).
208
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
fallen city is Jerusalem, one could reasonably expect to uncover parts of the Zion tradition, if not an explicit reference to that city. The absence of Zion and Davidic traditions argues against identifying the audience which has suffered defeat as the inhabitants of Jerusalem, and suggests that the poem's focus is the northern kingdom. Admittedly, the evidence for a northern audience is not conclusive. On the other hand, it is difficult to adduce any evidence that the subject of the poem is Jerusalem and Judah. The geographical references and the absence of Davidic or Zion traditions suggest the possibility that the audience for whom this lament was intended was a northern one. Subjective Factors The subjective factors in Mic. 7.8-20 are comprised of the prophet's evaluation of the situation and the audience's assessment of its circumstances. The very fact that the prophet utilizes the lament genre reveals a belief that the situation calls for confession, acts of mourning, and an acknowledgment of guilt for the present catastrophe. Moreover, the poem reveals an almost passive attitude concerning the immediate future. The course of action envisioned is not one of resistance and struggle, but one in which the community must quietly bear the wrath of Yahweh and wait for Yahweh to restore the community and execute justice. In fact, any human attempt at restoration is described as ending in further catastrophe. Many have taken vv. 11-12 as a divine oracle which announces the restoration of the community and the return from exile.1 As I have suggested, however, v. 12 appears to be a description of a further disaster which will leave the land completely devastated (v. 13). If this interpretation is correct, vv. 11-13 do not constitute an oracle of salvation, but a warning against any attempt to rebuild defences or rebel against the terms imposed by the enemy's decree. Indeed, 'that day' when the walls are rebuilt and 'that day' when the decree is renounced is the very day when a complete resettlement of the land will take place. It is quite possible that v. 11 reveals the attitude of at least some in 1. Mays, Mic ah, p. 154; Gunkel, 'The Close of Micah', p. 130; D.G. Hagstrom, The Coherence of the Book ofMicah: A Literary Analysis (SBLDS 89; Atlanta: Scholars Press, 1988), p. 109.
6. 'That Day the Decree Will Be Rescinded!': Micah 7.8-20 209 the prophet's audience. If it is necessary for Micah to warn against rebuilding and rebellion, it is logical to assume that some are calling for these very actions. In contrast, the prophet calls for a time of repentance and mourning. The immediate future thus calls for a course of action in which the community bears the wrath of Yahweh. Of course, Micah is not opposed to the restoration and rebuilding of the community. In the prophet's view, however, restoration and renewal—as well as revenge—will come about through Yahweh's direct intervention in history. A time similar to the exodus from Egypt is thus envisioned when Yahweh himself will show signs and wonders, causing all nations to tremble and humiliating the enemies of the community. Micah's view of the time of restoration is also revealed in v. 14. While members of the audience appear to be calling for rebellion and military action, Micah calls for Yahweh to shepherd his people. It may also be significant that Micah's prayer is not for a restoration of military might, but for a time of peace in which those who are now dispossessed can live safely in the best lands which were traditionally claimed by Israel. Undergirding the prophet's belief that restoration will come about as a result of Yahweh's actions is his belief in the faithfulness of Yahweh (v. 18). It is this confidence in the faithfulness of Yahweh that makes it possible to bear Yahweh's wrath and to wait patiently for divine redeeming acts. This same confidence in Yahweh is what Micah must try to instill in his audience as he warns them against taking matters into their own hands and as he invites them to join in repentance and confession. Goals and Strategy Even though Mic. 7.8-20 manifests many features of a liturgy, this material also functions as an attempt to persuade the audience to accept a certain point of view. Since he has composed a lament, the prophet obviously believes that lamentation and confession are appropriate responses to the current situation. As has been noted, however, the objective factors appear to indicate that some in the audience do not share the prophet's conclusions. The liturgy thus has as its goal to persuade its hearers that lamentation, confession and a patient
210
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
acceptance of punishment comprise the best course of action for the immediate future. Mic. 7.8-20 seeks to achieve its goal through a variety of rhetorical devices. An analysis of how the liturgy attempts to persuade is assisted by the following outline: I.
II.
III.
IV.
Thesis: Even though I have fallen, I will rise (8) A. Description of present situation 1. Humiliated by enemy (8a) 2. Fallen, in darkness (8b, c) B. Confidence towards future I . I shall rise (8b) 2. Yahweh will be a light to me (8c) Development of Thesis (9, 10) A. Confession: punishment is justified (9a) B. Expressions of confidence in Yahweh (9b, c) 1. He will plead my cause (9b) 2. He will bring me to light (9c) C. Result of Yahweh's acts to vindicate speaker 1. Enemy will see and be ashamed (lOa) 2. Speaker will see and gloat (lOc) 3. Enemy will be destroyed (lOd) Refutation: Divine warning against revenge (11-13) A. Slogans of those calling for immediate action (11) B. Result of any immediately attempted revenge (12-13) 1. Resettlement of land with foreigners (12) 2. Desolation of the land (13) Reasons to wait confidently on Yahweh (14-20) A. Yahweh is a shepherd to the dispossessed (14) B. Yahweh himself promises restoration (15-17) 1. Yahweh's promise (15) 2. Results of Yahweh's deeds (16, 17) C. Yahweh is incomparable in mercy (18-20) 1. The kind, forgiving nature of Yahweh (18) 2. Application of theological formula to present situation (19-20) a. Complete removal of sin b. Keeping of promise to patriarchs
6. 'That Day the Decree Will Be Rescinded!': Micah 7.8-20 211 The opening verse of the lament sets the tone and concisely states the thesis for the entire liturgy: even though disaster has come, Yahweh will bring a restoration. By use of a direct address to the 'enemy' the speaker very quickly establishes the nature of the relationship among the concerned parties. On the one hand, the 'enemy' who rejoices presumably is responsible for the misfortune of the speaker. On the other hand, the speaker currently suffers, but expects Yahweh to vindicate her. Yahweh is thus presented as an ally of the speaker and an adversary of the enemy. Both the thesis and the interrelationship among Yahweh, the speaker, and the enemy is further developed in the following verses. Verse 9 is a confession in which the speaker acknowledges her sin against Yahweh as well as her confidence that he will vindicate her. With that vindication, the enemy who has served as an instrument for Yahweh's judgment will be punished and humiliated (v. 10). It is clear, however, that the punishment of the enemy is the work of Yahweh who 'executes justice' and causes people to see 'his righteous deeds'. Throughout, the speaker is passive: she is brought out to the light and observes Yahweh's deeds and finally watches with satisfaction as the enemy is trampled like mud in the streets. It is thus clear that Yahweh is the one who is to act while the speaker waits and watches for restoration. How can the audience be convinced to accept the passive role assigned to it? Most scholars recognize that the speaker in vv. 8-10 is a representative of the community or the congregation as it participates, literally or figuratively, in a liturgy of confession and lamentation.1 The audience therefore is not allowed to disengage itself from the rhetorical process. Rather, the hearers must become directly involved, either by speaking the words of confession and lamentation or by deciding if the speaker truly represents their attitudes. In either case, the cultic setting as well as the representative nature of these verses create a powerful emotional appeal that will not allow the audience the privilege of being unmoved spectators. Undergirding the powerful invitation to own the confession and lament is an appeal to the audience's desire for revenge. The prophet clearly suggests that the opportunity to see the destruction of the enemy comes through accepting punishment and allowing Yahweh to 1.
See the list in Hagstrom, Coherence of the Book of Micah, pp. 108-109.
212
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
execute justice by his righteous deeds. The affirmation of Yahweh's faithfulness in these verses comforts the suffering community and intends to create in the audience a willingness to wait for Yahweh to act (v. 9). In v. 10 the prophet paints a vivid picture of the time when the enemy is defeated and the suffering community is able to gloat over her destruction. The description of the destruction of the one who has inflicted suffering no doubt was intended to stir a deep emotional response from the suffering community. Verses 11-13 also address the question of revenge. The fragmentary nature of the sentences in v. 11 suggests that the prophet may be quoting the slogans of those who seek immediate revenge by calling for the rebuilding of defences and the repudiation of the terms decreed by the enemy. Micah uses the slogans against those who quote them by stating that the day of rebuilding and rebellion will result in greater destruction and defeat. These verses thus function as a refutation of those who are calling for immediate rebellion against the enemy. The refutation is based on both an emotional appeal and an appeal to authority. The quotation of calls for rebellion continues to play on the audience's desire for revenge, causing them to become more involved in the liturgy. In addition, the repetition of the key phrase 'that day' builds an intensity which holds the audience's attention. The redundant and comprehensive description in v. 12 paints a vivid picture of a complete resettlement of the land by foreigners. The implication is that the course of action envisioned in v. 11 is futile since the result will be an overwhelming defeat. The prophet's argument at this point is also based on an appeal to authority. Most scholars understand these verses as a divine response to the confession and lament of vv. 8-10.1 Since these words are presented as those of Yahweh himself they represent the highest authority possible for the audience. The prophet now turns his attention to setting forth reasons why Yahweh can be trusted to vindicate his people. In v. 14 the prophet or the people speaks once again. The focus has now changed from a concern for revenge to a concern for those who are now dispossessed by the destruction that has come. Beyond serving as a plea for the safety of those who suffer, the verse reminds its hearers of the intimate relation between Yahweh and 1.
Hagstrom, Coherence of the Book ofMicah, pp. 104-105.
6. 'That Day the Decree Will Be Rescinded!': Micah 7.8-20 213 his people. In metaphorical language, Yahweh is depicted as the shepherd who is concerned for his flock. Indeed, they are his 'inheritance'. Mays notes that the term 'inheritance' eventually 'came to be used for the people as the special possession of YHWH created by his election...'1 The emphasis on the intimate relationship between Yahweh and his people once again invites the audience into a relationship in which they trust Yahweh for guidance as sheep rely on the shepherd to lead them to good pastures. Thus, the metaphor of sheep and shepherd reiterates the relationship established in vv. 8-10. Yahweh is the one who acts and is to be trusted. The people must wait for Yahweh's deeds and depend on his guidance. A second reason that Yahweh is to be trusted to vindicate his people is found in v. 15. Here the intervention of Yahweh which the prophet announced in vv. 9-10 is now promised by Yahweh himself.2 Obviously, the divine announcement utilizes an appeal to authority since the words are attributed to Yahweh. In addition, the reference to the exodus serves as an appeal to Israel's tradition and provides a concrete example of how Yahweh has previously intervened in history. Moreover, the allusion to the exodus invites the audience to consider that such an intervention is again possible. To help his audience imagine another divine intervention in their history, the prophet depicts in vivid language the results of Yahweh's causing the enemy to see wonders. Verses 16-17 describe the fear and humiliation the hostile nations will feel when Yahweh acts to vindicate his people. Verse 16 depicts the effect of Yahweh's deeds on the senses of the enemy. This emphasis on the senses underscores the reality of Yahweh's deeds: they can be seen, and they impact both speech and hearing. Verse 16 thus presents the audience with a vivid picture of the results of Yahweh's intervention by stressing both the reality and the power of his deeds. Similarly, v. 17 presents a concrete picture of the humiliation of the enemy. They will be like a serpent licking the dust. More importantly, v. 17 closes with a reminder that the humiliation of the enemy will be the result of Yahweh's work. The enemy comes trembling to Yahweh and is in fear because of what he has done. The prophet thus 1. Mays, Micah, p. 164. 2. The verbs in the MT are in the first person and need not be emended if it is assumed that Yahweh is the speaker.
214
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
once again returns to his theme that the people are helpless to act and must wait for Yahweh who has promised to show the enemy wonders like the exodus. A final reason Yahweh is to be trusted is that it is his nature to have compassion and not to remain angry (v. 18). Mays has pointed out that these concluding verses sound 'like a hymn composed on the text of the theological formula, "Yahweh, a God compassionate and gracious, slow to anger and abounding in mercy and faithfulness" (Exod. 34.6; Neh. 9.18; Pss. 86.15; 103.8; 145.8; Jon. 4.2)'.! It may well be that the prophet has this familiar formula in mind at this point. If so, these verses appeal to a tradition which was probably well known to the audience. The assertion that Yahweh can be trusted is thus undergirded by an appeal to a tradition which the audience accepted as authoritative. Although the question at the beginning of v. 18 is directed to Yahweh, it is also asked in order to invite the audience to consider the answer. Such leading questions involve the audience in the persuasive process as they formulate the expected answer that Yahweh is incomparable in his mercy. Having obtained the audience's assent that Yahweh is compassionate and merciful, the prophet announces how the merciful nature of Yahweh will make itself known in the present situation (vv. 19-20): Yahweh will have compassion, and remove all sins. Through the repetition of images of God dealing with sin, the prophet focuses the audience's attention on the forgiving nature of Yahweh. The speech closes by again focusing on the intimate relationship between Yahweh and his people. They are his 'inheritance'. Moreover, the reference to Jacob and Abraham reminds the community of its special history and relationship to Yahweh.2 No doubt, the reference to Jacob and Abraham reminded the audience of Yahweh's promises to these patriarchs. It is this special, intimate relationship between Yahweh and the community that invites the audience to trust in Yahweh for their future deliverance.
1. 2.
Mays, Micah, p. 167. Gitay, Prophecy and Persuasion, p. 86.
6. 'That Day the Decree Will Be Rescinded!': Micah 7.8-20 215 Historical Possibilities Among those scholars who find a pre-exilic date for Mic. 7.8-20 a number of settings have been proposed. Perhaps the most extraordinary is the suggestion by Jan Dus that this material dates to 1100 BCE and reflects the situation following the capture of the ark by the Philistines. 1 The evidence for such an early date is not strong, however. Dus finds the question in v. 10 ('Where is Yahweh?') to be a mocking question asked by the enemies who have captured the ark upon which Yahweh is enthroned. Dus' proposal, however, is unable to account adequately for other elements of the poem such as the references to Bashan and Gilead and the description of the arrival of peoples from other lands (v. 12). In addition, his argument is based in part on the doubtful suggestion that v. 14 is a reference to Yahweh.2 Finally, the lack of even a remote reference to the ark or the Philistines underscores the fragile nature of Dus' conclusions. The time of Tiglath-Pileser's 734-32 BCE campaign has been proposed as a likely setting for all or part of Mic. 7.8-20.3 Scholars supporting this historical background interpret the references to Bashan and Gilead as an indication that Israel must have recently lost these areas. According to 2 Kgs 15.29 Tiglath-Pileser III captured 'Ijon, Abel-bet-maacah, Janoah, Kedesh, Hazor, Gilead, and Galilee, and the land of Naphtali, and he carried the people captive to Assyria'. This information must be evaluated carefully, however, since other evidence suggests that these areas were lost to Israelite control before 734 BCE.4 Tiglath-Pileser describes the boundaries of Syria as reaching from 'Mount Lebanon as far as the town of Gilead and the town of Abel-beth-Maacah which are on the borderland of the land of BethOmri...' 5 The implication is that these territories were in 734 1. Dus, 'Micha 7', pp. 14-22. 2. Dus, 'Micha 7', pp. 21-22. 3. Those accepting a date of 734-32 include Smith, Twelve Prophets, p. 373; Willis, 'Hope Oracle', p. 72. 4. On the basis of Assyrian inscriptions (III R, 10; Layard, 29b) Irvine concludes that Syria's southern border at the time of the Syro-Ephraimite crisis included not only Bashan and Golan, but also the Galilean hill country (Isaiah, Ahaz, pp. 96-98). 5. ANET, p. 284 reconstructed in light of ND 400, 4301 and 4305. See H. Tadmor, The Southern Border of Aram', IEJ 12 (1962), pp. 114-17;
216
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
considered part of Syria rather than Israel. In fact, it is quite likely that Syria had annexed the areas of Bashan and Gilead before 734 BCE. Amos, prophesying in the reign of Jeroboam II, says of Damascus, 'they have threshed Gilead with threshing sledges of iron' (Amos 1.3). It might also be added that nothing in Mic. 7.1 suggests that these territories have been lost recently or that their populations have been taken into exile. Certainly the text implies that these areas are not under Israelite control, but it is doubtful that Israel ever held firm control of the Transjordan during much of the eighth century. In any case, the reference to Bashan and Gilead does not obligate one to date this material to the time immediately after the 734-32 BCE campaigns of Tiglath-Pileser. Other obstacles stand in the way of associating Mic. 7.8-20 with the Assyrian campaigns of 734-32. It is not clear that the northern kingdom suffered great destruction during Tiglath-Pileser's suppression of the rebellion. The overthrow of Pekah and the submission of Hoshea probably averted major military action against the heart of Israel and spared Samaria a direct attack from the Assyrian army.1 Assyrian inscriptions report some deportations and the confiscation of territory, although it not clear whether the territory was Syrian or Israelite (see above). However, Tiglath-Pileser's statement, 'Samaria alone I left', suggests that the interior of Israel was spared the brunt of Assyrian reprisals.2 It is thus doubtful that the northern capital and community could describe itself as 'fallen' in the time immediately after 732 BCE. A time when Samaria and Israel could be described as 'fallen' and under terms decreed by an enemy is the period immediately after the Assyrians captured Samaria itself. The fact that the conquest of Samaria is attributed to both Shalmaneser V and Sargon II suggests that Assyrian action against the city involved two phases.3 First, according to 2 Kgs 17.1-16 the city was captured by Shalmaneser at the end of a three-year siege in the ninth year of D.J. Wiseman, Two Historical Inscriptions from Nimrod', Iraq 13 (1951), pp. 2126 and 'A Fragmentary Inscription of Tiglath-Pileser III from Nimrod', Iraq 18 (1956), pp. 117-29. 1. This is the conclusion of Irvine, Isaiah, Ahaz, pp. 107-8. 2. Layard, 66. See translation and discussion in Irvine, Isaiah, Ahaz, p. 58. 3. This is the conclusion of H. Tadmor, 'The Campaigns of Sargon II of Assur: A Chronological-Historical Study', JCS 12 (1958). This same conclusion is reached by Hayes and Hooker, A New Chronology, pp. 72-73.
6. 'That Day the Decree Will Be Rescinded!': Micah 7.8-20 217 Hoshea (722-21 BCE). This information is confirmed by the Babylonian Chronicles, which report that Shalmaneser 'broke' the city of Samaria.1 Dalley points out that the verb 'broke' could reflect a usage which 'may have its origins in the successful culmination of a siege, in the breaching of the walls of the national frontiers'.2 That Shalmaneser breached the walls of Samaria and captured the city appears to be certain. It is unlikely, however, that Shalmaneser was able to deport a large portion of the population of Samaria as is reported in 2 Kgs 17.6. The Babylonian Chronicles report that Shalmaneser V died in the winter of his fifth year; that is, late in 722 or early 721 BCE. There was probably not enough time between the fall of Samaria and the death of the Assyrian ruler to allow Shalmaneser to complete the deportation of the population and to provincialize Samaria. Indeed, the rise of Sargon and the serious domestic unrest in Assyria may have led to the withdrawal of Assyrian troops not only from Samaria, but also from most of the western provinces. A variety of sources reveal that Sargon's accession was greeted with both domestic unrest and a rebellion by the Elamites.3 When Sargon had established himself on the throne and quelled the resistance to his rule within Assyria, he faced a task of suppressing rebellion by a coalition of western states including Hamath, Arpad, Simirra, Damascus and Samaria.4 Although the exact sequence of events is not certain, a number of Assyrian inscriptions report that in the course of suppressing this rebellion Sargon II conquered Samaria, deported some 27,900 of its 1. A.K. Grayson, Assyrian and Babylonian Chronicles (Locust Valley, NY: J.J. Augustin, 1975), p. 73. 2. S. Dalley, 'Foreign Chariotry and Cavalry in the Armies of Tiglath-Pileser III and Sargon II', Iraq 47 (1985), p. 33. 3. See the discussion and references by Tadmor, 'The Campaigns of Sargon II', pp. 37-38. Also see Dalley, 'Foreign Chariotry', pp. 33-34. The extent of the unrest is revealed by the Borowski Stela, which indicates that thousands of Assyrian troops in Syria rebelled against his rule and were resettled in the west. See discussion in O.W. Muscarella (ed.), Ladders to Heaven: Art Treasures from Lands of the Bible (Toronto: McClelland and Stewart, 1981), p. 125. Verse 12 probably indicate that the speaker is aware of the rebellion against Sargon by his own forces, if not the resettlement of some of those already in the west 4. ANET, p. 285.
218
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
inhabitants, rebuilt the city and settled people from other parts of the empire in Israel.1 The so-called Khorsabad Annals place this conquest of Samaria in the first year of Sargon (722-21 BCE).2 This date is almost certainly incorrect, however, since other inscriptions indicate that Sargon's conquest of Samaria occurred in 720.3 In addition, the serious domestic unrest Sargon encountered probably prevented him from dealing with any problems in the west in his first year. Finally, Tadmor has shown that the Khorsabad Annals along with parallel accounts in the Display Inscription are based on a primary source that is arranged geographically rather than chronologically.4 These factors thus suggest that those sources that place Sargon's conquest of Samaria in 720 BCE are more reliable. It is thus probable that Assyrian conquest and provincialization of Samaria occurred in two phases. Shortly after Shalmaneser took the city, Assyrian forces had to withdraw, preventing the completion of deportation and provincialization. The unrest at the time of the death of Shalmaneser and the rise of Sargon afforded an opportunity for Samaria along with several other states to revolt once again. In 720, Sargon took the city and was able to carry out deportations and resettle foreign populations in the area.5 The time suggested by the objective factors of Mic. 7.8-20 is the period after Shalmaneser had conquered the city late in 722 or early in 721, but before the final capture by Sargon II in 720 BCE. More precisely, it may be that the liturgy reflects conditions after the death of Shalmaneser when Samaria was involved in yet another rebellion against Assyria. In the first place, the fact that v. 12 only threatens the introduction of foreigners into the land indicates that the time is one before the final resettlement of Samaria was carried out by Sargon. In addition, after the conquest of Samaria in 722 the city and the northern kingdom itself could accurately be described as 'fallen' (Mic. 7.8) 1. ANET, pp. 284-85. 2. ANET, p. 284. See the translation and discussion by Tadmor, 'The Campaigns of Sargon IF, pp. 33-36. 3. ANET, p. 285. 4. Tadmor, The Campaigns of Sargon IF, p. 36. 5. Tadmor suggests the date of 716 BCE for the resettlement of Samaria although the evidence is not conclusive and it is not clear why Sargon would have waited four years to resettle the city and begin rebuilding (The Campaigns of Sargon IF, pp. 38-39).
6. 'That Day the Decree Will Be Rescinded!': Micah 7.8-20 219 and suffering the humiliation of defeat by the enemy (vv. 9, 10). If Shalmaneser did in fact breach the walls of Samaria as is suggested by the Babylonian Chronicles, then it is clear why Mic. 7.12 refers to a 'building of walls'. Finally, the fact that the community is under a 'decree' of the enemies corresponds well to the time after 722 when Shalmaneser had decided to provincialize the northern kingdom. The call for a rebuilding of walls and the removal of the 'decree' of the enemy thus points to a time when some in Samaria were calling for yet another rebellion against Assyria. Such a time would be during Sargon's preoccupation with domestic matters and rebellion in the east. Micah is well aware that while Assyria may have been weakened, she was still powerful. In vv. 12-13 the prophet makes it clear that further acts of rebellion will result in even more destruction and the bringing of foreign populations into the land. Micah obviously realizes that further rebellion by Samaria would be dealt with in a harsh manner and thus addresses the futility of revolting against Assyria (vv. 11-13) and argues for an acceptance of punishment as a means of averting even greater disaster (vv. 8-10). In many ways, the rebellion by the western states in the absence of Assyrian power provided a possible opportunity for Samaria to avoid the deportation and resettlement that Shalmaneser had decreed. If Samaria had remained loyal to Assyria, or at least refused to participate in further rebellion, she might reasonably have expected lenient treatment when and if Assyria reasserted control over the area. Thus Micah calls for the people to bear their punishment and wait for Yahweh to act. On the other hand, further rebellion by Samaria which had already caused the Assyrians so much trouble would undoubtedly bring even greater destruction when Assyria was able to attack. In particular, the greater destruction that can be expected is the resettlement of the area by people from other conquered areas as well as the deportation of others. Thus the land itself is 'desolate' because of the deeds of the people while at the same time foreigners come to the cities and are settled here. In other words, Samaria would be treated the way the Assyrians treated all states who had repeatedly rebelled against them. Once again, it is not known where or if this liturgy was observed. While it is not impossible that such a liturgy was composed for use in Samaria, it may be more probable that the intended audience were
220
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
citizens of the north who had come to Jerusalem and the south either temporarily or as refugees. If the ritual of lamentation accompanying the liturgy took place in Jerusalem, it is likely that the setting was the temple. Moreover, the audience would have included not only persons from the north, but also many Judeans and citizens of Jerusalem. Micah's liturgy is thus a warning to the leadership of Judah as well as a warning to the citizens of the north regarding future political actions.
SUMMARY AND CONCLUSIONS This study began with the observation that, in general, two approaches have been taken to the interpretation of the book of Micah. On the one hand, scholars, following the lead of Stade, have concluded that the material that is derived from the eighth-century prophet is restricted to the first three chapters of Micah. The remaining material is thought to differ in message and style from Micah 1-3 and to presuppose historical circumstances of the exilic and post-exilic periods. This conclusion is thought to be supported by similarities in vocabulary and themes between Micah 4-7 and later prophetic works. On the other hand, some scholars have been reluctant to assign all of Micah 4-7 to a time later than Micah. While recognizing differences in themes and style, it is argued that these differences can be explained by changes in historical circumstances during Micah's ministry. These scholars are unconvinced by most of the arguments that the themes and vocabulary of Micah 4-7 presuppose a time later than the eighth century. To a large extent, the present study was prompted by the suggestion of scholars in this second group that differences within the book of Micah can be explained by changes in circumstances during the time of Micah. Working from the assumption that the role of the prophets in Israel was similar to that of the orators of ancient Greece, this investigation explored rhetorical situations and themes to define six discourses in the book of Micah. Within each of these speeches a variety of persuasive methods and styles are employed. The limits and unity of these discourses were further defined by observations concerning progression of thought, the logical arrangements of arguments and proofs, and, in some cases, various devices which indicate the beginning and conclusion of the speech. In addition to demonstrating the unity of each discourse, a detailed examination of the rhetorical situation demonstrated that each speech addresses a unique matrix of events and circumstances.
222
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
(1) Mic. 1.2-16. This first discourse remains in many ways the most enigmatic and difficult in the book of Micah. Extensive use of wordplay and short, almost fragmentary addresses often obscure the meaning of the verses. Nevertheless, a number of conclusions concerning the rhetorical situation addressed by this discourse were reached. First, the speech addresses the capitals and perhaps the kings of Samaria and Jerusalem. In contrast to the general interpretation of this material, the situation presupposes not an invasion by a foreign army, but the defection and disloyalty of cities in the Shephelah and, by implication, cities in the northern kingdom. The national policies pursued by the capital cities are viewed as the reason for the chaos described in this discourse. The greater guilt, however, lies with Samaria whose destruction is announced at an unspecified future time by a foe whom the prophet does not name. (2) Mic. 2.1-13. In contrast to the preceding discourse, the focus in Mic. 2.1-13 is a powerful, clearly defined group within the nation which is guilty of acts of violence involving the taking of land. The oppressed are not the poor and defenseless, however. Rather, the victims are landowners who are 'averse to war'; that is, they are opposed to policies that would lead to war. Micah announces a reversal of fate in which the powerful aggressors will be defeated and their lands portioned out to others. The speech closes with a description of the prophet's basis for confidence: a king approved and led by Yahweh has already gone forth into battle. (3) Mic. 3.1-4.8. The leaders of the nation are addressed in this discourse. In particular, they are accused of failing to acknowledge a specific decision or judgment. As a result, they are depicted as carving up the nation with the encouragement and assistance of prophets. Their deeds are described as an attempt to 'build Zion with blood'. While the exact meaning of this accusation is not clear, it is certain that the prophet holds these leaders responsible for what appears to be the certain destruction of Jerusalem. Mic. 4.1-8 does not negate the judgment described in 3.1-12; rather these verses confirm that judgment by offering a description of the time after destruction. The speech closes with a declaration that the power and prestige which the Davidic house once enjoyed will return when Yahweh restores and transforms Jerusalem. (4) Mic. 4.9-5.14. This discourse is the longest in the book and addresses a situation in which Jerusalem is under siege. The
Summary and Conclusions
223
aggressors against Jerusalem are not the Assyrians but the Israelites led by the 'ruler of Israel'. Throughout this discourse Micah addresses the fears and doubts created by the crisis of siege. In particular, he utilizes traditional material about Zion and David to exhort the population of Jerusalem to stand firm and trust in the present king in Jerusalem. The discourse seeks to persuade the audience that deliverance is to be found on Zion and that the present king is to be the ideal ruler from the house of David. Further, the discourse attempts to calm fears about Assyrian intervention and closes with a description of a transformed Israel. (5) Mic. 6.1-7.7. A number of factors were found to indicate that this discourse is addressed primarily to the king and rulers of Israel, or more specifically, of Samaria. The king is accused of failing to execute his responsibilities and the rulers are described as conspiring together for evil purposes. The accusation against the leadership is summed up in the statement that the policies of Omri and Ahab have been followed. As a result of this course of action, Micah foresees punishment in the form of destruction by war. The speech closes with a description of a chaotic society and the prophet's vow to trust in Yahweh. (6) Mic. 7.8-20. It is probable that the final discourse of the book is also addressed to Samaria. The city has suffered defeat, but some of its inhabitants are determined to rebuild and to renounce the decree imposed upon them by their conquerors. In contrast, Micah declares that such a course of action will result in the resettlement of the land by foreign populations. In order to avoid such a fate, Micah encourages the city to bear its judgment with lamentation and confession. He also petitions Yahweh to show kindness to the defeated people and to subdue the enemy with a demonstration of his power. The discourse closes with a declaration of Yahweh's compassion and faithfulness. By taking into account the rhetorical situation it was possible to offer an evaluation of historical backgrounds that have been proposed for each discourse. In general, the historical circumstances usually suggested for the material were found to be inappropriate. While most scholars limit the ministry of Micah to a short period of time, the variety of rhetorical situations presupposed by the speeches in Micah point to a much longer period of activity. In particular, the present investigation proposed that the earliest discourse dates to a time before the death of Jeroboam II and the latest to a time between 722 and 720
224
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
BCE. Following are the proposed historical settings for each discourse. (1) Mic. 1.2-16 dates to the reign of Jotham before the death of Jeroboam II (747). The pro-Assyrian policy of Jeroboam II, the splintering of the kingdoms of Judah and Israel, and the spirit of cooperation between Jerusalem and Samaria are characteristic of this period and seem to be reflected in the discourse. The loss of territory in the Shephelah is probably to be interpreted as a rebellion against the pro-Assyrian stance of Jerusalem and Samaria. (2) Mic. 2.1-13 probably dates to the time of Menahem's coup. The factional struggle reflected in the discourse may be a struggle between those who want to rebel against Assyria and those who are proAssyrian. While such factions probably existed throughout the latter half of the eighth century, the description of a king whose going forth to battle is expected to bring punishment to the aggressors may point to the time of the struggle between Menahem and Shallum for control of Samaria. (3) Mic. 3.1-4.8 may reflect the time after Pekah's takeover in Samaria. Samaria's move to an anti-Assyrian position was expected to bring Ahaz and Jerusalem into the anti-Assyrian camp. Ahaz decided not to join the anti-Assyrian coalition, however. This decision was not supported by many not only in Judah but also in Jerusalem itself. The refusal of many leaders to accept Ahaz's decision is reflected throughout this discourse. (4) Mic. 4.9-5.14 presupposes the Syro-Ephraimite siege of Jerusalem which occurred shortly after the death of Uzziah. The panic caused by the siege and the lack of confidence in Ahaz are reflected in the speech. In response to those who are in favor of joining the antiAssyrian coalition, Micah spells out the conditions under which Jerusalem and Judah will assume a place in such an alliance. (5) Mic. 6.1-7.7 is probably to be dated to a time shortly before the arrest of Hoshea in 725 BCE. The accusation that the city has followed the policies of Omri and Ahab may be a reference to Hoshea's attempt to imitate those kings by participating in an alliance against Assyria. The speech may thus reflect that time when Hoshea was negotiating with Egypt for support against Assyria. The tone of the speech suggests that Assyrian reprisals are imminent. (6) Mic. 7.8-20 addresses the inhabitants of Samaria sometime after the first capture of the city in 722-21. Shalmaneser's death and widespread domestic unrest in Assyria gave the city an opportunity to
Summary and Conclusions
225
participate in another revolt against Assyria. Micah sees such action as hastening the time when Assyria will carry out planned deportations and resettlements. The present investigation reaches conclusions about the message and ministry of Micah which are dramatically different from those of most scholars. Micah appears not as a rural prophet protesting the economic exploitation of peasants by the ruling elite, but as a skilled orator addressing the critical issues of national and international political life. Moreover, the discourses in the book of Micah reveal that the prophet was a strong supporter of the Davidic king, especially Ahaz. Perhaps most important is the prophet's unwavering conviction that, barring extraordinary circumstances, participation in a coalition against Assyria was an unwise and unfaithful act which Yahweh, as guarantor of the oath of allegiance to Assyria, would punish. It is in the task of conveying this conviction to others that Micah employed his considerable persuasive skills and produced the discourses which comprise a record of his ministry and times.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Abel, P.M., Geographic de la Palestine (2 vols., Paris: Gabalda, 1938). Aharoni, Y., 'Trial Excavation in the "Solar Shrine" of Lachish: Preliminary Report', IEJ 18 (1968), pp. 157-69. —The Land of the Bible: A Historical Geography (Philadelphia: Westminster Press, 2nd edn, 1979). Ahlstrom, G.W., "eder\ VT 17 (1967), pp. 1-7. —'Is Tell ed-Duweir Ancient Lachish?', PEQ 112 (1980), pp. 7-9. Albright, W.F., 'The Sites of Ekron, Gath, and Libnah', AASOR II-III (1923), pp. 7-12. Allen, L.C., The Book of Joel, Obadiah, Jonah, and Micah (NICOT; Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1976). Alt, A., 'Die Territorialgeschichtliche Bedeutung von Sanheribs Eingriff in Pala'stina', Kleine Schriften II (Munich: Beck'sche Verlagsbuchhandlung, 1953), pp. 24249. —'Micha 2.1-5 Ges anadasmos in Juda', NTT 56 (1955), pp. 13-23. Alter, R., The Art of Biblical Poetry (New York: Basic Books, 1985). Anderson, F.I., 'Yahweh the Kind and Sensitive God', in P.T. O'Brien and D.G. Peterson (eds.), God Who Is Rich In Mercy (Grand Rapids: Baker, 1986), pp. 41-88. Anderson, G., 'A Study of Micah vi, 1-8', SJT 4 (1951), pp. 191-97. Bailey, R.C., A Critical Investigation of 2 Samuel 10-12 and Its Implications for the So-Called Throne Succession Narrative (dissertation, Emory University, 1987). Barr<5, M.L., 'Cuneiform Parallels to Ps. 86.16-17 and Mic. 7.16-17', JBL 101 (1982), pp. 271-75. Bartlett, J.R., "The Use of the Word r'oS as a Title in the Old Testament', VT 19 (1969), pp. 1-10. Beck, G.W. Van, 'Mount Carmel', IDB, I, p. 538. Beyerlin, W., Die Kulttraditionen Israels in der Verkiindigung des Propheten Micha (FRLANT 54; GSttingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 1959). Bissel, E.G., 'The Use of 'br and Its Compounds in the Hexateuch', Hebraica 2 (188384), pp. 9-12. Bitzer, L., 'The Rhetorical Situation', in W.R. Fisher (ed.), Rhetoric: A Tradition in Transition (Ann Arbor: University of Michigan Press, 1974), pp. 247-66. Black, C.C., 'Keeping Up with Recent Studies XVI. Rhetorical Criticism and Biblical Interpretation', ExpTim 100 (1988-89), pp. 252-58. Blenkinsopp, J., A History of Prophecy in Israel (Philadelphia: Westminster Press, 1983). Bliss, F. Jones, and R.A. Stewart Macalister, Excavations in Palestine During the Years 1898-1900 (London: Harrison and Son, 1902).
Bibliography
221
Boogart, T.A., Reflections on the Restoration: A Study of Prophecies in Micah and Isaiah About the Restoration of Northern Israel (dissertation, Gro'ningen, 1981). Bordreuil, P., 'Miche"e 4.10-13 et ses paralleles ougaritiques', Semitica 21 (1971), pp. 21-28. Boyd, B., 'Lachish', IDBSup, p. 526. Bright, J., A History of Israel (Philadelphia: Westminster Press, 2nd edn, 1976). Brinkman, J.A., 'Merodach-Baladan II', in R.D. Biggs and J.A. Brinkman (eds.), Studies Presented to A.L Oppenheim (Chicago: Oriental Institute, 1964), pp. 653. Brongers, H.A., 'Bemerkungen zum Gebrauch des Adverbialen W'ATTAH im Alten Testament', VT 15 (1965), pp. 289-99. Brueggemann, W., 'Vine and Fig Tree: A Case Study in Imagination and Criticism', CBQ 43 (1981), pp. 188-204. Bryant, D.J., 'Micah 4.14-5.14: An Exegesis', ResQ 21 (1978), pp. 210-30. Biichler, A., "eder = Fell in LXX zu Micha 2,8', ZAW 30 (1910), pp. 64-65. Budde, K., 'Die Ra'tsel von Micha 1', ZAW 37 (1917-18), pp. 77-108. —'Micha ii und iii', ZAW 37 (1919-20), pp. 2-22. —'Eine folgenschwere Redaction des Zwolfprophetenbuchs', ZAW 39 (1921), pp. 318-29. —'Verfasser und Stelle von Mi. 4, 1-4 (Jes. 2, 2-4)', ZDMG 81 (1927), pp. 152-58. Bullinger, E.W., Figures of Speech in the Bible (London: Messer, Eyre, and Spottiswoode, 1898; repr. Grand Rapids: Baker, 1968). Burke, K., 'Mysticism as a Solution to the Poet's Dilemma', in S.R. Hopper (ed.), Spiritual Problems in Contemporary Literature (New York: Harper, 1957), pp. 95-115. Burkitt, F., 'Micah 6 and 7: a Northern Prophecy', JBL 45 (1926), pp. 159-61. Buss, M., The Prophetic Word of Hosea: A Morphological Study (BZAW 111; Berlin: Topelmann, 1969). Calderone, P., "The Rivers of "Masor"', Bib 42 (1961), pp. 423-32. Cannawurf, E., "The Authenticity of Micah IV 1-4', VT 13 (1963), pp. 26-33. Carreira, J. Nunes, 'Micha—ein Altester von Moreschet?', 77Z 90 (1981), pp. 19-28. Carrier, A.S., "The hapax legomena of the Minor Prophets', Hebraica 5 (1888-89), pp. 209-14. Cathcart, K.J., 'Notes on Micah 5.4-5', Bib 49 (1968), pp. 511-14. —'Micah 5.4-5 and Semitic Incantations', Bib 59 (1978), pp. 38-48. Gazelles, H., 'Historic et gdographie en Miche"e4.6-13', in Fourth World Congress of Jewish Studies (Papers I; Jerusalem: World Union of Jewish Studies, 1967), pp. 87-89. —'Micah', EncJud, XI, pp. 1480-83. Childs, B.S., Introduction to the Old Testament as Scripture (Philadelphia: Fortress Press, 1979). Christensen, D.L., 'The Identity of "King S." in Egypt (2 Kings XVII 4)', VT 39 (1989), pp. 140-53. Collin, M., 'Recherches sur 1'histoire Textuelle du Prophete Michee', VT 21 (1971), pp. 281-97. Conder, E.R., 'The Onomasticon', PEFQS 28 (1896), pp. 229-52. Cook, H.J., 'Pekah', VT 14 (1964), pp. 121-35.
228
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
Coppens, J., 'Le Cadre littfiraire de Michde V, 1-5', in Hans Goedicke (ed.), Near Eastern Studies in honor of W.F. Albright (Baltimore: Johns Hopkins, 1971), pp. 57-62. Corbett, E.P.J., Classical Rhetoric for the Modern Student (New York: Oxford University Press, 2nd edn, 1971). Cowley, A. (ed.), Aramaic Papyri of the Fifth Century BC (Osnabriick: Otto Zeller, 1967). Crenshaw, J.L., Prophetic Conflict (BZAW 124; New York: de Gruyter, 1971). —'w e dorek 'al bamdtl'ares', CBQ 34 (1972), pp. 39-53. Crook, M.B., 'The Promise in Micah 5', JBL 70 (1951), pp. 313-20. —'Did Amos and Micah Know Isaiah 9, 2-7 and 11, 1-9?', JBL 73 (1954), pp. 144-51. Cross, P.M., and D.N. Freedman, 'The Song of Miriam', JNES 14 (1955), pp. 248-29. Cuffey, K.H., The Coherence of Micah: A Review of the Proposals and a New Interpretation (dissertation, Drew University, 1987). Dalley, S., 'Foreign Chariotry and Cavalry in the Armies of Tiglath-Pileser III and Sargon II', Iraq 47 (1985), pp. 31-48. Daniels, D.R., 'Is there a "Prophetic Lawsuit" Genre?' ZAW 99 (1987), pp. 339-60. Davies, G.I., 'Tell ed-Duweir = Ancient Lachish: A Response to G.W. Ahlstrom', PEQ 114 (1982) pp. 25-28. Dearman, J.A., Property Rights in the Eighth-Century Prophets (SBLDS 106; Atlanta: Scholars Press, 1988). Demsky, A., 'The Houses of Achzib: A Critical Note on Micah 1.14b', IEJ 16 (1966), pp. 211-15. De Roche, M., 'Yahweh's Rib against Israel: A Reassessment of the So-called "Prophetic Lawsuit" in the Pre-exilic Prophets', JBL 102 (1983), pp. 563-74. De Vries, S., Prophet Against Prophet (Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1978). Diessler, A., 'Micha 6, 1-8: Der Rechsstreit Jahwes mit Israel um das rechte Bundesverhaltnis', 7TZ 68 (1959), pp. 229-34. Donat, H., 'Micha 2, 6-9', BZ 9 (1911), pp. 350-66. Donner, H., Israel unter den Volkern (VTSup 11; Leiden: Brill, 1964). —'The Separate States of Israel and Judah', in J.H.Hayes and J.M. Miller (eds.), Israelite and Judean History (Philadelphia: Westminster Press, 1977), pp. 381434. Donner, H,, and W. ROllig, Kanaanaische itnd Aramaische Inschriften I (Wiesbaden: Otto Harassowitz, 1971). Driver, G.R., 'Linguistic and Textual Problems: Minor Prophets II', JTS 39 (1938), pp. 260-73. Duhm, B., Die Theologie der Propheten (Bonn: Verlag von Adolph Marcus, 1875). —'Anmerkungen zu den Zwfflfpropheten', ZAW 31 (1911), pp. 81-110. —The Twelve Prophets (trans. A. Duff; London: A. and C. Black, 1912). Dus, J., 'Weiteres zum nordisraelitischen Psalm Micha 7', ZDMG 115 (1965), pp. 1422. Ehrman, A., 'A Note on Micah II, 7', VT 20 (1970), pp. 86-87. —'A Note on Micah VI, 14', VT 23 (1973), pp. 103-5. Eissfeldt, O., 'Bin Psalm aus Nord-Israel', ZDMG 112 (1962), pp. 259-68; Kleine Schriften, IV (Tubingen: Mohr, 1968), pp. 63-72.
Bibliography
229
—The Old Testament: An Introduction (trans. P.R. Ackroyd; New York: Harper & Row, 1965). Elliger, K., 'Die Heimat des Prophetes Micha', ZDPV 57 (1934), pp. 81-152. Erlandsson, S., 'zdndh', TDOT, IV, pp. 99-104. Ewald, H., Die Propheten des Alien Bundes, I (GOttingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 2nd edn, 1867). Fohrer, G., 'Micha 1', in F. Maas (ed.), Das Feme und das nahe Wort (Festschrift Rost) (BZAW 105; Berlin: Topelmann, 1967), pp. 65-80. —Introduction to the Old Testament (Nashville: Abingdon Press, 1968). Fox, M.V., 'Jeremiah 2.2 and the "Desert Ideal'", CBQ 35 (1973), pp. 441-50. —'The Rhetoric of Ezekiel's Vision of the Valley of the Bones', HUCA 51 (1980), pp. 1-15. Freedman, D.N., 'Deuteronomistic History', IDBSup, pp. 227-28. —'Discourse on Prophetic Discourse', in H.B. Huffmon et al. (eds.), The Quest for the Kingdom of God: Studies in Honor of George E. Mendenhall (Winona Lake, IN: Eisenbrauns, 1983), pp. 141-58. —'Headings in the Books of the Eighth-Century Prophets', AUSS 25 (1987), pp. 9-26. Fritz, V., 'Das Wort gegen Samaria: Mi 1, 2-7', ZAW 86 (1974), pp. 316-31. Fullerton, K., 'Isaiah's Earliest Prophecy Against Ephraim', AJSL 33 (1916-17), pp. 9-39. Gadd, C.J., 'Inscribed Prisms of Sargon II from Nimrud', Iraq 16 (1954), pp. 173-201. Gerstenberger, E., 'The Woe Oracle of the Prophets', JBL 81 (1962), pp. 249-63. —'Psalms', in J.H. Hayes (ed.), Old Testament Form Criticism (San Antonio, TX: Trinity University Press, 1977), pp. 179-223. Gevaryahu, H.M.I., 'Biblical Colphons: A Source for the "Biography" of Authors, Texts, and Books', VTSup 28 (1975), pp. 42-59. Gitay, Y., 'A Study of Amos' Art of Speech: A Rhetorical Analysis of Amos 3.1-15', CBQ 42 (1980), pp. 293-309. —'Deutero-Isaiah: Oral or Written?' JBL 99 (1980), pp. 185-97. —Prophecy And Persuasion: A Study of Isaiah 40-48 (FThL 14; Bonn: Linguistica Biblica, 1981). —'Reflections on the Study of Prophetic Discourse: The Question of Isaiah I 2-20', VT 33 (1983), pp. 210-21. Gliick, J.J., 'Nagid-Shepherd', VT 13 (1963), pp. 144-50. Glueck, N., 'Das Wort hesed im alttestamentlichen Sprachgebrauche als menschlich und gottliche gemeinschaftgemasse Verhaltungsweise (Giessen: Topelmann, 1927) = E.L. Epstein (ed.), A. Gottschalk (trans.), Hesed in the Bible (Cincinnati: Hebrew Union College Press, 1967). Goetze, A., 'Warfare in Asia Minor', Iraq 25-26 (1963-64), pp. 124-30. Gold, V.R., 'Adullam', IDB, I, p. 51. —'Mareshah', IDB, III, pp. 263-64. —'Moresheth-Gath', IDB, III, p. 438. Goldschla'ger, A., 'Towards a Semiotics of Authoritarian Discourse', Poetics Today 3 (1982), pp. 11-20. Gordis, R., 'Sectional Rivalry in the Kingdom of Judah', JQR ns 25 (1934-35), pp. 237-59.
230
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
—'Quotations as a Literary Usage in Biblical, Oriental and Rabbinic Literature', HUCA 22 (1949), pp. 157-219. Gordon, R.R., 'Micah VII 19 and Akkadian kabasu', VT28 (1978), p. 355. Gottwald, N.K., The Tribes of Yahweh: A Sociology of the Religion of Liberated Israel (Maryknoll: Orbis Books, 1979). Gowan, D.E., 'The Beginning of Exile-Theology and the Root glh\ ZAW 87 (1975), pp. 204-7. Graham, W., 'Some Suggestions toward the Interpretation of Micah 1.10-16', AJSL 47 (1931), pp. 237-58. Gray, J., "The Kingship of God in the Prophets and Psalms', VT 11 (1961), pp. 1-29. —/ and II Kings (OTL; Philadelphia: Westminster Press, 2nd edn, 1970 [1963]). Grayson, A.K., Assyrian Royal Inscription (Wiesbaden: Otto Harrassowitz, 1972). —Assyrian and Babylonian Chronicles (Locust Valley, NY: J.J. Augustin, 1975). Greenberg, M, Ezekiel 1-20 (AB 22; New York: Doubleday, 1983). Greenstein, E.L., 'Theory and Argument in Biblical Criticism', HAR 10 (1986), pp. 77-93. Gunkel, H., Die Propheten (GOttingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 1917). —'Der Micha-Schluss. Zur Einfuhrung in die literaturgeschichtliche Arbeit itn Alten Testament', ZS 2 (1923). [ET: 'The Close of Micah: A Prophetical Liturgy', in What Remains of the Old Testament (New York: Macmillan, 1928), pp. 115-49]. —'The Israelite Prophecy from the time of Amos', in J. Pelikan (ed.), Twentieth Century Theology in the Making (New York: Harper & Row, 1969), pp. 48-75. Hagstrom, D.G., The Coherence of the Book ofMicah: A Literary Analysis (SBLDS 89; Atlanta: Scholars Press, 1988). Hatevy, J., *Le livre de Michee', Revue Semitique 12 (1904), pp. 97-117, 193-216, 289-312; 13 (1905), pp. 1-22. Halper, B., "The Root TNN'.AJSL 24 (1907-08), pp. 366-69. Hamilton, R.W., 'Lachish', 1DB, III, pp. 53-54. Hammershaimb, E., 'Some Leading Ideas in the Book of Micah', in Some Aspects of OT Prophecy from Isaiah to Malachi (Teologiske Skriften, 4; Copenhagen: Rosenkelde og Baggen, 1966), pp. 29-50. Harrelson, W., 'Nonroyal Motifs in the Royal Eschatology', in B.W. Anderson and W. Harrelson (eds.), Israel's Prophetic Heritage (New York: Harper and Brothers, 1962), pp. 147-65. Harvey, J., 'Le "Rib-Pattern", r£quisitoire prophe'tique sur la rupture 1'Alliance', Bib 43 (1962), pp. 172-96. Hasel, G.F., 'Remnant', IDBSup, pp. 735-36. Hatch, E., and H.A. Redpath, A Concordance to the Septuagint and Other Greek Versions of the Old Testament (3 vols.; repr. Graz, 1954 [1892-1906]). Haupt, P., 'Critical Notes on Micah', AJSL 26 (1910), pp. 201-52. —'Micah's Capucinade', JBL 29 (1910), pp. 85-112. —'The Book of Micah', AJSL 27 (1911), pp. 1-63. Hayes, J.H., 'The History of the Form Critical Study of Prophecy', SBLSP (1973), pp. 60-99. Hayes, J.H., and P.K. Hooker, A New Chronology for the Kings of Israel and Judah (Atlanta: John Knox, 1988).
Bibliography
231
Hayes, J.H., and S.A. Irvine, Isaiah, The Eighth Century Prophet: His Times and His Preaching (Nashville: Abingdon Press, 1987). Herntrich, V., 'Mishpat', TDNT, III, pp. 923-33. —'The "Remnant" in the Old Testament', TDNT, IV, pp. 196-209. Killers, D., Treaty-Curses and the Old Testament Prophets (BO 16; Rome: Pontifical Biblical Institute, 1964). —'A Convention in Hebrew Literature: The Reaction to Bad News', ZAW 77 (1965), pp. 86-90. —'The Imperial Dream: Text and Sense of Mic 5.4b-5', in H.B. Huffmon et al. (eds.), The Quest for the Kingdom of God: Essays in Honor of George E. Mendenhall (Winona Lake, IN: Eisenbrauns, 1983), pp. 137-39. —Micah (Hermeneia: Philadelphia: Fortress Press, 1984). Hobbs, T.R., 'Amos 3,lb and 2,10', ZAW 81 (1969), pp. 384-87. —2 Kings (WBC 13; Waco, TX: Word Books, 1985). Holman, C.H., A Handbook to Literature (New York: Odyssey, 3rd edn, 1972). Hoonacker, A. van, Les douze petits prophetes (EBib; Paris: Gabalda, 1908). Horton, R.F., The Minor Prophets: Hosea, Joel, Amos, Obadiah, Jonah, and Micah (Century Bible; Edinburgh: T.C. and E.G. Jack, 1904). Huffmon, H.B., 'The Covenant Lawsuit in the Prophets', JBL 78 (1959), pp. 285-95. Hyatt, H.P., 'On the Meaning and Origin of Micah 6.8', ATR 34 (1952), pp. 232-39. Irvine, S.A., Isaiah, Ahai, and the Syro-Ephraimitic Crisis (dissertation, Emory University, 1989). Janzan, W., Mourning Cry and Woe Oracle (BZAW 125; Berlin: de Gruyter, 1972). Jenni, E., 'Remnant', IDE, IV, pp. 32-33. Jeppesen, K., 'New Aspects of Micah Research', JSOT 8 (1978), pp. 3-32. —'How the Book of Micah Lost its Integrity: Outline of the History of Criticism of the Book of Micah with Emphasis on the 19th Century', ST 33 (1979), pp. 101-31. —'Micah V 13 in the Light of a Recent Archaeological Discovery', VT 34 (1984), pp. 462-65. —'The Verb ya'ad in Nahum 1.10 and Micah 6.9', Bib 65 (1984), pp. 571-74. Jepsen, A., 'Kleine Beitrage zum Zwolfprophetenbuch', ZAW 56 (1938), pp. 96-99. —'Gnade und Barmherzigkiet im AT', KD 1 (1961), pp. 261-71. Jeremias, Joachim, 'Moreshet-Gath, die Heimat des Propheten Micah', PJ 29 (1933), pp. 42-53. Jeremias, Jdrg, 'Die Deutung der Gerichtsworte Michas in der Exilzeit', ZAW 83 (1971), pp. 330-54. Kaiser, O., Isaiah 1-12 (OTL; Philadelphia: Westminster Press, 1972). Kapelrud, A.S., 'Eschatology in the Book of Micah', VT 11 (1961), pp. 392-405. Kaufman, Y., The Religion of Israel: From Its Beginnings to the Babylonia Exile (Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1960). Kellermann, D., 'Uberlieferungsprobleme Alttestamentlicher Ortsnamen', VT 28 (1978), pp. 423-32. Kennedy, G.A., New Testament Interpretation through Rhetorical Criticism (Chapel Hill: University of North Carolina Press, 1984). Kenyon, K., Archaeology in the Holy Land (New York: W.W. Norton, 4th edn, 1979). Kinet, D., 'Prophet und Politik', BK 38 (1983), pp. 144-49. Koch, K., Tempeleinlassliturgien und Dekalog', in Studien zitr Theologie des
232
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
alttestamentlichen Ueberlieferung (Festschrift von Rad) (Neukirchen-Vluyn: Neukirchener Verlag, 1961), pp. 45-64. —The Prophets (2 vols.; Philadelphia: Fortress Press, 1982). Kuenen, A., 'Micah I, 5', Hebraica 2 (1885-86), pp. 234-36. Laurentin, A., 'w*''attah-kai nun, Formule caracteristique des textes juridiques et liturgique (a propos de Jean 17.5)', Bib 45 (1964), pp. 168-97, 413-32. Lescow, T., Micha 6, 6-8: Studien zu Sprache, Form und Auslegung (Arbeiten zur Theologie 1/25; Stuttgart: Calwer Verlag, 1966). —'Das Geburtsmotiv in den Messianischen Weissagungen bei Jesaja und Micha', ZAW 79 (1967), pp. 172-207. —'Redaktionsgeschichtliche Analyse von Micha 1-5', ZAW 84 (1972), pp. 46-85. —'Redaktionsgeschichtliche Analyse von Micha 6-7', ZAW 84 (1972), pp. 182-212. Leslie, E.A., 'Micah the Prophet', IDB, III, pp. 369-72. Lewis, R.L., The Persuasive Style and Appeals of the Minor Prophets Amos, Hosea, and Micah (dissertation, University of Michigan, 1959). Lewy, J., 'Lexicographical Notes', HUCA 12-13 (1937-38), pp. 97-100. Lindblom, J., Micha literarisch untersucht (Acta Academiae Aboensis; Abo: Abo Akademi, 1929). —Prophecy in Ancient Israel (Philadelphia: Fortress Press, 1962). Lipinski, E., 'CTB'n rr-ma dans les Textes Preexiliques', VT 20 (1970), pp. 445-50. Lohfink, N., 'Deuteronomy', IDBSup, pp. 229-32. Luckenbill, D.D., Ancient Records of Assyria and Babylonia (Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1926-27). Luker, L.M., Doom and Hope in Micah: The Redaction of the Oracles Attributed to an Eighth-Century Prophet (dissertation, Vanderbilt, 1985). —'Beyond Form Criticism: The Relation of Doom and Hope Oracles in Micah 2', HAR 11 (1987), pp. 285-300. Luria, B.Z., 'The Political Background for Micha: Ch. 1 (Hebrew)', Beth Mikra 71,4 (1977), pp. 403-12; English Summary, p. 523). Lux, R.C., An Exegetical Study of Micah 1.8-16 (dissertation, University of Notre Dame, 1976). Maaz, F., 'adham', TDOT, I, p. 83. March, W.E., 'Prophecy', in J.H. Hayes (ed.), Old Testament Form Criticism (San Antonio, TX: Trinity University Press, 1977), pp. 141-77. Margolis, M.L., The Holy Scriptures with Commentary: Micah (Philadelphia: Jewish Publication Society of America, 1908). Marti, K., Das Dodekapropheten (KHC, 13; Tubingen: Mohr, 1904). Mauchline, J., 'Implicit Signs of a Persistent Belief in the Davidic Empire', VT 20 (1970), pp. 287-303. Mays, J.L., Micah: A Commentary (OTL; Philadelphia: Westminster Press, 1976). Mazar, B., 'Gath and Gittaim', IEJ 4 (1954), pp. 227-35. McClean, H.B., 'Menahem', IDB, III, pp. 347-48. McComiskey, T.E., 'Exegetical Notes: Micah 7', Trinity Journal NS 2 (1981), pp. 62-68. McKeating, H., The Books of Amos, Hosea, and Micah (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1972).
Bibliography
233
Mendecki, N., 'Die Sammlung und der Neue Exodus in Micha 2.12-13', Kairos 23 (1981), pp. 96-99. —'Die Sammlung der Zerstreuten in Mi 4, 6-7', BZ 27 (1983), pp. 218-21. Mendenhall, G.E., 'Election', IDB, II, pp. 76-82. Millard, A.R., and H. Tadmor, 'Adad-Nirari III in Syria: Another Stela Fragment and the dates of His Campaigns', Iraq 35 (1973), pp. 57-64. Miller, J.M., 'The Elisha Cycle and the Accounts of the Omride Wars', JBL 85 (1966), pp. 441-54. —'The Rest of the Acts of Jehoahaz', ZAW 80 (1968), pp. 337-42. —The Old Testament and the Historian (Philadelphia: Fortress Press, 1976). Montgomery, J.A., A Critical and Exegetical Commentary on the Book of Kings (ICC; ed. H.G. Gehman; New York: Charles Scribner's Sons, 1951). Mowinckel, S., 'Mikaboken', NorTT29 (1928), pp. 3-42. —The Psalms in Israel's Worship (2 vols.; Nashville: Abingdon Press, 1962). Muilenburg, J., 'The Linguistic and Rhetorical Usage of the Particle ki in the Old Testament', HUCA 32 (1961), pp. 135-60. —'Form Criticism and Beyond', JBL 88 (1969), pp. 1-18. Muscarella, O.W. (ed.), Ladders to Heaven: Art Treasures from Lands of the Bible (Toronto: McClelland and Stewart, 1981). Na'aman, N., 'Sennacherib's Letter to God on his campaign to Judah', BASOR 214 (1974), pp. 25-39. —'Sennacherib's Campaign to Judah and the Date of the LMLK Stamps', VT 29 (1979), pp. 61-86. —'Historical and Chronological Notes on the Kingdoms of Israel and Judah in the Eighth Century BC', VT 36 (1986), pp. 71-92. Neiderhiser, E.A., 'Micah 2.6-11: Considerations on the Nature of the Discourse', BTB 11 (1981), pp. 104-7. Newsom, C., 'A Maker of Metaphors—Ezekiel's Oracles Against Tyre', Int 38 (1984), pp.151-64. Nicholson, E.W., Deuteronomy and Tradition (Philadelphia: Fortress Press, 1967). Nielsen, E., Oral Tradition: A Modern Problem in Old Testament Introduction (SBT; London: SCM Press, 1954). Nielsen, K., Yahweh as Prosecutor and Judge: An Investigation of the Prophetic Lawsuit (Rib Pattern) (JSOTSup 9; Sheffield: JSOT Press, 1978). Nowack, W., 'Bemerkungen iiber das Buch Micha', ZAW 4 (1884), pp. 277-91. — Die Kleinen Propheten (HK III/4; Gottingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 3rd edn, 1922). Oded, B., Mass Deportations and Deportees in the Neo-Assyrian Empire (Wiesbaden: Reichert Verlag, 1979). Paul, S., 'Amos 3.3-8: The Irresistible Sequence of Cause and Effect', HAR 1 (1983), pp. 203-220. Peiser, J.C., 'Micha V, OLZ 20 (1917), pp. 363-67. Pelser, H.S., 'Some Remarks concerning the contrast in Micah 5.1 and 5.2', OTWSA (1973), pp. 35-44. Perelman, C., and L. Olbrechts-Tyteca, The New Rhetoric: A Treatise on Argumentation (trans. J. Wilkinson and P.I Weaver; Notre Dame: University of Notre Dame Press, 1969).
234
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
Pritchard, J.B. (ed.), Ancient Near East Texts (Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press, 3rd edn, 1965). Pusey, E.B., The Minor Prophets with Commentary II (New York: Funk & Wagnalls, 1895). Rad, G. von, Old Testament Theology (2 vols.; New York: Harper & Row, 1965). Rainey, A., 'Gath of the Philistines', Christian News from Israel 18 (1966), nos. 2-3, pp. 30-38; no. 4, pp. 23-34. Reed, W.L., 'Beth-leaphrah', IDE, I, p. 394. —'Tappuah', IDE, IV, p. 517. Reicke, B., 'Liturgical Traditions in Mic. T, HTR 60 (1967), pp. 349-67. Reider, J., 'The Etymology of Hebrew MUL of MOL and Its Bearing on TMOL and ETMOL', HUCA 12-13 (1937-38), pp. 90-93. Renaud, B., Structure et Attaches litte'raires de MicMe IV-V (Cahiers de la Revue Biblique 2; Paris: Gabalda, 1964). —La Formation du Livre de Michee (EBib; Paris: Gabalda, 1977). Reventlow, H.G., 'Gattung und Uberlieferung in der "Tempelrede Jeremias", Jer. 7 und 26', ZAW 81 (1969), pp. 315-52. Roberts, J.J.M., 'The Davidic Origin of the Zion Tradition', JBL 92 (1973), pp. 32944. —'Zion Tradition', IDBSup, pp. 985-87. —'Zion in the Theology of the Davidic-Solomonic Empire', in Tomoo Ishida (ed.), Studies in the Period of David and Solomon and Other Essays (Winona Lake, IN: Eisenbrauns, 1982), pp. 83-108. Robinson, T.H., Die Zwolf kleinen Propheten (HAT 14; Tubingen: Mohr, 1938). Rosenbaum, J., 'Hezekiah's Reform and the Deuteronomistic Tradition', HTR 72 (1979), pp. 23-43. Rowley, H.H., 'Hezekiah's Reform and Rebellion', BJRL 44 (1962), pp. 395-431 = Men of God (1963), pp. 98-132. Rudolph, W., 'Zur Micha 1, 10-16', in Wort, Lied und Gottesspruch (Festschrift fur J. Ziegler); FZB 2 (1972), pp. 233-38. —Micha, Nahum, Habakuk, Zephania (KAT 13, 3; Gutersloh: Gerd Mohn, 1975). Saarisalo, A., 'Topographical Researches in the Shephelah', JPOS 11 (1931), pp. 1420. Sasson, J.M., 'Wordplay in the Old Testament', IDBSup, pp. 968-70. Scheffler, E.H., 'Micah 4.1-5: An Impasse in Exegesis?', Old Testament Essays 3 (1985), pp. 46-61. Schibler, D., Le Prophete Michee et le regne d'Ezechias de Juda (une elude historicolitteraire) (dissertation, Ecole Pratique, Paris, 1980). Schmidt, H., Micha, Die Grossen Propheten (SAT Abteilung 2, Band 2; Gottingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 1923). Schnell, R.F., 'Anak', IDE, I, pp. 123-24. Schwantes, S.J., A Critical Study of the Text ofMicah (PhD dissertation, Johns Hopkins University, 1962). —'Critical Notes on Micah 1.10-16', VT 14 (1964), pp. 454-61. —'A Note on Micah 5.1 (Hebrew 4.14)', AUSS 1 (1963), p. 107. Scott, R.B.Y., 'The Book of Isaiah', IB, V, pp. 151-381. Sellin, E., Das Zwolfprophetenbuch (KAT 12; Leipzig: Deichertsche, 1922).
Bibliography
235
Seow, C.L., Myth, Drama, and the Politics of David's Dance (HSM, 44; Atlanta: Scholars Press, 1989). Simons, J., The Geographical and Topographical Texts of the Old Testament (Leiden: Brill, 1959). Smith, G., 'On a New Fragment of the Assyrian Canon Belonging to the Reigns of Tiglath-Pileser and Shalmaneser', TSBA 2 (1873), pp. 321-22. Smith, G.A., The Book of the Twelve Prophets, I (Expositor's Bible; New York: Armstrong, 1908). —The Historical Geography of the Holy Land (New York: Harper & Row, 1931; repr. 1966). Smith, J.M.P. et al., Micah, Zephaniah, Nahum, Habakkuk, Obadiah, and Joel (ICC; Edinburgh: T. & T. Clark, 1911). Smith, L. Pettibone, 'The Book of Micah', Int 6 (1952), pp. 210-27. Soggin, J.A., 'Der Prophetische Gedanke iiber den Heiligen Krieg, als Gericht gegen Israel', VT 10 (1960), pp. 79-85. Spieckermann, M., Juda unter Assur in der Sargonidenzeit (GOttingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 1982). Stade, B., 'Bermerkungen iiber das Buch Micha', ZAW 1 (1881), pp. 161-72. —'Weitere Bemerkungen zu Micha 4.5', ZAW 3 (1883), pp. 1-16. —'Bemerkungen zu Nowack, iiber das Buch Micha', ZAW 4 (1884), pp. 291-97. —'Micha ii, 4', ZAW 6 (1886), pp. 122-23. —Geschichte des Volkes Israel (Berlin: G. Grote'sche Verlagsbuchhandlung, 1889). —'Streiflicher auf die Entstehung der jetzigen Gestalt der alttestamentlichen Prophetenschriften', ZAW 23 (1903), pp. 153-71. Stansell, G., Micah and Isaiah: A Form and Tradition Historical Comparison (SBLDS 85; Atlanta: Scholars Press, 1988). Stoebe, H.J., 'Die Bedeutung des Wortes Hasa'd im Alten Testament', VT 2 (1952), pp. 244-54. Strachey, E., Jewish History and Politics (London: W. Isbister, 1874). Szikszai, S., 'King, Kingship', IDE, III, pp. 12-13. Tadmor, H., 'The Campaigns of Sargon II of Assur: A Chronological-Historical Study', JCS 12 (1958), pp. 22-40; 77-100. —'The Southern Border of Aram', IEJ 12 (1962), pp. 114-17. —'Philistia Under Judean Rule', BA 29 (1966), pp. 86-102. Tov, E., The Text Critical Use of the Septuagint in Biblical Research (Jerusalem: Simon Ltd, 1981). Tsevat, M., 'The Neo-Assyrian and Neo-Babylonian Vassal Oaths and the Prophet Ezekiel', JBL 78 (1959), pp. 199-204. Tucker, G.M., Form Criticism of the Old Testament (Philadelphia: Fortress Press, 1971). —'Prophetic Superscriptions and the Growth of a Canon', in G.W. Coats and B.O. Long (eds.), Canon and Authority: Essays in Old Testament Religion and Theology (Philadelphia: Fortress Press, 1977), pp. 56-70. Ussishkin, D., "The "Lachish Relief and the Siege of Lachish', IEJ 30 (1980), pp. 174-95. Van Imshoot, P., 'Le prophete Michee et son Temps', Collationes Gandavenses 17 (1930), pp. 176-81. Vaux, R. de, '"Le Reste d'Israel" d'apres les prophetes', RB 42 (1933), pp. 526-39.
236
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
—Ancient Israel: Its Life and Institutions (New York: McGraw-Hill, 1965). Vilnai, Z., "The Topography of Palestine in the Prophecies of Micah', BJPES 6 (1939), pp. 127-31. Vincent, J., 'Michas Gerichtswort gegen Zion (3.12) in seinem Kontext', ZTK 83 (1986), pp. 167-87. Vogelstein, M., Tekah to Hezekiah', VT 16 (1966), pp. 87-90. Vriezen, T.C., 'Essentials of the Theology of Isaiah', in B.W. Anderson and W. Harrelson (eds.), Israel's Prophetic Heritage: Essays in Honor of James Muilenburg (New York: Harper Brothers, 1962), pp. 128-42. Vuilleumier, R., and C.A. Keller, MicMe, Nahoum, Habacuc, Sophonie (Commentaire de 1'Ancien Testament Xlb; Neuchatel: Delachaux et Niestl^, 1971). Waard, J. de, 'Vers une Identification des Participants dans le Livre du Mich6e', Revue d'Historic et de Philosophic Religieuses 59 (1979), pp. 508-16. Wagner, S., 'banah', TDOT, II, pp. 166-81. Wanke, G., Die Ziontheologie der Korachten (BZAW 97; Berlin: de Gruyter, 1966). —Untersuchungen zur sogenannten Baruchschrift (BZAW 122; Berlin: de Gruyter, 1971). Watson, G.E., 'Allusion, Irony and Wordplay in Micah 1,7', Bib 65 (1984), pp. 103-5. Watson, W.G.E., 'David Ousts the City Ruler of Jebus', VT 20 (1970), pp. 501-2. Weil, H.M., 'Le Chapitre 2 de Michee expliqud par le premier livre des Rois ch 20-22', RHR 121 (1940), pp. 146-61. Weinfeld, M., 'Cult Centralization in Israel in the Light of a Neo-Babylonian Analogy', JNES 23 (1964), pp. 202-12. —"The Covenant of Grant in the Old Testament and in the Ancient Near East', JAOS 90 (1970), pp. 184-203. —'Davidic Covenant', IDBSup, pp. 188-92. —'Ancient Near Eastern Patterns in Prophetic Literature', VT 27 (1977), pp. 178-95. —'Zion and Jerusalem as Religious and Political Capital: Ideology and Utopia', in Richard Elliott Friedman (ed.), The Poet and the Historian (HSS 26; Chico, CA; Scholars Press, 1983), pp. 75-115. Weiser, A., Das Buch der zwolfKleinen Propheten I (ATD 24; Gottingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 1949). Wellhausen, J., Skizzen und Vorarbeiten, Fiinftes Heft: Die kleinen Propheten uubersetz, mil Noten (Berlin: Reimer, 4th edn, 1892). Welten, P., Die Konigs-Stempel. Ein Beitrag zur Militarpolitik Judas unter Hiskia und Josia (Abhandlungen des Deutschen Pala'stinvereins 1; Weisbaden: Otto Harrassowitz, 1969). Westbrook, R., "The Prohibition on Restoration of Marriage in Deut. 24.1-4', in S. Japhet (ed.), Studies in Bible 1986 (SH 31; Jerusalem: Magnes, 1986), pp. 387405. —Studies in Biblical and Cuneiform Law (Cahiers de la Revue Biblique 26; Paris: Gabalda, 1986). Westermann, C., 'Micha 5.1-3', in Georg Eichholz (ed.), Herr tue meine Lippen auf, Vol. 4. (Wuppartel-Barmen: Emil Miiller, 1961), pp. 54-59. —Basic Forms of Prophetic Speech (Philadelphia: Westminster Press, 1967). Westhuizen, J.P. van der, "The term 'etnan in Micah', OTWSA 1973, pp. 54-61.
Bibliography
237
Whitley, C.F., "The Deuteronomic Presentation of the House of Omri', VT 2 (1952), pp. 137-51. Wildberger, H., Jesaja (BKAT X/l; Neukirchen-Vluyn: Neukirchener Verlag, 1972). Willi-Plein, I., Vorformen der Schriftexegese innerhalb des Allen Testament (BZAW 123; Berlin: de Gruyter, 1971). Williams, R.J., Hebrew Syntax: An Outline (Toronto: University of Toronto Press, 2nd edn, 1976). Willis, J.T., The Structure, Setting and Interrelationships of the Pericopes in the Book of Micah (dissertation, Vanderbilt University, 1966). —'On the Text of Micah 2, la', Bib 48 (1967), pp. 534-41. —'Mimeka Kyese' in Micah 5.1', JQR 58 (1967-68), pp. 317-22. —'Micah IV, 14-V, 5—A Unit', VT 18 (1968), pp. 529-47. —'A Note on wd"omar in Micah 3.1', ZAW 80 (1968), pp. 50-54. —'Review of Micha 6,6-8: Studien zu Sprache, Form und Auslegung, by T. Lescow", VT 18 (1968), pp. 273-78. —'Some Suggestions on the Interpretation of Micah I, 2', VT 18 (1968), pp. 373-79. —'The Authenticity and Meaning of Micah 5.9-14', ZAW 81 (1969), pp. 353-68. —The Structure of Micah 3-5 and the Function of Micah 5.9-14 in the Book', ZAW 81 (1969), pp. 191-214. —'The Structure of the Book of Micah', SEA 34 (1969), pp. 5-42. —'Fundamental Issues in Contemporary Micah Research', ResQ 13 (1970), pp. 77-90. —'Micah 2.6-8 and the "People of God" in Micah', BZNS 14 (1970), pp. 72-87. —'A Reapplied Prophetic Hope Oracle', VTSup 26 (1974), pp. 64-76. Wiseman, D.J., 'Two Historical Inscriptions from Nimrod', Iraq 13 (1951), pp. 21-26. —'A Fragmentary Inscription of Tiglath-Pileser III from Nimrod', Iraq (1956), pp. 117-29. Wolfe, R.E., 'The Editing of the Book of the Twelve', ZAW 53 (1933), pp. 90-130. —'The Book of Micah: Introduction and Exegesis', IB, VI, pp. 897-949 (Nashville: Abingdon Press, 1956). Wolff, H.W., Hosea (Hermeneia: Philadelphia: Fortress Press, 1974). —'Micah the Moreshite—the Prophet and his Background', in J.G. Gammie et al. (eds.), Israelite Wisdom (Missoula, MT: Scholars Press, 1978), pp. 77-84. —Micah: A Commentary (Minneapolis: Augsburg, 1990). Woude, A.S. van der, 'Micah in Dispute with the Pseudo-prophets', VT 19 (1969), pp. 244-60. —'Deutero-Micha: ein Prophet aus Nord-Israel?', NorTT 25 (1971), pp. 365-78. —'Micah 1.10-16", in Hommages ci Andre Dupont-Sommer (Paris: AdrienMaisonneuve, 1971), pp. 348-50. —'Micah 4.1-5: An Instance of Pseudo-prophets quoting Isaiah', in M.A. Beek et al. (eds.), Symbolae biblique et mespoptamiae Fransisco Mario Theodore de Liagre Bohl Dedicatae (Leiden: Brill, 1973). —Micah (Nijkerk: Callenbach, 1976). Wright, G.E., 'Fresh Evidence for the Philistine Story', BA 29 (1966), pp. 70-86. Ziegler, J (ed.), Septuaginta, vol. XIII: Duodecim prophetae (Gottingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 1967). Zobel, T., 'hesed', TDOT, IV, pp. 44-64.
INDEXES INDEX OF BIBLICAL REFERENCES OLD TESTAMENT
Genesis 35.21 38.5 49.19
16 46 152
Exodus 13.3-4 15.11 22.26-27 23.28 23.31 34.6 34.11
170 37 80 81 81 78, 214 81
Leviticus 9.3 22.27
181 181
Numbers 14.8 14.14 23.1-6 25.1-12
78 110 192 192
15.15 16.3 17.6 17.18 21.8 24.1-4 24.9 24.12-13 24.18 24.22 26.5
32.39 33.16
167, 168 168 41 178 167 42, 74 168 80 167, 168 168 105 148 195
Joshua
Deuteronomy 5.15 168 7.8 167, 168 7.18 168 8.2 168 168 9.7 9.14 105 9.26 167 10.12-22 169 10.12 169 13.6 167-69
3-5 4.24 11.21 13.3 15.34 15.35 15.37 15.44 24.2-15 24.21
168 168 46 46 63 45 47 46 168 81
Judges 3.2 6.15 7.16 7.20 9.34 9.55 21.23
105, 168 145 110 110 110 81 81
Ruth 1.12
134
1 Samuel 7.14 11.11 12.6 14.16 15.17 16.12-13 17.12 17.52 31
47 110 168 172 110 137 129, 137 46 80
2 Samuel 1.19-27 3.34 3.38 5.1 7.6-17 7.6-7
7.8 7.10 7.23 9.21 11.11 13.34 14.13-14 15.20 17.2 18.24-27 22 22.8-39
40 112 179 141 146 146 137 112 167 145 86 172 108 70 148 172 37 110
239
Index of Biblical References / Kings 1.9 8.60 10.29 14.7-11 16.15-20 21.20 22 22.4 22.24 22.28
178 168 76 113 95 113 61, 104, 113 104 147 32
2 Kings 3 3.27 9.17-20 9.22 10.6 10.18 13.4-5 13.14 14 14.11 14.17-22 14.25 14.27 15.1 15.8-16 15.14 15.16 15.19 15.23 15.29 15.37 16.3
6, 113 114 172 49 179 179 66 85 61 178 42 113 64 30 93 63,95 62,63,93 94 64 215 63 174
16.5
60
16.6 17 17.1-16 17.3-4 17.3 17.4 17.5 17.6 17.17 18.13 19.32-37 21.3
65 133 216 125 95, 190 190, 191 95, 191 217 174 30,58 58 179
21.6 24.25 25.6 27.7
174, 188 134 202 134
/ Chronicles
4.21-22 4.21 5.17-22 5.18 9.1 11.7 11.8 17.9 20.11 26.6-8 26.6 27.4 27.5 28.5-15 28.17-18 28.17 28.18 30.34 33.15 36.7 36.18 36.20
46 43 61 105 134 45 46 112 81 64 46 64 62 59 125 65 59,60 189 105 134 134 134
Ezra
5.12 9.9
134 201
Nehemiah
9.18
214
Job
3.3 10.7 16.10
69 148 147
Psalms 2 2.9 3 3.7 9.2 13.6
117, 144 152 167 147 199 199
17.6-9 18 18.33 18.35 22.10-11 26.4-6 26.7 28 31.2-6 35 42.4 42.11 46 46.10 48 50.22 51.5-7 59 60.11 68 71.17 72 74 76 76.3-4 77 79 79.10 80.12 80.14-17 83 83.9-18 83.10 86 86.10 86.15 89 89.20-23 89.40 89.41 94.16 101 102.17 103.8 110 132 137.7 142.6
199 37 37 105 199 199 199 149 199 167 199 199 105 139 105 148 199 167 37 105 199 177, 17 37 105, 14 139 37, 199 167 199 85 199 37 199 199 105 199 214 37, 117 144 85 201 37 177, 17 112 214 117, 14 144, 14 198 199
240
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
144.1 145.8 Isaiah 1.10 1.18 2.2-4 2.4 2.7 2.8 3.6 3.7 5.5 7.1 7.2 7.9 7.14 8.6 9.4 9.5 9.6-7 9.12 10.5 10.10 11.1-5 11.1 11.1-10 11.11-16 19.6 22.3 23.12 23.17 27.12 29.1-8 30.16 30.33 31.1 34.5-17 36.1 37.7 37.26 38 52.12 57.1-2 59.9-15 60.22 63.764.12
105 214
110 134 99, 104 100 41 139 110 110 85 60 125 157 153
60, 125, 157 145 159 158 62 173 139 158 137, 159 149 204 194 110 161 49 204 115 41 70 41
198 30 139 194 133
75, 76 171 198 105 198
63.16
198
Jeremiah 6.6 8.16 9.1-5 9.17-19
170 170 171 84
10.19 12.6 14.17 15.9 17.24 18.22 19.8 20.6
163 171 163 170 170 152 170 134
24.1-6
203
25.9 25.18 26
170 170 17, 123, 124
26.18
12,15-17,45,
99, 123 27.20
134
28.3 29.1 29.4 29.18 30.12
134 134 134 170 163
30.20-21
136, 137
31.12
105
32.6-15
93
34.4 40.1 40.7 49.3 49.16
134 134 134 201 195
49.20
136
50.8
75, 76
50.45
136
Lamentations 1.1 198 1.8-9 198 1.17-18 198 1.21 198 2.6-7 200 2.15-16 198 3.30 147 3.31-33 198
4.4 4.21 5.15-18 5.17 5.21
98 198 198 198, 199 198
Eiekiel 4.3 5.2 7.15 16.13 16.31 23.26 38-39 38.16
170 170 170 49 49 80 136 139, 165
Hosea 3.4 5.14 6.9 7.1 10.1-2 10.13 8.4-6 13.2 14.3 14.4
94 148 152 152 139 41 139 139, 174 41 139
Joel 4.18-20
203
Amos 1.3 1.6 1.13-15 3.15 4.1 4.11 6.4
48
Obadiah 3 16
195 203
Jonah 4.2
214
216 62 62 66 66 48
Index of Biblical References Micah 1-3
1.1 1.2 1.2-16
1.2-8 1.2-7 1.2-4 1.5-3.12
1.5 1.6-7 .6 .7
.8-1 .8-9 .9
1.10-16
1.10-15 .10 .11 .12 .13 .14 .15 .16
2.1-13
2.1-11 2.1-5 2.1-2 2.2 2.3-5 2.3 2.4-5
2.4 11, 12, 15, 16, 87, 167, 171, 221 45 53 32,36-39,51, 56,58,60,61, 65, 67, 222, 224 36 36, 39, 58, 59 13, 53 12, 13 36,37,41,43, 48,50,53,54, 58,67 36, 38, 39, 48, 51,58 48,49,55 48,49,55 34, 36, 57, 58 37,43,55 38,39,41,48, 115 34, 36, 40, 44, 45,47,48,50, 55, 59, 60, 83 40, 51, 56, 57, 83 40,47,57,60 40,41,58 51 42,43 42-44, 45, 48, 58 43, 50 40, 48, 57, 83 68, 77, 78, 84, 91, 92, 94, 111,222,224 71, 72, 75, 77 71, 72, 79 73 79-82 72, 73 72-74, 79, 89 72,77
2.5 2.6-11 2.6-9 2.6-7 2.6 2.7 2.8-9 2.8
2.9 2.10 2.11 2.12-13
2.12 2.13 3.1-4.8
3.1-12
3.1-4 3.1-3 3.1 3.2-4 3.2 3.2-3
3.3 3.4 3.5-8 3.5 3.7 3.8 3.9-12
72-74, 77, 84, 85,88,92,95 72-74,89,92 71,72,74 89 72, 78, 79, 86, 87 69,72,79,89 167 80, 82, 89 79-81, 83, 87, 90,92-94,115 79, 81-83, 87, 90,91,94 72,73,90 79 12,13,18,72, 75-77, 85, 92, 95 72, 76, 77, 92 72, 76, 77, 85, 86,90,92,95 100, 102-104, 109, 118, 12326, 159, 222, 224 97, 101-103, 109, 111, 115, 222 100 99 78,110,111, 114, 120, 159, 160 HI 111, 115, 126 111, 119, 120, 121, 141 111, 114 103, 115, 120 100, 101, 113, 120 114, 115 115, 116 103, 104, 116, 120 100-102, 120, 123
3.9 3.10-11 3.10 3.11
3.12
4-7 4-5 4.1-5.14 4.1-8 4.1-5
4.1-4 4.1 4.3 4.5-10 4.5 4.6-8 4.7 4.8-5.14 4.8 4.9-5.14
4.9-5.4 4.9-5.1 4.9-14 4.9-13 4.9-11 4.9-10
4.9
4.10
241 110, 111, 114 104 106, 112 101, 102, 110, 114, 117-19, 124, 127, 167, 180 12, 16, 17, 101, 102, 106, 112, 121, 124, 127, 159 13, 16, 221 12 12 18, 101, 102, 222 100, 101, 106, 107, 117 13, 18, 101, 102, 104-107, 118, 121, 180 102, 106, 121 105 13 107 12, 18, 101, 107 108 132 101, 109, 116, 117, 122, 127, 159 128, 131-33, 139, 149, 156, 157, 159, 166, 166, 222, 224 180 180 135, 156 153 132 102, 133-37, 153 134, 139, 141, 144, 145, 150, 157, 158 16, 18, 13235, 142, 145, 150, 154
242
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
4.11-14 4.11-13 4.11
4.12-13 4.12 4.13 4.14-5.4 4.14-5.3 4.14
5. -7 5. -4 5. -3 5. -2 5.
5.2 5.3-4 5.3 5.4-8 5.4-5
5.4 5.5 5.6-14 5.6-8 5.6 5.7 5.8 5.9-14
5.9-13 5.9 5.14 6-7 6.1-7.7
6.1-7.6 6.1-16
13 135-37, 140, 145, 151, 155 16, 135, 139, 140 132, 140 136 140, 152 132 136, 137 139, 140, 147, 152, 153, 156, 157 155 132 13 146 136, 137, 141, 145-47 140, 153, 156, 157 141, 146 136, 137, 145 133,154 13,137,138, 140, 142, 156, 160, 203 154 132 13 18, 138 148, 154 132, 148, 154 155 133, 138, 148, 155, 156 139, 155 140 139, 140, 155, 166 16 16, 161, 16567, 172, 174, 180, 183, 18892, 223, 224 13 183
6.1-8
6.1-6 6.1-2 6.1 6.2 6.3-8 6.3-5 6.5-6 6.5 6.6-8 6.6-7 6.7 6.8
6.9-16 6.9
6.10-11 6.11-12 6.11 6.12-13 6.12 6.13-16 6.13 6.14-15 6.15 6.16 7.1-7
7.1-6 7.1 7.3 7.4-7 7.4 7.6 7.7 7.7-20 7.8-20
7.8-10
165-70, 174, 177, 182, 188 174 184 166 184 184, 189 177 192 168 178, 181, 189, 190 174, 178 174 167, 169, 17578,181,183, 186, 188, 190 165, 170, 171, 180, 182 162,163,170, 173, 175, 186, 189 178 166, 186 187 181 178, 181, 187, 191 192 175, 181 173, 186, 192 173 173 165, 171, 172, 187 171, 189 166, 187, 216 179 174 172, 181 166 166, 167 12, 13,215 18, 166, 196, 198-202, 206, 208-10,216, 218,223,224 196, 197, 200,
7.15 7.16-17 7.16 7.17 7.18-20 7.18 7.19-20 7.20
206, 211-13, 219 167, 198, 199, 201, 218 213 196,198,211, 212, 219 196,201,211, 212, 215 196,197,201, 205, 208, 212, 219 204, 208 200-202,208, 212 203,219 202-206, 208, 212,215,218, 219 203,208 196, 197, 201 196,198,205207,209,212, 215 196,197,213 201,213 166, 196, 213 213 196-98 196, 209. 214 214 196, 198. 199
Nahum 3-4 3.19
49 163
Haggai 2.22
138
7.8
7.9-10 7.9 7.10 7.11-13
7.11-12 7.11 7.12-13 7.12
7.13 7.14-17 7.14
ZecHariah 8.22 9.9-10
9.16 10.8-12 11.13 14.10-11
105 149 138 204 81 203
INDEX OF AUTHORS Abel, P.M. 45, 46 Aharoni, Y. 42, 46 Ahlstrom, G.W. 44, 81 Albright, W.F. 46 Allen, L. 16-18, 32, 34, 35, 53, 56, 59, 68, 70, 71. 73, 75, 76, 80, 82, 97, 98, 101, 103, 105, 107, 111, 117, 123, 129, 130, 133, 140-42, 146, 148, 153, 156, 161, 163-67, 171-75, 17880, 185, 189, 194, 195-98 Alt, A. 79 Alter, R. 54, 186 Anderson, F. 176, 177
Carreira, Jose N. 115 Carrier, A.S. 35 Cathcart, K.J. 130 Gazelles, H. 116, 133, 143 Childs, B.S. 11 Christensen, D. 191 Cook, H.J. 64 Conder, E.R. 45, 47 Coppens, J. 141, 146 Corbett, E.P.J. 53, 55, 150, 151, 153, 155 Cowley, A. 202 Crenshaw, J.L. 32, 36, 113 Cross, P.M. 178 Cuffey, K.H. 11, 18, 24, 25, 56, 102, 132, 133, 143
Bailey, R. 176 Bartlett, J.R. 110 Beck, G.W. van 206 Dalley, S. 217 Beyerlin, W. 137, 146 Daniels, D.R. 182 Davies, G.I. 44 Bissel, E.G. 41 Bitzer, L. 22 De Roche, M. 182 Black, C.C. 23,28 DeVries, S.J. 104 Blenkinsopp, J. 169 Dearman, J.A. 119 Bliss, F.J. 45,46 Demsky, A. 43, 46 Boogart, T.A. 97, 111, 138 Donat, H. 79 Boyd, B. 42 Donner, H. 59, 110, 191, 204 Breuggemann, W. 105, 107, 121 Duhm, B. 21, 138, 162, 188 Bright, J. 59, 60, 62, 64 Dus, J. 207, 215 Bryant, D.J. 130, 131, 143, 146, 148, 153, Ehrman, A. 69, 163 156 Budde, K. 97 Eissfeldt, O. 57, 166, 171, 180, 195-98, Bullinger, E.W. 119 202, 203, 205, 207 Burke, K. 152 Elliger, K. 34, 35, 45, 47, 57 Buss, M. 20-22, 73, 122, 176 Ewald, H. 11, 12,76 Calderone, P. 194 Cannawurf, E. 105, 106
Fohrer, G. 15, 33, 34, 44, 58, 59 Fox, M.V. 22, 27, 170, 176
244
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
Freedman, D.N. 56, 59, 169, 178 Fritz, F. 39 Fullerton, K. 94 Gadd, C.J. 190 Gerstenberger, E. 72, 197 Gitay, Y. 20, 24, 54, 55, 73, 151, 184, 186, 187, 214 Glueck, N. 175 Goetze, A. 85, 86, 182 Gold, V.R. 45 Goldschlager, A. 151 Gordon, R.P. 196 Gottwald, N. 178 Gowan, D.E. 40 Graham, W.C. 55 Gray, J. 63, 104, 107, 174 Grayson, A.K. 217 Greenberg, M. 26 Greenstein, E.L. 19 Gunkel, H. 20, 166, 196, 197, 202, 208 Hagstrom, D.G. 208, 211, 212 Halper, B. 49 Hamilton, R.W. 44 Hammershaimb, E. 17, 18 Haupt, P. 13, 15, 123 Harrelson, W. 130 Hayes, J.H. 20, 29, 30, 191, 216 Herntrich, V. 108,111 Killers, D. 16, 17, 19, 26, 32, 34, 38, 42, 43, 68-71, 75, 76, 79, 80, 92, 97102, 105-109, 112, 113, 123, 129, 130, 137, 138, 141, 143, 145, 148, 151, 153, 156, 161-63, 165, 169, 171-75, 181, 185, 193-98, 200, 201, 206, 207 Hobbs, T.R. 94, 169 Holman, C.H. 54, 119 Hoonacker, A. van 15, 16, 18, 26, 35, 38, 58, 59, 76, 92, 134, 172, 180, 191, 198, 206 Horton, R.F. 15,18 Hyatt, P.H. 162
Janzen, W. 88 Jeppesen, K. 11, 131, 173 Jepsen, A. 38, 57, 176 Jeremias, J. 36, 37,45, 72, 73, 74, 78, 103, 138 Kaiser, O. 134 Kaufman, Y. 134 Keller, C.A. 72, 73 Kellerman, D. 47 Kennedy, G.A. 20, 23, 25, 28, 87, 90 Kenyon, K.M. 117 Koch, K. 113, 185 Laurentin, A. 135 Lescow, T. 37, 39, 72, 73, 76, 101, 103, 104, 132, 136, 146, 153, 165, 167 Lewis, R.L. 23, 54, 55 Lindblom, J. 57, 58, 92, 103, 104, 162, 171, 172, 180, 188, 191 Lipinski, E. 106 Lohfink, J. 169 Luker, L. 11, 18, 33, 35, 37, 40, 41, 55, 56, 70, 73, 83, 84, 101, 130, 134, 139, 151, 161-64, 166, 172, 193-99, 201, 207 Luria, B.Z. 42 Lux, R.C. 34,36,45-47,56,57
Maaz, F. 168 March, W.E. 20, 182 Margolis, M. 15, 18, 70, 112, 162-64, 172, 173, 180, 194,202-205 Marti, K. 13, 15, 57, 69, 70, 101, 104, 107,129,131,139 Mauchline, J. 146 Mays, J.L. 13-15, 19, 20, 34, 36, 37, 41, 43, 45, 53, 57, 69-78, 80, 88, 92, 9799, 101, 103-105, 109-113, 117, 123, 129, 132, 136, 138, 141, 142, 148, 153, 161, 163, 165, 167, 170, 171, 173, 175, 178, 180, 181, 184, 185, 194-96, 201, 203-205, 213, 214 Mazar, B. 46 Irvine, S.A. 60, 62, 125, 126, 157, 158, McClean, H.B. 62 215, 216 Mendecki, N. 76, 107 Millard, A.R. 65
Index of Authors Montgomery, J.A. 63 Mowinckel, S. 108, 139, 177, 178 Muilenburg, J. 134 Muscarella, O.W. 217
245
Oded, B. 204 Olbrechts-Tyteca, L. 90
Smith, J.M.P. 36, 68-70, 75, 76, 80, 82, 92,98, 104, 107, 111, 129, 131, 136, 138, 139, 142, 146, 153, 161, 162, 164-67, 173, 180, 184, 193, 198, 206, 215 Soggin, J.A. 113 Spieckermann, M. 169 Stade, B. 11-13, 15, 17, 26, 75, 76, 101, 104, 138, 142, 165, 188, 221 Stansell, G. 32, 36 Stoebe, H.J. 176 Strachey, E. 21 Szikszai, S. 177
Peiser, J.C. 143 Perleman, C. 90 Pusey, E.B. 15, 17
Tadmor, H. 65, 215-18 Tsevat, M. 191 Tucker, G. 20
Rad, G. von 115 Rainey, A. 46 Reed, W.L. 62, 63 Reicke, B. 164, 172, 197, 201, 206 Renaud, B. 13, 14, 32, 36-39, 58, 68, 7078, 97-100, 103-109, 123, 128-32, 135-37, 139, 142, 145, 146, 148, 162-65, 169-71, 173, 177, 184, 19396, 198, 203, 206 Reventlow, H.G. 123, 124 Roberts, J.J.M. 105, 106, 135, 136 Robinson, T.H. 13 Rollij, W. 110 Rudolph, W. 16, 18, 32, 33, 36, 58, 68, 69, 75, 76, 78, 98, 101, 103, 104, 107, 123, 129, 133, 134, 140, 145, 153, 161, 172, 173, 189, 195, 196, 202, 203, 205, 206
Ussishkin, D. 44, 57
Neiderhiser, E.A. 69-71 Newsome, C. 119 Nicholson, E.W. 169 Nielsen, K. 182 Nowack, W. 69
Vaux, R. de 76, 86, 117, 144, 147, 177, 178
Vincent, J. 99, 101, 124 Vriezen, T.C. 115 Vuilleumier, R. 72, 73, 188
Waard, J. de 79 Wagner, S. 112 Wanke, G. 105 Watson, W.G.E. 33, 178 Weinfeld, M. 137, 143, 148, 149 Weiser, A. 15, 18, 139, 188, 189 Wellhausen, J. 11, 68, 70, 75, 103, 104, 129, 139, 173, 184, 203 Welten, P. 46 Westbrook, R. 43, 74, 80, 81 Whitley, C.F. 179 Sasson, J.M. 56 Wildberger, H. 99, 104, 105 Scheffler, E.H. 104 Willi-Plein, I. 13, 14, 184, 201, 202 Schibler, D. 36, 71, 76, 86, 91, 101, 104, Williams, R.J. 69,90, 134, 164 172, 196 Willis, J.T. 11, 18, 53, 55, 58, 69, 70, 72, Schmidt, H. 76 75, 80, 87, 97, 115, 128, 130, 132, Schwantes, S.J. 34, 35, 129 133, 138, 139, 142, 143, 145, 156, Sellin, E. 15, 16, 18, 76, 123, 134, 139, 171, 180, 189, 191, 198, 207, 215 172, 195 Wolfe, R.E. 132, 165, 171, 172, 189 Simons, J. 45-47, 116 Wolff, H.W. 13, 14, 15, 20, 34, 38, 46, 48, Smith, G. 190 79, 82, 110, 115, 129, 132, 136-38, Smith, G.A. 91, 145, 188 141, 143, 145, 148, 152, 165, 167-
246
The Speeches ofMicah: A Rhetorical-Historical Analysis
71, 173-76, 178-80, 192-96, 199, Wright, G.E. 46 201, 203, 204, 206 Woude, A.S. van 16, 34, 58, 76, 79, 97, Zobel, T. 177 104, 105, 137, 180
JOURNAL FOR THE STUDY OF THE OLD TESTAMENT Supplement Series 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8
I, HE, WE AND THEY: A LITERARY APPROACH TO ISAIAH 53 DJ.A. Clines JEWISH EXEGESIS OF THE BOOK OF RUTH D.R.G. Beattie THE LITERARY STRUCTURE OF PSALM 2 P. Auffret THANKSGIVING FOR A LIBERATED PROPHET: AN INTERPRETATION OF ISAIAH CHAPTER 53 R.N. Whybray REDATING THE EXODUS AND CONQUEST J.J. Bimson THE STORY OF KING DAVID: GENRE AND INTERPRETATION D.M. Gunn THE SENSE OF BIBLICAL NARRATIVE I: STRUCTURAL ANALYSES IN THE HEBREW BIBLE (2nd edition) D. Jobling GENESIS l-ll: STUDIES IN STRUCTURE AND THEME P.O. Miller
9 10 11 13
YAIIWEH AS PROSECUTOR AND JUDGE: AN INVESTIGATION OF THE PROPHETIC LAWSUIT (RIB PATTERN) K. Nielsen THE THEME OF THE PENTATEUCH David J.A. Clines STUDIA BIBLICA 19781: PAPERS ON OLD TESTAMENT AND RELATED THEMES Edited by E.A. Livingstone ISAIAH AND THE DELIVERANCE OF JERUSALEM: A STUDY OF THE INTERPRETATION OF PROPHECY IN THE OLD TESTAMENT R.E. Clements
14
THE FATE OF KING SAUL: AN INTERPRETATION OF A BIBLICAL STORY
15
THE DEUTERONOMISTIC HISTORY Martin Noth
D.M. Gunn
16
PROPHECY AND ETHICS: ISAIAH AND THE ETHICAL TRADITION OF ISRAEL
17
THE ROLES OF ISRAEL' S PROPHETS David L. Petersen THE DOUBLE REDACTION OF THE DEUTERONOMISTIC HISTORY Richard D. Nelson
Eryl W. Davies
18
19 20
ART AND MEANING: RHETORIC IN BIBLICAL LITERATURE Edited by David J.A. Clines, David M. Gunn & Alan J. Hauser THE PSALMS OF THE SONS OF KORAH Michael D. Goulder
21
COLOUR TERMS IN THE OLD TESTAMENT Athalya Brenner
22
AT THE MOUNTAIN OF GOD: STORY AND THEOLOGY IN EXODUS 32-34
23
THE GLORY OF ISRAEL: THE THEOLOGY AND PROVENIENCE OF THE ISAIAH TARGUM
R.W.L. Moberly
24
Bruce D. Chilton MIDI AN, MOAB AND EDOM:
THE HISTORY AND ARCHAEOLOGY OF LATE BRONZE AND IRON AGE JORDAN AND NORTH-WEST ARABIA 25
Edited by John F.A. Sawyer & David J.A. Clines THE DAMASCUS COVENANT:
AN INTERPRETATION OF THE 'DAMASCUS DOCUMENT' 26
Philip R. Davies CLASSICAL HEBREW POETRY :
A GUIDE TO ITS TECHNIQUES Wilfred G.E. Watson 27
PSALMODY AND PROPHECY
28
W.H. Bellinger, Jr HOSEA: AN ISRAELITE PROPHET IN JUDEAN PERSPECTIVE Grace I. Emmerson
29 30 31
EXEGESIS AT QUMRAN: 4QFLORILEGIUM IN ITS JEWISH CONTEXT George J. Brooke THE ESTIIER SCROLL: THE STORY OF THE STORY David J.A. Clines IN THE SHELTER OF EL YON: ESSAYS IN HONOR OF G.W. AHLSTROM Edited by W. Boyd Barrick & John R. Spencer
32
36
THE PROPHETIC PERSONA: JEREMIAH AND THE LANGUAGE OF THE SELF Timothy Polk LAW AND THEOLOGY IN DEUTERONOMY J.G. McConville THE TEMPLE SCROLL: AN INTRODUCTION, TRANSLATION & COMMENTARY Johann Maier SAGA, LEGEND, TALE, NOVELLA, FABLE: NARRATIVE FORMS IN OLD TESTAMENT LITERATURE Edited by George W. Coats THE SONG OF FOURTEEN SONGS
37
Michael D. Goulder UNDERSTANDING THE WORD:
33 34 35
ESSAYS IN HONOR OF BERNHARD W. ANDERSON Edited by James T. Butler, Edgar W. Conrad & Ben C. Ollenburger
38
SLEEP, DIVINE AND HUMAN, IN THE OLD TESTAMENT Thomas H. McAlpine
39 40 41 42
THE SENSE OF BIBLICAL NARRATIVE II: STRUCTURAL ANALYSES IN THE HEBREW BIBLE David Jobling DIRECTIONS IN BIBLICAL HEBREW POETRY Edited by Elaine R. Follis ZION, THE CITY OF THE GREAT KING: A THEOLOGICAL SYMBOL OF THE JERUSALEM CULT Ben C. Ollenburger A WORD IN SEASON: ESSAYS IN HONOUR OF WILLIAM MCKANE Edited by James D. Martin & Philip R. Davies
43 44 45
THE CULT OF MOLEK: A REASSESSMENT G.C. Heider THE IDENTITY OF THE INDIVIDUAL IN THE PSALMS Steven J.L. Croft THE CONFESSIONS OF JEREMIAH IN CONTEXT: SCENES OF PROPHETIC DRAMA A.R. Diamond
46 47
THE BOOK OF JUDGES: AN INTEGRATED READING Barry G. Webb THE GREEK TEXT OF JEREMIAH: A REVISED HYPOTHESIS Sven Soderlund
48
TEXT AND CONTEXT:
OLD TESTAMENT AND SEMITIC STUDIES FOR F.C. FENSHAM Edited by W. Claassen 49
THEOPHORIC PERSONAL NAMES IN ANCIENT HEBREW:
50
A COMPARATIVE STUDY Jeaneane D. Fowler THE CHRONICLER'S HISTORY Martin Moth Translated by H.G.M. Williamson with an Introduction
51
DIVINE INITIATIVE AND HUMAN RESPONSE IN EZEKIEL Paul Joyce
52
THE CONFLICT OF FAITH AND EXPERIENCE IN THE PSALMS : A FORM-CRITICAL AND THEOLOGICAL STUDY Craig C. Broyles THE MAKING OF THE PENTATEUCH : A METHODOLOGICAL STUDY R.N. Whybray FROM REPENTANCE TO REDEMPTION: JEREMIAH'S THOUGHT IN TRANSITION Jeremiah Unterman THE ORIGIN TRADITION OF ANCIENT ISRAEL:
53
54
55
1. THE LITERARY FORMATION OF GENESIS AND EXODUS 1-23 56
57
58
59
T.L. Thompson THE PURIFICATION OFFERING IN THE PRIESTLY LITERATURE: ITS MEANING AND FUNCTION N. Kiuchi MOSES: HEROIC MAN, MAN OF GOD George W. Coats THE LISTENING HEART: ESSAYS IN WISDOM AND THE PSALMS IN HONOR OF ROLAND E. MURPHY, O. CARM. Edited by Kenneth G. Hoglund, Elizabeth F. Huwiler, Jonathan T. Glass and Roger W. Lee CREATIVE BIBLICAL EXEGESIS: CHRISTIAN AND JEWISH HERMENEUTICS THROUGH THE CENTURIES Edited by Benjamin Uffenheimer & Henning Graf Reventlow
60
HER PRICE IS BEYOND RUBIES: THE JEWISH WOMAN IN GRAECO-ROMAN PALESTINE
61
FROM CHAOS TO RESTORATION: AN INTEGRATIVE READING OF ISAIAH 24-27
L£onie J. Archer
Dan G. Johnson
62
THE OLD TESTAMENT AND FOLKLORE STUDY Patricia G. Kirkpatrick
63
SHILOH: A BIBLICAL CITY IN TRADITION AND HISTORY Donald G. Schley
64
TO SEE AND NOT PERCEIVE: ISAIAH 6.9-10 IN EARLY JEWISH AND CHRISTIAN INTERPRETATION Craig A. Evans THERE IS HOPE FOR A TREE: THE TREE AS METAPHOR IN ISAIAH
65
66 67
Kirsten Nielsen SECRETS OF THE TIMES : MYTH AND HISTORY IN BIBLICAL CHRONOLOGY Jeremy Hughes ASCRIBE TO THE LORD:
BIBLICAL AND OTHER STUDIES IN MEMORY OF PETER C. CRAIGIE Edited by Lyle Eslinger & Glen Taylor 68
THE TRIUMPH OF IRONY IN THE BOOK OF JUDGES Lillian R. Klein
69
ZEPHANIAH, A PROPHETIC DRAMA Paul R. House NARRATIVE ART IN THE BIBLE
70
Shimon Bar-Efrat 71
QOHELET AND HIS CONTRADICTIONS
72
Michael V. Fox CIRCLE OF SOVEREIGNTY:
73 74
A STORY OF STORIES IN DANIEL 1-6 Danna Nolan Fewell DAVID' s SOCIAL DRAMA: A HOLOGRAM OF THE EARLY IRON AGE James W. Flanagan THE STRUCTURAL ANALYSIS OF BIBLICAL AND CANAANITE POETRY Edited by Willem van der Meer & Johannes C. de Moor
75 76
DAVID IN LOVE AND WAR: THE PURSUIT OF POWER IN 2 SAMUEL 10-12 Randall C. Bailey GOD IS KING: UNDERSTANDING AN ISRAELITE METAPHOR Marc Zvi Brettler
77 78
79
EDOM AND THE EDOMITES John R. Bartlett SWALLOWING THE SCROLL: TEXTUALITY AND THE DYNAMICS OF DISCOURSE IN EZEKIEL'S PROPHECY Ellen F. Davies GlBEAH:
THE SEARCH FOR A BIBLICAL CITY Patrick M. Arnold, S.J.
80
THE NATHAN NARRATIVES
81
Gwilym H. Jones ANTI-COVENANT:
COUNTER-READING WOMEN'S LIVES IN THE HEBREW BIBLE 82 83
Edited by Mieke Bal RHETORIC AND BIBLICAL INTERPRETATION Dale Patrick & Allen Scult THE EARTH AND THE WATERS IN GENESIS 1 AND 2:
A LINGUISTIC INVESTIGATION 84
David Toshio Tsumura INTO THE HANDS OF THE LIVING GOD Lyle Eslinger
85
FROM C ARMEL TO HOREB: ELUAH IN CRISIS Alan J. Hauser & Russell Gregory
86
THE SYNTAX OF THE VERB IN CLASSICAL HEBREW PROSE Alviero Niccacci
87
THE BIBLE IN THREE DIMENSIONS: ESSAYS IN CELEBRATION OF FORTY YEARS OF BIBLICAL STUDIES IN THE UNIVERSITY OF SHEFFIELD
Translated by W.G.E. Watson
88
89
Edited by David J.A. Clines, Stephen E. Fowl & Stanley E. Porter THE PERSUASIVE APPEAL OF THE CHRONICLER: A RHETORICAL ANALYSIS Rodney K. Duke
THE PROBLEM OF THE PROCESS OF TRANSMISSION IN THE PENTATEUCH RolfRendtorff Translated by John J. Scullion
90
BIBLICAL HEBREW IN TRANSITION: THE LANGUAGE OF THE BOOK OF EZEKIEL Mark F. Rooker
91 92 93
THE IDEOLOGY OF RITUAL: SPACE, TIME AND STATUS IN THE PRIESTLY THEOLOGY Frank H. Gorman, Jr ON HUMOUR AND THE COMIC IN THE HEBREW BIBLE Edited by Yehuda T. Radday & Athalya Brenner JOSHUA 24 AS POETIC NARRATIVE
William T. Koopmans
94
WHAT DOES EVE Do TO HELP? AND OTHER READERLY QUESTIONS TO THE OLD TESTAMENT David J.A. Clines
95
GOD SAVES: LESSONS FROM THE ELISHA STORIES Rick Dale Moore
96
ANNOUNCEMENTS OF PLOT IN GENESIS Laurence A. Turner 97 THE UNITY OF THE TWELVE Paul R. House 98 ANCIENT CONQUEST ACCOUNTS: A STUDY IN ANCIENT NEAR EASTERN AND BIBLICAL HISTORY WRITING K. Lawson Younger, Jr 99 WEALTH AND POVERTY IN THE BOOK OF PROVERBS R.N. Whybray 100 A TRIBUTE TO GEZA VERMES : ESSAYS ON JEWISH AND CHRISTIAN LITERATURE AND HISTORY Edited by Philip R. Davies & Richard T. White
101 102 10 3
THE CHRONICLER IN HIS AGE Peter R. Ackroyd THE PRAYERS OF DAVID (PSALMS 51-72): STUDIES IN THE PSALTER, II Michael Goulder THE SOCIOLOGY OF POTTERY IN ANCIENT PALESTINE: THE CERAMIC INDUSTRY AND THE DIFFUSION OF CERAMIC STYLE IN THE BRONZE AND IRON AGES
104
Bryant G. Wood PSALM STRUCTURES:
105
A STUDY OF PSALMS WITH REFRAINS Paul R. Raabe ESTABLISHING JUSTICE Pietro Bovati
106
GRADED HOLINESS : A KEY TO THE PRIESTLY CONCEPTION OF THE WORLD Philip Jenson
107
THE ALIEN IN THE PENTATEUCH Christiana van Houten
108
THE FORGING OF ISRAEL: IRON TECHNOLOGY, SYMBOLISM AND TRADITION IN ANCIENT SOCIETY Paula M. McNutt SCRIBES AND SCHOOLS IN MONARCHIC JUDAH: A Socio-ARCHAEOLOGICAL APPROACH
109
David Jamieson-Drake 110
THE CANAANITES AND THEIR LAND: THE TRADITION OF THE CANAANITES Niels Peter Lemche
111
YAHWEHANDTHESUN: THE BIBLICAL AND ARCHAEOLOGICAL EVIDENCE J. Glen Taylor
112 113 114 115
WISDOM IN REVOLT: METAPHORICAL THEOLOGY IN THE BOOK OF JOB Leo G. Perdue PROPERTY AND THE FAMILY IN BIBLICAL LAW Raymond Westbrook A TRADITIONAL QUEST: ESSAYS IN HONOUR OF LOUIS JACOBS Edited by Dan Cohn-Sherbok I HAVE BUILT You AN EXALTED HOUSE: TEMPLE BUILDING IN THE BIBLE IN THE LIGHT OF MESOPOTAMIAN AND NORTH-WEST SEMITIC WRITINGS Victor Hurowitz
116 117 118
119 120 121 122
NARRATIVE AND NOVELLA IN SAMUEL: STUDIES BY HUGO GRESSMANN AND OTHER SCHOLARS 1906-1923 Translated by David E. Orton, edited by David M. Gunn SECOND TEMPLE STUDIES: I.PERSIAN PERIOD Edited by Philip R. Davies SEEING AND HEARING GOD WITH THE PSALMS: THE PROPHETIC LITURGY FROM THE SECOND TEMPLE IN JERUSALEM Raymond Jacques Tournay Translated by J. Edward Crowley TELLING QUEEN MICHAL'S STORY: AN EXPERIMENT IN COMPARATIVE INTERPRETATION Edited by David J.A. Clines & Tamara C. Eskenazi THE REFORMING KINGS : CULT AND SOCIETY IN FIRST TEMPLE JUDAH Richard H. Lowery KING SAUL IN THE HISTORIOGRAPHY OF JUDAH Diana Vikander Edelman IMAGES OF EMPIRE Edited by Loveday Alexander
123
JUDAHITE BURIAL PRACTICES AND BELIEFS ABOUT THE DEAD Elizabeth Bloch-Smith
124
LAW AND IDEOLOGY IN MONARCHIC ISRAEL Edited by Baruch Halpern and Deborah W. Hobson
125 126
PRIESTHOOD AND CULT IN ANCIENT ISRAEL Edited by Gary A. Anderson and Saul M. Olyan W.M.L.DE WETTE, FOUNDER OF MODERN BIBLICAL CRITICISM: AN INTELLECTUAL BIOGRAPHY John W. Rogerson
127
THE FABRIC OF HISTORY: TEXT, ARTIFACT AND ISRAEL'S PAST Edited by Diana Vikander Edelman
128
BIBLICAL SOUND AND SENSE: POETIC SOUND PATTERNS IN PROVERBS 10-29 Thomas P. McCreesh
129
THE ARAMAIC OF DANIEL IN THE LIGHT OF OLD ARAMAIC Zdravko Stefanovic
130
STRUCTURE AND THE BOOK OF ZECHARI AH Michael Butterworth FORMS OF DEFORMITY: A MOTIF-INDEX OF ABNORMALITIES, DEFORMITIES AND DISABILITIES IN TRADITIONAL JEWISH LITERATURE
131
Lynn Holden
132 133 135
136
CONTEXTS FOR AMOS : PROPHETIC POETICS IN LATIN AMERICAN PERSPECTIVE Mark Daniel Carroll R. THE FORSAKEN FIRSTBORN: A STUDY OF A RECURRENT MOTIF IN THE PATRIARCHAL NARRATIVES R. Syr^n ISRAEL IN EGYPT:
A READING OF EXODUS 1-2 G.F. Davies A WALK THROUGH THE GARDEN: BIBLICAL, ICONOGRAPHICAL AND LITERARY IMAGES OF EDEN Edited by P. Morris and D. Sawyer
137 138 139 140 141
JUSTICE AND RIGHTEOUSNESS: BIBLICAL THEMES AND THEIR INFLUENCE Edited by H. Graf Reventlow & Y. Hoffman TEXT AS PRETEXT: ESSAYS IN HONOUR OF ROBERT DAVIDSON Edited by R.P. Carroll PSALM AND STORY: INSET HYMNS IN HEBREW NARRATIVE J.W. Watts PURITY AND MONOTHEISM: CLEAN AND UNCLEAN ANIMALS IN BIBLICAL LAW Walter Houston DEBT SLAVERY IN ISRAEL AND THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST Gregory C. Chirichigno
142
DIVINATION IN ANCIENT ISRAEL AND ITS NEAR EASTERN ENVIRONMENT: A SOCIO-HISTORICAL INVESTIGATION Frederick H. Cryer
144
AMONG THE PROPHETS: ESSAYS ON PROPHETIC TOPICS Edited by P.R. Davies and D.J.A Clines THE SPEECHES OF MICAH: A RHETORICAL-HISTORICAL ANALYSIS Charles S. Shaw
145